example_n of_o abraham_n ro._n 4._o abraham_n in_o deed_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n also_o 25_o and_o likewise_o rahab_n verse_n 1_o my_o brethren_n 16._o have_v not_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n of_o glory_n â³_o in_o acception_n of_o person_n 1._o â_o verse_n 2_o for_o if_o there_o shall_v enter_v into_o your_o assembly_n a_o man_n have_v a_o golden_a ring_n in_o goodly_a apparel_n and_o there_o shall_v enter_v in_o a_o poor_a man_n in_o homely_a attire_n â_o verse_n 3_o &_o you_o have_v respect_n to_o he_o that_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o goodly_a apparel_n and_o shall_v say_v to_o he_o sit_v thou_o here_o well_o but_o say_v to_o the_o poor_a man_n stand_v thou_o there_o or_o sit_v under_o my_o footstool_n â_o verse_n 4_o do_v you_o not_o judge_v with_o yourselves_o and_o be_v become_v judge_n of_o unjust_a cogitation_n â_o verse_n 5_o hear_v my_o dear_a brethren_n have_v not_o god_n choose_v the_o poor_a in_o this_o world_n scotfree_a in_o faith_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o â_o verse_n 6_o but_o you_o have_v dishonour_v the_o poor_a man_n do_v not_o the_o scotfree_a oppress_v you_o by_o might_n and_o themselves_o draw_v you_o to_o judgement_n â_o verse_n 7_o do_v not_o they_o blaspheme_v the_o good_a name_n that_o be_v invocate_v upon_o you_o â_o verse_n 8_o if_o notwithstanding_a you_o fulfil_v the_o royal_a la_o according_o to_o the_o scripture_n 39_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o you_o do_v well_o â_o verse_n 9_o but_o if_o you_o accept_v person_n you_o work_n sin_n 13._o reprove_v of_o the_o law_n as_o transgressor_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o *_o whosoever_o shall_v keep_v the_o whole_a law_n but_o offend_v in_o one_o 18._o â³_o be_v make_v guilty_a of_o al._n â_o verse_n 11_o for_o he_o that_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v advoutrie_n say_v also_o thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v and_o if_o thou_o do_v not_o commit_v advoutrie_n but_o shall_v kill_v thou_o be_v make_v a_o transgressor_n of_o the_o law._n â_o verse_n 12_o so_o speak_v you_o and_o so_o do_v as_o beginning_n to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o la_o of_o liberty_n â_o verse_n 13_o for_o â³_o judgement_n without_o mercy_n to_o he_o that_o have_v not_o do_v mercy_n and_o mercy_n ãâã_d exalt_v itself_o above_o judgement_n â_o verse_n 14_o â³_o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v my_o brethren_n if_o a_o man_n say_v he_o have_v faith_n but_o have_v not_o work_n shall_v faith_n be_v able_a to_o save_v he_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o *_o if_o a_o brother_n or_o sister_n be_v naked_a 17_o &_o lack_v daily_a food_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o one_o of_o you_o say_v to_o they_o go_v in_o peace_n be_v warm_v &_o fill_v but_o you_o give_v they_o not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o body_n what_o shall_v it_o profit_v â_o verse_n 17_o so_o faith_n also_o if_o it_o have_v not_o work_n be_v dead_a in_o itself_o â_o verse_n 18_o but_o some_o man_n say_v thou_o have_v faith_n and_o i_o have_v work_n show_v i_o thy_o faith_n without_o work_n &_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o by_o work_n my_o faith_n â_o verse_n 19_o thou_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n thou_o do_v well_o the_o devil_n also_o believe_v and_o tremble_v â_o verse_n 20_o but_o will_v thou_o know_v devil_n o_o vain_a man_n that_o faith_n without_o work_n be_v dead_a idle_a '_o â_o verse_n 21_o â³_o abraham_n our_o father_n be_v he_o not_o justify_v by_o work_n 10._o *_o offer_v isaac_n his_o son_n upon_o the_o altar_n â_o verse_n 22_o see_v thou_o that_o â³_o faith_n do_v work_n with_o his_o work_n and_o by_o the_o work_n the_o faith_n be_v consummate_v 3_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o the_o scripture_n be_v fulfil_v say_v abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v repute_v he_o to_o justice_n and_o he_o be_v call_v â³_o the_o friend_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 24_o do_v you_o see_v that_o by_o work_n a_o man_n be_v justify_v &_o â³_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o â_o verse_n 25_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n also_o *_o â³_o rahab_n the_o harlot_n 22._o be_v not_o she_o justify_v by_o work_n receive_v the_o messenger_n and_o put_v they_o forth_o a_o other_o way_n â_o verse_n 26_o for_o even_o as_o the_o body_n without_o the_o spirit_n be_v dead_a so_o also_o â³_o faith_n without_o work_n be_v dead_a annotation_n chap._n ii_o 1._o in_o acception_n of_o person_n person_n the_o apostle_n mean_v not_o as_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o other_o seditious_a person_n sometime_o gather_v hereof_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o difference_n in_o commonweal_v or_o assembly_n betwixt_o the_o magistrate_n and_o the_o subject_n the_o free_a man_n and_o the_o bond_n the_o scotfree_a and_o the_o poor_a betwixt_o one_o degree_n and_o a_o other_o for_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o man_n have_v make_v such_o distinction_n and_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o observe_v then_o but_o it_o be_v mean_v only_o or_o special_o that_o in_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o grace_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n sacrament_n and_o salvation_n and_o bestow_v the_o spiritual_a function_n and_o charge_n of_o foul_a we_o must_v esteem_v of_o a_o poor_a man_n or_o a_o bond_n man_n no_o less_o then_o of_o the_o rich_a man_n and_o the_o free_a person_n then_o of_o the_o prince_n or_o the_o gentleman_n because_o as_o christ_n himself_o call_v all_o and_o endu_v all_o sort_n with_o his_o grace_n so_o in_o such_o and_o the_o like_a thing_n we_o must_v not_o be_v partial_a but_o count_v all_o to_o be_v fellow_n brethren_n and_o member_n of_o one_o head_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v with_o a_o special_a clause_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o hold_v or_o have_v the_o christian_a faith_n with_o or_o in_o such_o difference_n or_o partiality_n 10._o be_v make_v guilty_a of_o al._n he_o mean_v not_o that_o whosoever_o be_v a_o thief_n be_v also_o a_o murderer_n or_o that_o every_o murderer_n be_v a_o advouterer_n also_o al._n or_o that_o all_o sin_n be_v equal_a according_a to_o the_o stoïke_n and_o the_o heresy_n of_o jovinian_a much_o less_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v as_o great_a damnation_n that_o transgress_v one_o commandment_n as_o if_o he_o have_v offend_v against_o every_o precept_n but_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o avail_v he_o to_o salvation_n that_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v keep_v certain_a and_o not_o break_v all_o the_o commandment_n see_v that_o any_o one_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n prove_v that_o he_o have_v not_o observe_v the_o whole_a which_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v so_o far_o as_o be_v require_v and_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o man_n in_o this_o life_n s._n augustine_n dispute_v profound_o in_o his_o 29_o epistle_n to_o s._n hierom_n of_o this_o place_n of_o s._n james_n expound_v it_o thus_o that_o he_o which_o offend_v in_o one_o that_o be_v against_o the_o general_a and_o great_a commandment_n of_o love_n or_o charity_n because_o it_o be_v in_o manner_n all_o as_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o plenitude_n of_o the_o la_o and_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o rest_n break_v after_o a_o sort_n and_o transgress_v all_o no_o sin_n be_v commit_v but_o either_o against_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o of_o our_o neighbour_n 13._o judgement_n without_o mercy_n god_n nothing_o give_v more_o hope_n of_o mercy_n in_o the_o next_o life_n than_o the_o work_n of_o alm_n charity_n and_o mercy_n do_v to_o our_o neighbour_n in_o this_o life_n neither_o shall_v any_o be_v use_v with_o extreme_a rigour_n in_o the_o next_o world_n but_o such_o as_o use_v not_o mercy_n in_o this_o world_n august_n de_fw-fr pec_fw-fr merit_n li._n 2._o c._n 3._o which_o be_v true_a not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o judgement_n to_o everlasting_a damnation_n but_o also_o of_o the_o temporal_a chastisement_n in_o purgatory_n as_o s._n augustine_n signify_v declare_v that_o our_o venial_a sin_n be_v wash_v away_o in_o this_o world_n with_o daily_a work_n of_o mercy_n say_v which_o otherwise_o shall_v be_v chastise_v in_o the_o next_o see_v epist_n 29._o aforesaid_a in_o sine_fw-la and_o li._n 21_o de_fw-fr ciu._n dei_fw-la c._n 17_o in_o fine_a 14._o what_o shall_v it_o profit_v if_o a_o man_n say_v he_o have_v faith_n this_o whole_a passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o clear_a against_o justification_n or_o salvation_n by_o only_a faith_n damnable_o defend_v by_o the_o protestant_n and_o so_o evident_a for_o the_o necessity_n merit_n &_o concurrence_n of_o good_a work_n that_o their_o first_o author_n luther_n and_o such_o as_o exact_o follow_v he_o bold_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o heretic_n when_o they_o can_v make_v no_o shift_n nor_o false_a gloze_n for_o the_o text_n deny_v the_o
book_n to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n but_o caluin_n and_o his_o companion_n disagree_v with_o their_o master_n confess_v it_o to_o be_v holy_a scripture_n but_o their_o shift_n and_o fond_a gloss_n for_o answer_n of_o so_o plain_a place_n be_v as_o impudent_a as_o the_o deny_v of_o the_o epistle_n be_v in_o the_o other_o who_o will_v never_o have_v deny_v the_o book_n thereby_o to_o show_v themselves_o heretic_n if_o they_o have_v think_v those_o vulgar_a evasion_n that_o the_o zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n do_v use_v whereof_o they_o be_v not_o ignorant_a can_v have_v serve_v in_o both_o sort_n the_o christian_a reader_n may_v see_v that_o all_o the_o heretic_n vaunt_v of_o express_a scripture_n &_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o delude_v the_o world_n whereas_o in_o deed_n be_v the_o scripture_n never_o so_o plain_a against_o they_o they_o must_v either_o be_v wrest_v to_o sound_v as_o they_o say_v or_o else_o they_o must_v be_v no_o scripture_n at_o all_o and_o to_o see_v luther_n caluin_n beza_n &_o their_o fellow_n sit_v as_o it_o be_v in_o judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o allow_v or_o disallow_v at_o their_o pleasure_n it_o be_v the_o most_o notorious_a example_n of_o heretical_a pride_n &_o misery_n that_o can_v be_v see_v their_o preface_n and_o censure_n upon_o this_o canonical_a epistle_n the_o apocalypse_n the_o maccabee_n and_o other_o 21._o abraham_n be_v he_o not_o justify_v by_o work_n heresy_n it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v note_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la c._n 14._o write_v that_o the_o heresy_n of_o only_a faith_n justify_v or_o save_v be_v a_o old_a heresy_n even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n gather_v by_o the_o false_a interpretation_n of_o some_o of_o s._n paul_n profound_a disputation_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n word_n wherein_o he_o commend_v so_o high_o the_o faith_n in_o christ_n that_o they_o think_v good_a work_n be_v not_o avilable_a add_v further_a that_o the_o other_o three_o apostle_n james_n john_n and_o jude_n do_v of_o purpose_n write_v so_o much_o of_o good_a work_n to_o correct_v the_o say_a error_n of_o only_a faith_n gather_v by_o the_o misconstruction_n of_o s._n paul_n word_n yea_o when_o s._n peter_n ep._n 2_o c._n 3._o warn_v the_o faithful_a that_o many_o thing_n be_v hard_a in_o s._n paul_n write_n and_o of_o light_a unlearned_a man_n mistake_v to_o their_o perdition_n citate_fw-la the_o say_v s._n augustine_n affirm_v that_o he_o mean_v of_o his_o disputation_n concern_v faith_n which_o so_o many_o heretic_n do_v mistake_v to_o condemn_v good_a work_n and_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 31_o psalm_n he_o warn_v all_o man_n that_o this_o deduction_n upon_o s._n paul_n speech_n abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n therefore_o work_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v the_o right_a way_n to_o the_o gulf_n of_o hell_n and_o damnation_n and_o last_o which_o be_v in_o itself_o very_o plain_a that_o we_o may_v see_v this_o apostle_n do_v purposely_o thus_o commend_v unto_o we_o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n faith_n and_o the_o inanity_n and_o insufficiency_n of_o only_a faith_n to_o correct_v the_o error_n of_o such_o as_o misconstrue_v s._n paul_n word_n for_o the_o same_o 76._o the_o say_v holy_a doctor_n note_v that_o of_o purpose_n he_o take_v the_o very_a same_o example_n of_o abraham_n who_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n and_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o good_a work_n specify_v the_o good_a work_n for_o which_o he_o be_v justify_v and_o bless_v of_o god_n to_o wit_n his_o obedience_n and_o immolation_n of_o his_o only_a son_n but_o how_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n see_v the_o annotation_n upon_o that_o place_n ro._n 4._o v._n 1._o 22._o faith_n do_v work_n with_o work_n some_o heretic_n hold_v that_o good_a work_n be_v pernicious_a to_o salvation_n and_o justification_n other_o that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o hurtful_a but_o require_v yet_o they_o be_v no_o cause_n or_o worker_n of_o salvation_n much_o less_o meritorious_a but_o be_v as_o effect_n and_o fruit_n issue_v necessary_o out_o of_o faith_n both_o which_o fiction_n falshod_n and_o flight_n from_o the_o plain_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n be_v refute_v by_o these_o word_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o faith_n work_v together_o with_o good_a work_n justification_n make_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o coadiutor_n or_o cooperator_n with_o work_n and_o so_o both_o joint_o concur_v as_o cause_n and_o worker_n of_o justification_n yea_o afterward_o he_o make_v work_n the_o more_o principal_a cause_n when_o he_o resemble_v faith_n to_o the_o body_n and_o work_n to_o the_o spirit_n or_o life_n of_o man_n 23._o the_o friend_n of_o god_n by_o this_o also_o a_o other_o false_a and_o frivolous_a evasion_n of_o the_o heretic_n be_v overtake_v god_n when_o they_o feign_v that_o the_o apostle_n here_o when_o he_o say_v work_n do_v justify_v mean_v that_o they_o show_v we_o just_a before_o man_n and_o avail_v not_o to_o our_o justice_n before_o god_n for_o the_o apostle_n evident_o declare_v that_o abraham_n by_o his_o work_n be_v make_v or_o true_o call_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o as_o the_o heretic_n say_v by_o his_o work_n approve_v just_a before_o man_n only_o 24._o not_o by_o faith_n only_o only_o this_o proposition_n or_o speech_n be_v direct_o opposite_a or_o contradictory_n to_o that_o which_o the_o heretic_n hold_v for_o the_o apostle_n say_v man_n be_v justify_v by_o good_a work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o but_o the_o heretic_n say_v man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o good_a work_n but_o by_o faith_n only_o neither_o can_v they_o pretend_v that_o there_o be_v the_o like_a contradiction_n or_o contrariety_n betwixt_o s._n james_n speech_n and_o s._n paul_n for_o though_o s._n paul_n say_v man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n yet_o he_o never_o say_v by_o faith_n only_o nor_o ever_o mean_v by_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v alone_o but_o always_o by_o that_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o charity_n â_o as_o he_o expound_v himself_o though_o concern_v work_n also_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o first_o justification_n whereof_o s._n paul_n special_o speak_v and_o the_o second_o justification_n whereof_o s._n james_n do_v more_o special_o treat_v of_o which_o thing_n 13._o else_o where_o there_o be_v enough_o say_v the_o father_n in_o deed_n use_v sometime_o this_o exclusive_a sola_o only_o but_o in_o far_o other_o sense_n then_o the_o protestant_n for_o some_o of_o they_o thereby_o exclude_v only_o the_o work_n of_o moses_n law_n against_o the_o jew_n some_o the_o work_n of_o nature_n and_o moral_a virtue_n without_o the_o grace_n or_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n faith_n against_o the_o gentile_n some_o the_o necessity_n of_o external_a good_a work_n where_o the_o party_n lack_v time_n and_o mean_n to_o do_v they_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o penitent_a thief_n some_o the_o false_a opinion_n sect_n and_o religion_n contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n against_o heretic_n and_o miscreant_n some_o exclude_v reason_n sense_n and_o argue_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o mystery_n against_o such_o as_o will_v believe_v nothing_o but_o that_o they_o see_v or_o understand_v some_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n do_v in_o sin_n before_o the_o first_o justification_n some_o the_o arrogant_a pharisaical_a vaunt_a of_o man_n own_o proper_a work_n and_o justice_n against_o such_o as_o refer_v not_o their_o action_n and_o good_a deed_n to_o god_n grace_n to_o these_o purpose_n the_o holy_a doctor_n say_v sometime_o that_o only_a faith_n save_v and_o serve_v but_o never_o as_o the_o protestant_n will_v have_v it_o to_o exclude_v from_o justification_n and_o salvation_n the_o cooperation_n of_o man_n free_a will_v disposition_n and_o preparation_n of_o our_o heart_n by_o prayer_n penance_n and_o sacrament_n the_o virtue_n of_o hope_n and_o charity_n the_o purpose_n of_o wel-working_a and_o of_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n commandment_n much_o less_o the_o work_n and_o merit_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n procede_v of_o grace_n and_o charity_n after_o they_o be_v justify_v and_o be_v now_o in_o his_o favour_n which_o be_v not_o only_a disposition_n and_o preparation_n to_o justice_n but_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o great_a justice_n and_o of_o salvation_n 25._o rahab_n only_o this_o apostle_n allege_v the_o good_a work_n of_o rahab_n by_o which_o she_o be_v justify_v and_o s._n paul_n 11_o hebr._n say_v she_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o for_o both_o be_v true_a that_o she_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n as_o one_o faith_n and_o that_o she_o be_v save_v by_o her_o work_n as_o the_o
verse_n 12_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o be_v comfort_v together_o in_o you_o by_o that_o which_o be_v common_a to_o we_o both_o your_o faith_n and_o i_o â_o verse_n 13_o and_o i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o ignorant_a brethren_n that_o i_o have_v often_o purpose_v to_o come_v unto_o you_o and_o have_v be_v stay_v hitherto_o that_o i_o may_v have_v some_o fruit_n in_o you_o as_o also_o in_o the_o other_o gentile_n â_o verse_n 14_o to_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o barbarous_a to_o the_o wise_a and_o the_o unwise_o i_o be_o debtor_n â_o verse_n 15_o so_o as_o much_o as_o be_v in_o i_o i_o be_o ready_a â³_o to_o evangelise_v to_o you_o also_o that_o be_v at_o rome_n â_o verse_n 16_o for_o i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a of_o the_o gospel_n for_o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v to_o the_o jewe_n first_o and_o to_o the_o greek_a â_o verse_n 17_o for_o justice_n the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v therein_o by_o faith_n into_o faith_n 4._o as_o it_o be_v write_v and_o the_o just_a â³_o live_v by_o faith_n â_o verse_n 18_o for_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n from_o heaven_n â³_o be_v reveal_v upon_o all_o impiety_n and_o injustice_n of_o those_o man_n that_o detain_v the_o vertitie_n of_o god_n in_o injustice_n â_o verse_n 19_o because_o that_o of_o god_n which_o be_v know_v be_v manifest_a in_o they_o for_o god_n have_v manifest_v it_o unto_o they_o â_o verse_n 20_o for_o his_o invisible_a thing_n from_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v see_v be_v understand_v by_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v his_o eternal_a power_n also_o &_o divinity_n so_o that_o they_o be_v inexcusable_a â_o verse_n 21_o because_o whereas_o they_o know_v god_n they_o have_v not_o glorify_v he_o as_o god_n or_o give_v thanks_n but_o be_v become_v vain_a in_o their_o cogitation_n and_o their_o foolish_a hart_n have_v be_v darken_v â_o verse_n 22_o for_o say_v themselves_o to_o be_v wise_a they_o become_v fool_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o they_o change_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o incorruptible_a god_n into_o a_o saint_n similitude_n of_o the_o image_n of_o a_o corruptible_a man_n and_o of_o fowl_n and_o fourfooted_a beast_n and_o of_o they_o that_o creep_v â_o verse_n 24_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n god_n etc._n have_v deliver_v they_o up_o unto_o the_o desire_n of_o their_o hart_n into_o uncleanness_n for_o to_o abuse_v their_o own_o body_n among_o themselves_o ignominious_o â_o verse_n 25_o who_o have_v change_v the_o verity_n of_o god_n into_o lie_v and_o have_v worship_v &_o ãâã_d serve_v the_o creature_n rather_o than_o the_o creator_n who_o be_v bless_v for_o ever_o amen_n â_o verse_n 26_o therefore_o â³_o god_n have_v deliver_v they_o into_o passion_n of_o ignominy_n for_o their_o woman_n have_v change_v the_o natural_a use_n into_o that_o use_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n â_o verse_n 27_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o man_n also_o leave_v the_o natural_a use_n of_o the_o woman_n have_v burn_v in_o their_o desire_n one_o towards_o a_o other_o man_n upon_o man_n work_v turpitude_n &_o the_o reward_n of_o their_o error_n which_o they_o shall_v receive_v in_o themselves_o â_o verse_n 28_o and_o as_o they_o like_v not_o to_o have_v god_n in_o knowledge_n god_n deliver_v they_o up_o into_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n to_o do_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o convenient_a â_o verse_n 29_o replenish_v with_o all_o iniquity_n malice_n fornication_n avarice_n wickedness_n full_a of_o envy_n murder_n contention_n guile_n malignity_n whisperer_n â_o verse_n 30_o detractour_n odible_a to_o god_n contumelious_a proud_a haughty_a inventour_n of_o evil_a thing_n disobedient_a to_o parent_n â_o verse_n 31_o foolish_a dissolute_a without_o affection_n without_o fidelity_n without_o mercy_n â_o verse_n 32_o who_o whereas_o they_o know_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n do_v not_o understand_v that_o they_o which_o do_v such_o thing_n be_v â³_o worthy_a of_o death_n not_o only_o they_o that_o do_v they_o but_o they_o also_o that_o consent_n to_o the_o doer_n annotation_n chap._n i._n 7._o grace_n to_o you_o and_o peace_n blessing_n it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o blessing_n rather_o than_o a_o profane_a salutation_n proper_a to_o the_o apostle_n of_o great_a virtue_n than_o the_o benediction_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o church_n seem_v to_o abstain_v from_o it_o for_o their_o reverence_n to_o the_o apostle_n 6â_n *_o the_o manichees_n august_n count_n ep_v fundâ_n c._n 5._o â_o and_o other_o heretic_n as_o also_o these_o of_o our_o time_n because_o they_o will_v be_v count_v apostle_n heretic_n often_o use_v it_o â_o your_o faith_n venoumed_a the_o holy_a doctor_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o special_o by_o our_o master_n promise_n *_o make_v to_o peter_n commend_v that_o his_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v 22._o give_v great_a testimony_n for_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n s._n cyprian_n thus_o ep_v 55._o nu_fw-la 6._o they_o be_v so_o bold_a to_o carry_v letter_n from_o profane_a schismatic_n to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n whence_o priestly_a unity_n rise_v not_o consider_v the_o roman_n to_o be_v they_o who_o faith_n the_o apostle_n be_v the_o commender_n be_v praise_v corrupt_v to_o who_o misbelieve_v can_v not_o have_v access_n so._n s._n hierom_n apolog._n adu_fw-la ruââ_n li._n 3_o c._n 4._o to_o 2._o know_v you_o that_o the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n mouth_n will_v receive_v no_o such_o deceit_n nor_o can_v be_v possible_o change_v though_o a_o angel_n teach_v otherwise_o be_v fence_a by_o s._n paul_n authority_n again_o ep_v 63_o ad_fw-la parâmach_n &_o oceanâm_n c._n 4._o to_o 2._o whatsoever_o thou_o be_v that_o avouch_v new_a sect_n i_o pray_v ãâã_d have_v respect_n to_o the_o roman_n ââres_n spare_v the_o faith_n which_o be_v praise_v by_o the_o apostle_n voice_n gal._n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n wilye_o know_v o_o paula_n and_o eustoâhium_n devotion_n how_o the_o apostle_n have_v note_v every_o province_n with_o their_o propriety_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o people_n of_o roââ_n be_v praise_v where_o be_v there_o so_o gâeaâconcourse_n to_o church_n and_o martyr_n sepulchre_n where_o sound_v amen_n like_o thunder_n from_o heaven_n or_o where_o be_v the_o temple_n void_a of_o idol_n so_o shake_v as_o there_o not_o that_o the_o roman_n have_v a_o other_o faith_n then_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o that_o there_o be_v in_o they_o more_o devotion_n and_o simplicity_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o same_o holy_a doctor_n signify_v that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o say_v one_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o the_o catholic_a apolog._n 1_o adu_fw-la ruff._n c._n 1._o so_o do_v s._n cyprian_n ep_v ãâã_d num_fw-la 1._o ad_fw-la antonianum_fw-la and_o s._n ambrose_n de_fw-fr âbitu_fw-la fratris_fw-la in_o med_a whereupon_o this_o word_n roman_a be_v add_v to_o catholic_a in_o many_o country_n where_o sect_n do_v abound_v for_o the_o better_a distinction_n of_o true_a believer_n from_o heretic_n which_o in_o all_o age_n do_v hate_n and_o abhor_v the_o roman_a faith_n and_o church_n as_o all_o malefactor_n do_v their_o judge_n and_o corrector_n 9_o serve_v in_o spirit_n diverse_a heretic_n when_o they_o hear_v that_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o must_v be_v serve_v and_o adoâed_v in_o spirit_n spirit_n imagine_v that_o he_o must_v be_v honour_v only_o inward_o without_o ceremony_n and_o external_a work_n which_o you_o see_v be_v otherwise_o for_o that_o the_o apostle_n serve_v god_n in_o spirit_n by_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o serve_v god_n then_o in_o spirit_n be_v to_o serve_v he_o with_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n and_o with_o all_o work_n procede_v of_o they_o as_o to_o serve_v he_o carnal_o be_v with_o work_n external_a without_o the_o say_a internal_a virtue_n 9_o a_o memory_n of_o you_o a_o great_a example_n of_o charity_n for_o all_o man_n special_o for_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n not_o only_o to_o preach_v soul_n but_o to_o pray_v continual_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o people_n to_o christ_n faith_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v for_o they_o who_o he_o never_o know_v in_o respect_n of_o god_n honour_n only_o and_o the_o zeal_n of_o soul_n 15._o to_z evangâliza_fw-mi the_o gospel_n be_v not_o only_o the_o life_n of_o our_o saviour_n write_v by_o the_o four_o evangelist_n word_n nor_o only_a that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o these_o whole_a course_n of_o preach_v and_o teach_v the_o faith_n which_o faith_n come_v ordinary_o of_o preach_v and_o hear_v and_o not_o of_o writing_n or_o read_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n think_v not_o himself_o discharge_v by_o
writing_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o his_o desire_n be_v to_o preach_v unto_o they_o for_o that_o be_v the_o proper_a commission_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n 28._o to_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n how_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o testament_n be_v a_o other_o part_n of_o god_n providence_n necessary_a for_o the_o church_n in_o general_n but_o not_o necessary_a for_o every_o man_n in_o particular_a as_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o preach_v unto_o be_v for_o every_o one_o of_o age_n and_o understanding_n and_o therefore_o s._n peter_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o commission_n write_v little_a many_o of_o they_o write_v nothing_o at_o all_o and_o s._n paul_n that_o write_v most_o write_v but_o little_a in_o comparison_n of_o his_o preach_n nor_o to_o any_o but_o such_o as_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n by_o preach_v before_o 17._o life_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o 10._o to_o the_o hebrews_n he_o show_v by_o this_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n abacue_n that_o the_o just_a though_o he_o live_v here_o in_o peregrination_n and_o see_v not_o present_o nor_o enjoy_v the_o life_n everlasting_a promise_v to_o he_o yet_o hold_v fast_o the_o hope_n thereof_o by_o faith_n in_o this_o place_n he_o apply_v the_o prophets_n word_n further_o to_o this_o sense_n whatsoever_o that_o it_o be_v our_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o catholic_a belief_n say_v s._n augustine_n li._n â_o count_n â_o ep_v pelag._n which_o make_v a_o just_a man_n and_o distinguish_v between_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a and_o that_o by_o the_o la_o of_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o the_o la_o of_o work_n whereof_o it_o rise_v that_o the_o jew_n the_o heathen_a philosopher_n and_o the_o heretic_n though_o they_o excel_v in_o all_o work_n of_o moral_a virtue_n can_v not_o yet_o be_v just_a and_o a_o catholic_a christian_a man_n live_v but_o a_o ordinary_a honest_a life_n either_o not_o sin_v great_o or_o supply_v his_o fault_n by_o penance_n be_v just_a and_o this_o difference_n rise_v by_o faith_n not_o that_o faith_n can_v save_v any_o man_n without_o work_n for_o it_o be_v not_o a_o reprobate_a faith_n that_o we_o speak_v of_o as_o the_o holy_a doctor_n say_v but_o that_o which_o work_v by_o charity_n and_o therefore_o remit_v sin_n and_o make_v one_o just_a see_v s._n augustine_n place_n 18._o be_v reveal_v faith_n by_o all_o the_o passage_n follow_a you_o may_v see_v that_o the_o gospel_n and_o christ_n la_o consist_v not_o only_o in_o preach_v faith_n though_o that_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o be_v first_o always_o to_o be_v do_v but_o to_o teach_v virtuous_a life_n and_o good_a work_n and_o to_o denounce_v damnation_n to_o all_o they_o that_o commit_v dealdy_o sin_n and_o repent_v not_o and_o again_o we_o see_v that_o not_o only_o lack_v of_o faith_n be_v a_o sin_n but_o all_o other_o act_v do_v against_o god_n commandment_n 26._o have_v deliver_v they_o up_o sin_n as_o he_o say_v here_o god_n deliver_v they_o up_o so_o to_o the_o ephesian_n c._n 4_o 19_o he_o say_v of_o the_o same_o person_n and_o thing_n they_o deliver_v themselves_o up_o to_o all_o uncleanness_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o mean_v here_o that_o god_n do_v drive_v force_n or_o cause_v any_o man_n to_o sin_n as_o diverse_a blasphemous_a heretic_n do_v hold_v further_o but_o only_o that_o by_o his_o just_a judgement_n for_o their_o own_o deserve_v and_o for_o due_a punishment_n of_o their_o former_a grevous_a offence_n he_o withhold_v his_o grace_n from_o they_o and_o so_o suffer_v they_o to_o fall_v further_o into_o other_o sin_n as_o for_o their_o crime_n of_o idolatry_n to_o suffer_v they_o to_o fall_v into_o unnatural_a abomination_n as_o now_o for_o heresy_n he_o take_v his_o grace_n and_o mercy_n from_o many_o and_o so_o they_o fall_v headlong_o into_o all_o kind_n of_o turpitude_n as_o contrariwise_o for_o ill_a life_n he_o suffer_v many_o to_o fall_v into_o heresy_n and_o for_o christ_n sake_n let_v every_o one_o that_o be_v entangle_v with_o the_o ldolatrie_n of_o this_o time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o these_o new_a sect_n look_v well_o into_o his_o owneconscience_n whether_o his_o forsake_v the_o true_a god_n may_v not_o come_v unto_o he_o for_o a_o punishment_n of_o his_o former_a or_o present_a ill_a life_n which_o he_o live_v 12._o worthy_a of_o death_n venial_a here_o you_o see_v why_o the_o church_n take_v some_o sin_n to_o be_v deadly_a and_o call_v they_o mortal_a to_o wit_n because_o all_o thaâ_n do_v they_o be_v worthy_a of_o damnation_n other_o be_v venial_a that_o be_v to_o say_v pardonable_a of_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o not_o worthy_a of_o damnation_n chap._n ii_o nâw_o also_o he_o show_v that_o neither_o the_o lew_n can_v be_v save_v by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o which_o they_o do_v so_o much_o brag_n against_o the_o gentile_n see_v they_o do_v notwithstanding_o sin_n as_o the_o gentile_n do_v 14_o and_o therefore_o that_o the_o true_a lieu_n be_v the_o christian_n though_o he_o be_v a_o gentil_n who_o by_o grace_n in_o his_o hart_n do_v the_o good_a work_n that_o the_o law_n command_v verse_n 1_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n thou_o be_v inexcusable_a o_o man_n whosoever_o â³_o thou_o be_v that_o iudge_v for_o wherein_o thou_o iudge_v a_o other_o thou_o condemne_v thyself_o for_o thou_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o thou_o '_o iudge_v â_o verse_n two_o for_o we_o know_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v according_a to_o verity_n upon_o they_o that_o do_v such_o thing_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o do_v thou_o suppose_v this_o o_o man_n that_o iudge_v they_o which_o do_v such_o thing_n and_o do_v the_o same_o that_o thou_o shall_v escape_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 4_o or_o â³_o do_v thou_o contemn_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o patience_n and_o longanimity_n not_o know_v that_o the_o benignity_n of_o god_n bring_v thou_o to_o penance_n â_o verse_n 5_o but_o according_a to_o thy_o hardness_n and_o impenitent_a hart_n thou_o heap_a to_o thyself_o wrath_n in_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n and_o of_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 6_o who_o will_v *_o render_v to_o every_o man_n â³_o according_a to_o his_o work_n 4â_n â_o verse_n 7_o to_o they_o true_o that_o according_a to_o patience_n in_o good_a work_n 13_o seek_v glory_n and_o honour_n and_o incorruption_n life_n eternal_a â_o verse_n 8_o but_o to_o they_o that_o be_v of_o contention_n and_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o give_v credit_n to_o iniquity_n wrath_n and_o indignation_n â_o verse_n 9_o tribulation_n and_o anguish_n upon_o every_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o work_v evil_a of_o the_o jewe_n first_o and_o of_o the_o gentile_a greek_a â_o verse_n 10_o but_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o peace_n to_o every_o one_o that_o work_v good_a to_o the_o jew_n first_o and_o to_o the_o greek_a 34._o â_o verse_n 11_o for_o *_o there_o be_v no_o acception_n of_o person_n with_o god_n â_o verse_n 12_o for_o whosoever_o have_v sin_v without_o the_o law_n without_o the_o law_n shall_v perish_v and_o whosoever_o have_v sin_v in_o the_o law_n by_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v judge_v â_o verse_n 13_o for_o *_o â³_o not_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o law_n be_v just_a with_o god_n 21_o but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n â³_o shall_v be_v justify_v 22_o â_o verse_n 14_o for_o when_o the_o gentile_n which_o have_v not_o the_o law_n natural_o do_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o law_n the_o same_o not_o have_v the_o law_n themselves_o be_v a_o la_o to_o themselves_o â_o verse_n 15_o who_o show_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n their_o conscience_n give_v testimony_n to_o they_o and_o among_o themselves_o mutual_o their_o thought_n accuse_v or_o also_o defend_v â_o verse_n 16_o in_o the_o day_n when_o god_n shall_v judge_v the_o secret_n of_o man_n according_a to_o my_o gospel_n by_o jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 17_o but_o if_o thou_o be_v surname_v a_o jew_n and_o rest_v in_o the_o law_n and_o do_v glory_n in_o god_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o know_a his_n will_v and_o approve_v the_o more_o profitable_a thing_n instruct_v by_o the_o law_n â_o verse_n 19_o presume_v thou_o thyself_o be_v a_o leader_n of_o the_o blind_a a_o light_n of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o darkness_n â_o verse_n 20_o a_o teacher_n of_o the_o foolish_a a_o master_n of_o infant_n have_v the_o form_n of_o science_n &_o of_o verity_n in_o the_o law._n â_o verse_n 21_o thou_o therefore_o other_o that_o teach_v a_o other_o teach_v not_o thyself_o that_o preach_v man_n ought_v not_o to_o steal_v thou_o steal_v â_o verse_n 22_o that_o say_v man_n shall_v not_o commit_v advoutrie_n thou_o commit_v advoutrie_n
father_n of_o many_o nation_n have_v i_o appoint_v thou_o before_o god_n who_o believe_v thou_o do_v believe_v '_o who_o quicken_v the_o dead_a and_o call_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o as_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v â_o verse_n 18_o who_o contrary_a to_o hope_v believe_v in_o hope_n that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v the_o father_n of_o many_o nation_n 5._o according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v *_o say_v to_o he_o so_o shall_v thy_o seed_n be_v as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o he_o be_v not_o weaken_v in_o faith_n neither_o do_v he_o consider_v his_o own_o body_n now_o quite_o dead_a whereas_o he_o be_v almost_o a_o hundred_o year_n old_a and_o the_o dead_a matrice_n of_o sara_n â_o verse_n 20_o in_o the_o promise_n also_o of_o god_n he_o stagger_v not_o by_o distrust_n but_o be_v strengthen_v in_o faith_n give_v glory_n to_o god_n â_o verse_n 21_o most_o full_o know_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o promise_v he_o be_v able_a also_o to_o do_v â_o verse_n 22_o therefore_o be_v it_o also_o repute_v he_o to_o justice_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o it_o be_v not_o write_v only_o for_o he_o that_o it_o be_v repute_v he_o to_o justice_n â_o verse_n 24_o but_o also_o â³_o for_o we_o to_o who_o it_o shall_v be_v repute_v believe_v in_o he_o that_o raise_v up_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n from_o the_o dead_a â_o verse_n 25_o who_o be_v deliver_v up_o for_o our_o sin_n and_o rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n annotation_n chap._n four_o 1._o abraham_n the_o apostle_n dispute_v in_o this_o chapter_n as_o before_o against_o they_o that_o think_v they_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o their_o work_n do_v without_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o faith_n in_o he_o faith_n propose_v abraham_n for_o a_o example_n and_o prove_v that_o he_o have_v no_o justice_n nor_o estimation_n of_o justice_n before_o god_n by_o any_o work_n do_v before_o he_o have_v faith_n or_o that_o procee_v not_o of_o faith_n and_o god_n grace_n 2._o by_o worker_n if_o abraham_n do_v any_o commendable_a work_n before_o he_o believe_v christ_n as_o many_o philosopher_n do_v god_n man_n may_v count_v he_o just_a therefore_o but_o in_o god_n sign_n who_o accept_v nothing_o without_o faith_n in_o he_o or_o that_o procee_v not_o from_o his_o grace_n he_o shall_v never_o have_v have_v the_o estimation_n of_o a_o just_a man_n therefore_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n repute_v he_o as_o a_o just_a man_n give_v the_o cause_n thereof_o say_v abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v repute_v to_o he_o for_o justice_n 4_o to_o he_o that_o work_v justification_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o that_o presume_v of_o his_o own_o work_n as_o do_v of_o himself_o without_o faith_n god_n help_n and_o grace_n and_o say_v that_o grace_n or_o justification_n be_v give_v to_o he_o for_o his_o work_n this_o man_n do_v challenge_v his_o justification_n as_o debt_n and_o not_o as_o of_o favour_n and_o grace_n 5._o to_o he_o that_o work_v not_o he_o work_v not_o in_o this_o place_n that_o have_v no_o work_n or_o allege_v not_o his_o work_n do_v in_o his_o infidelity_n as_o cause_v of_o his_o justification_n but_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o procede_v of_o mere_a grace_n whereupon_o s._n augustine_n say_v know_v thou_o that_o faith_n find_v thou_o unjust_a and_o if_o faith_n give_v to_o thou_o make_v the_o just_a it_o find_v thou_o a_o wicked_a one_o who_o it_o may_v make_v just_a if_o it_o find_v thou_o wicked_a and_o of_o such_o a_o one_o make_v thou_o just_a what_o work_n have_v thou_o being_n then_o wicked_a none_o can_v thou_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v before_o thou_o beleeud_v believe_v then_o in_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o impious_a that_o thy_o good_a work_n may_v be_v good_a work_n in_o deed_n august_n in_o psal_n 31._o 6._o as_o david_n term_v the_o protestant_n for_o ãâã_d term_v translato_fw-la describe_v for_o that_o they_o will_v have_v the_o ignorant_a believe_v translation_n the_o whole_a nature_n &_o definition_n of_o justification_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o no_o grace_n or_o inherent_a justice_n give_v from_o god_n at_o al._n when_o the_o apostle_n will_v say_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o in_o the_o first_o justification_n god_n find_v no_o good_a work_n or_o merit_n to_o reward_n but_o only_a sin_n to_o forgive_v unto_o such_o as_o have_v faith_n in_o he_o 7._o cover_v 8._o not_o impute_v impute_v you_o may_v not_o gather_v as_o the_o heretic_n do_v of_o these_o term_n cover_v and_o not_o impute_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n be_v never_o true_o forgive_v but_o hide_v only_o for_o that_o derogate_v much_o to_o the_o force_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o which_o our_o offence_n be_v true_o remit_v 11._o he_o be_v the_o lamb_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o wash_v and_o blot_v out_o our_o sin_n therefore_o to_o cover_v they_o or_o not_o to_o impute_v they_o be_v not_o to_o charge_v we_o with_o our_o sin_n 5._o because_o by_o remission_n they_o be_v clean_o take_v away_o otherwise_o it_o be_v but_o a_o âeined_a forgiveness_n see_v s._n augustine_n in_o psal_n 3â_n enarrat_fw-la â_o 11._o a_o seal_n the_o heretic_n will_v prove_v hereby_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n give_v not_o grace_n or_o justice_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o they_o be_v note_n mark_n and_o badge_n only_o of_o our_o remission_n of_o sin_n have_v by_o faith_n before_o justification_n because_o abraham_n be_v just_a before_o and_o take_v this_o sacrament_n for_o a_o seal_n thereof_o only_o to_o which_o must_v be_v answer_v that_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o it_o be_v so_o in_o all_o because_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o patriarch_n who_o be_v just_a before_o and_o be_v therefore_o as_o it_o be_v the_o find_v of_o circumcision_n or_o he_o in_o who_o god_n will_v first_o establish_v the_o same_o no_o more_o than_o it_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n remit_v not_o sin_n to_o christ_n nor_o justify_v he_o therefore_o it_o have_v that_o effect_n in_o none_o look_v s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la contra_fw-la donatistas_n li._n 4._o c._n 24._o where_o you_o shall_v see_v that_o though_o not_o in_o abraham_n yet_o in_o isaac_n his_o son_n and_o so_o consequent_o in_o the_o rest_n the_o sacrament_n go_v before_o and_o justice_n follow_v 24._o for_o we_o to_o who_o it_o shall_v be_v repute_v by_o this_o it_o be_v most_o plain_a against_o our_o adversary_n that_o the_o say_v which_o be_v repute_v for_o justice_n to_o abraham_n be_v his_o belief_n of_o a_o article_n reveal_v to_o he_o by_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o assent_n and_o credit_v give_v to_o god_n speech_n as_o in_o we_o his_o posterity_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n justify_v it_o be_v here_o plain_o say_v that_o justice_n shall_v be_v repute_v to_o we_o by_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n and_o not_o by_o any_o fond_a special_a faith_n fiducia_fw-la or_o confidence_n of_o each_o man_n own_o salvation_n to_o establish_v the_o which_o fiction_n they_o make_v no_o account_n of_o the_o faith_n catholic_a that_o be_v wherewith_o we_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o only_o justifi_v but_o call_v it_o by_o contempt_n a_o historical_a faith_n so_o as_o they_o may_v term_v abraham_n faith_n and_o our_o lady_n faith_n of_o which_o it_o be_v *_o say_v 45._o beata_fw-la quae_fw-la credidisti_fw-la bless_v be_v thou_o that_o have_v believe_v and_o so_o in_o truth_n they_o deny_v as_o well_o the_o justification_n by_o faith_n as_o by_o work_n chap._n v._n have_v therefore_o through_o faith_n in_o christ_n obtain_v the_o beginning_n he_o show_v what_o great_a cause_n we_o have_v to_o hope_v for_o the_o accomplishment_n 12_o and_o then_o he_o procee_v in_o his_o argue_v and_o show_v that_o as_o by_o one_o âl_o be_v make_v sinner_n so_o by_o one_o all_o must_v he_o make_v just_a verse_n 1_o be_v justify_v therefore_o by_o faith_n martyr_n â³_o let_v we_o have_v peace_n towards_o god_n by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 2_o by_o whon_n also_o we_o have_v â³_o access_n through_o faith_n into_o this_o grace_n wherein_o we_o stand_v and_o glory_n tribulation_n in_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o not_o only_o this_o but_o also_o we_o glory_n in_o tribulation_n know_v that_o tribulation_n work_v patience_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o patience_n probation_n and_o â³_o probation_n hope_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o hope_n confound_v not_o because_o â³_o the_o charity_n of_o god_n be_v pour_v forth_o in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n
to_o fear_v lest_o i_o be_v injurious_a to_o peter_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o principality_n of_o apostleship_n it_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o any_o dignity_n of_o bishop_n whatsoever_o but_o if_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o chair_n or_o see_v differ_v inferior_a yet_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o martyr_n be_v one_o and_o who_o be_v so_o dull_a that_o can_v not_o see_v that_o the_o inferior_a though_o not_o by_o office_n and_o jurisdiction_n yet_o by_o the_o law_n of_o brotherly_a love_n and_o fraternal_a correption_n may_v reprehend_v his_o superior_a do_v ever_o any_o man_n wonder_v that_o a_o good_a priest_n or_o any_o virtuous_a person_n shall_v tell_v the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o great_a prelate_n or_o great_a prince_n in_o earth_n their_o fault_n pope_n may_v be_v reprehend_v and_o be_v just_o admonish_v of_o their_o fault_n and_o aught_o to_o take_v it_o in_o good_a part_n &_o so_o they_o do_v and_o ever_o have_v do_v rail_v when_o it_o come_v of_o zeal_n &_o love_n as_o of_o s._n paul_n irenaeus_n cyprian_n hierom_n augustine_n bernard_n but_o of_o simon_n magus_n novatus_fw-la julian_n wicleffe_n luther_n caluin_n beza_n that_o do_v it_o of_o malice_n &_o raâle_v no_o less_o at_o their_o virtue_n then_o their_o vice_n of_o such_o i_o say_v god_n prelate_n must_v not_o be_v teach_v nor_o correct_v though_o they_o must_v patient_o take_v it_o as_o our_o saviour_n do_v the_o like_a reproach_n of_o the_o malicious_a jew_n and_o as_o david_n do_v the_o malediction_n of_o semel_fw-la 2_o reg._n 16._o 11._o reprehensible_a the_o heretic_n hereof_o again_o infer_v that_o peter_n then_o do_v err_v in_o faith_n and_o therefore_o the_o pope_n may_v fail_v therein_o also_o to_o which_o we_o answer_n that_o howsoever_o other_o pope_n may_v err_v in_o their_o private_a teach_n or_o write_n behaviour_n whereof_o we_o have_v treat_v before_o in_o the_o annotation_n upon_o these_o word_n 32._o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o s._n peter_n do_v not_o here_o fail_v in_o faith_n nor_o err_v in_o doctrine_n or_o knowledge_n for_o it_o be_v conversation_n be_v non_fw-la prâdicationis_fw-la vitium_fw-la as_o tertullian_n say_v de_fw-fr prescript_n nu_fw-la 7._o it_o be_v a_o default_n in_o conversation_n life_n or_o regiment_n which_o may_v be_v commit_v of_o any_o man_n be_v he_o never_o so_o holy_a and_o not_o in_o doctrine_n s._n augustine_n and_o whosoever_o make_v most_o of_o it_o think_v not_o otherwise_o of_o it_o but_o s._n hierom_n and_o etc._n many_o other_o holy_a father_n deârâe_v it_o to_o have_v be_v no_o fault_n at_o all_o nor_o any_o other_o thing_n then_o s._n paul_n himself_o do_v upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n &_o that_o this_o whole_a combat_n be_v a_o set_a thing_n agree_v upon_o between_o they_o it_o be_v a_o school_n point_n much_o debate_v betwixt_o s._n hierom_n and_o s._n augustine_n ep_v 9_o 11._o 19_o apud_fw-la august_n chap._n iii_o by_o their_o own_o conversion_n at_o the_o first_o 6_o and_z by_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n and_o promise_v make_v to_o he_o he_o show_v that_o the_o way_n to_o obtain_v the_o benediction_n be_v to_o seek_v unto_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n 10_o see_v also_o that_o the_o law_n curse_v every_o one_o that_o have_v not_o evermore_o keep_v the_o law._n 15_o and_o that_o the_o law_n be_v not_o give_v to_o alter_v god_n testament_n 19_o but_o to_o convince_v the_o jowe_n of_o sin_n 2d_o and_o so_o to_o be_v their_o padagogue_n or_o leader_n unto_o christ_n 25_o and_o then_o to_o cease_v verse_n 1_o o_o senseless_a galatian_n who_o have_v other_o bewitch_v you_o not_o to_o obey_v the_o truth_n before_o who_o eye_n jesus_n christ_n be_v proscribe_v be_v crucify_v among_o you_o â_o verse_n 2_o this_o only_a i_o will_v learn_v of_o you_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n do_v you_o receive_v the_o spirit_n or_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o faith_n â_o verse_n 3_o be_v you_o so_o foolish_a that_o whereas_o you_o begin_v with_o the_o spirit_n now_o you_o will_v be_v consummate_a with_o the_o flesh_n â_o verse_n 4_o have_v you_o suffer_v so_o great_a thing_n without_o cause_n if_o yet_o without_o cause_n â_o verse_n 5_o he_o therefore_o that_o give_v you_o the_o spirit_n and_o work_v miracle_n among_o you_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n or_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o faith_n do_v he_o it_o â_o verse_n 6_o as_o 3._o abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v repute_v to_o he_o unto_o justice_n â_o verse_n 7_o know_v you_o therefore_o that_o they_o that_o be_v apostle_n of_o faith_n the_o same_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o the_o scripture_n foresee_v that_o god_n justifi_v the_o gentile_n by_o faith_n show_v unto_o abraham_n before_o 3._o that_o in_o thou_o shall_v all_o nation_n be_v bless_v â_o verse_n 9_o therefore_o they_o that_o be_v of_o faith_n shall_v be_v bless_v with_o the_o faithful_a abraham_n â_o verse_n 10_o for_o whosoever_o be_v of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n be_v under_o curse_n 26._o for_o it_o be_v write_v â³_o curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o abide_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o â_o verse_n 11_o but_o that_o in_o the_o law_n no_o man_n be_v justify_v with_o god_n it_o be_v manifest_a because_o the_o just_a â³_o live_v by_o faith_n 2._o â_o verse_n 12_o but_o the_o law_n be_v not_o by_o faith_n but_o he_o that_o do_v those_o thing_n shall_v live_v in_o they_o 1._o â_o verse_n 13_o christ_n have_v redeem_v we_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n 18._o be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o because_o it_o be_v write_v 21._o curse_v be_v every_o one_o that_o hang_v on_o a_o tree_n â_o verse_n 14_o that_o on_o the_o gentile_n the_o blessing_n of_o abraham_n may_v be_v make_v in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o faith_n â_o verse_n 15_o brethren_n i_o speak_v according_a to_o man_n yet_o a_o man_n testament_n be_v confirm_v no_o man_n despise_v pentecost_n or_o further_a dispose_v â_o verse_n 16_o to_o abraham_n be_v the_o promise_n say_v and_o to_o his_o seed_n he_o say_v not_o 18._o and_o to_o seed_n as_o in_o many_o but_o as_o in_o one_o and_o to_o thy_o seed_n which_o be_v christ_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o this_o i_o say_v the_o restament_n be_v confirm_v of_o god_n the_o law_n which_o be_v make_v after_o four_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o year_n make_v not_o void_a to_o frustrate_v the_o promise_n â_o verse_n 18_o for_o if_o the_o inheritance_n be_v of_o the_o law_n now_o not_o of_o promise_n but_o god_n give_v it_o to_o abraham_n by_o promise_n â_o verse_n 19_o why_o be_v the_o law_n then_o it_o be_v put_v for_o transgression_n until_o the_o seed_n come_v to_o who_o he_o have_v promise_v ordain_v by_o angel_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o mediator_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o a_o mediator_n be_v not_o of_o one_o but_o god_n be_v one_o â_o verse_n 21_o be_v the_o law_n then_o against_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n god_n forbid_v for_o if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o law_n give_v that_o can_v justify_v undoubted_o justice_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o law._n â_o verse_n 22_o but_o the_o scripture_n *_o have_v conclude_v all_o thing_n under_o sin_n 32._o that_o the_o promise_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v give_v to_o they_o that_o believe_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 23_o but_o before_o the_o faith_n come_v under_o the_o law_n we_o be_v keep_v shut_v up_o unto_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v to_o be_v reveal_v â_o verse_n 24_o therefore_o the_o law_n be_v our_o pedagogue_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o faith_n â_o verse_n 25_o but_o when_o the_o faith_n come_v now_o we_o be_v not_o under_o a_o pedagogue_n â_o verse_n 26_o for_o you_o be_v all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 27_o for_o as_o many_o of_o you_o as_o be_v baptize_v in_o christ_n â³_o have_v put_v on_o christ_n â_o verse_n 28_o there_o be_v not_o jewe_v nor_o greek_a there_o be_v not_o bond_n nor_o free_a there_o be_v not_o male_a nor_o female_a for_o all_o you_o be_v one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 29_o and_o if_o you_o be_v christ_n then_o be_v you_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n heir_n according_a to_o promise_v annotation_n chap._n iii_o 1â_n curse_a be_v commandment_n by_o this_o place_n the_o heretic_n will_v prove_v that_o no_o man_n be_v just_o true_o before_o god_n all_o be_v guilty_a of_o damnation_n and_o god_n curse_v because_o they_o keep_v not_o every_o jot_n of_o the_o law._n where_o in_o deed_n the_o apostle_n mean_v not_o such_o as_o offend_v venial_o
passion_n it_o have_v in_o deed_n in_o itself_o to_o profit_v all_o but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o drunken_a it_o heal_v not_o 11._o inexplicable_a capacity_n intend_v to_o treat_v more_o large_o and_o particular_o of_o christ_n or_o melchisedek_n priesthood_n he_o forwarn_v they_o that_o the_o mystery_n thereof_o be_v far_o pass_v their_o capacity_n and_o that_o through_o their_o feebleness_n in_o faith_n and_o weakness_n of_o understanding_n he_o be_v force_v to_o omit_v diverse_a deep_a point_n concern_v the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a la_o among_o which_o no_o doubt_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n call_v mass_n be_v a_o principal_a &_o pertinent_a matter_n which_o the_o apostle_n the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n use_v not_o to_o treat_v of_o so_o large_o and_o particular_o in_o their_o write_n which_o may_v come_v to_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o unfaithful_a who_o of_o all_o thing_n take_v soon_o scandal_n of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n as_o we_o see_v io._n 6._o he_o speak_v to_o the_o hebrews_n say_v s._n hierom_n ep_v 126_o that_o be_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o not_o to_o faithful_a man_n to_o who_o he_o may_v have_v be_v hold_n to_o utter_v the_o sacrament_n and_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a to_o talk_v much_o to_o they_o of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o resemblance_n of_o christ_n death_n when_o they_o think_v not_o right_a of_o christ_n death_n itself_o which_o the_o apostle_n wisdom_n and_o silence_n our_o adversary_n wicked_o abuse_v against_o the_o holy_a mass_n chap._n vi_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o be_v perfect_a scholar_n and_o not_o to_o need_v to_o be_v catechuman_n again_o 4_o consider_v they_o can_v not_o be_v baptize_v again_o 9_o and_o remember_v their_o former_a good_a work_n for_o the_o which_o god_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o perform_v they_o his_o promise_n if_o they_o fail_v not_o to_o imitate_v abraham_n by_o perseverance_n in_o the_o faith_n with_o patience_n 20_o and_o so_o end_v his_o digression_n and_o return_v to_o the_o matter_n of_o christ_n priesthood_n verse_n 1_o wherefore_o intermit_a the_o word_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o perfection_n not_o again_o lay_v â³_o the_o foundation_n of_o penance_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o of_o faith_n towards_o god_n â_o verse_n 2_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o baptism_n and_o of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o of_o eternal_a judgement_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o this_o shall_v we_o do_v if_o god_n will_v permit_v 26._o â_o verse_n 4_o for_o *_o it_o be_v â³_o impossible_a for_o they_o that_o be_v once_o illuminate_v have_v taste_v also_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n â_o verse_n 5_o have_v moreover_o taste_v the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v â_o verse_n 6_o and_o be_v fall_v to_o be_v renew_v again_o to_o penance_n crucify_a again_o to_o themselves_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o make_v he_o a_o mockery_n â_o verse_n 7_o for_o the_o earth_n drink_v the_o rain_n often_o come_v upon_o it_o &_o bring_v forth_o grass_n commodious_a for_o they_o by_o who_o it_o be_v till_v receive_v blessing_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o bring_v forth_o thorn_n and_o brier_n it_o be_v reprobate_a and_o very_o near_o a_o curse_n who_o end_n be_v to_o be_v burn_v â_o verse_n 9_o but_o life_n we_o confident_o trust_v of_o you_o my_o best_a belove_a better_a thing_n and_o near_o to_o salvation_n although_o we_o speak_v thus_o â_o verse_n 10_o for_o â³_o god_n be_v not_o unjust_a that_o he_o shall_v forget_v your_o work_n &_o love_n which_o you_o have_v show_v in_o his_o name_n which_o have_v minister_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o do_v minister_v â_o verse_n 11_o and_o our_o desire_n be_v that_o every_o one_o of_o you_o show_v forth_o the_o same_o carefulness_n to_o the_o accomplish_n of_o hope_n unto_o the_o end_n â_o verse_n 12_o that_o you_o become_v not_o slothful_a but_o imitator_n of_o they_o which_o by_o faith_n and_o patience_n shall_v inherit_v the_o promise_n â_o verse_n 13_o for_o god_n promise_v to_o abraham_n because_o he_o have_v none_o great_a by_o whon_n he_o may_v swear_v 16._o he_o swear_v by_o himself_o â_o verse_n 14_o saying_n *_o unless_o blessing_n i_o shall_v bless_v thou_o and_o multiply_v shall_v multiply_v thou_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o so_o patient_o endure_v he_o obtain_v the_o promise_n â_o verse_n 16_o for_o man_n swear_v by_o a_o great_a than_o themselves_o and_o the_o end_n of_o all_o their_o controversy_n for_o the_o confirmation_n be_v a_o oath_n â_o verse_n 17_o wherein_o god_n meaning_n more_o abundant_o to_o show_v to_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o promise_n the_o stability_n of_o his_o counsel_n he_o interpose_v a_o oath_n â_o verse_n 18_o that_o by_o two_o thing_n unmoveable_a whereby_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o god_n to_o lie_v we_o may_v have_v a_o most_o strong_a comfort_n who_o have_v flee_v to_o hold_v fast_o the_o hope_n propose_v â_o verse_n 19_o which_o we_o have_v as_o a_o anchor_n of_o the_o soul_n sure_a and_o firm_a and_o go_v in_o into_o the_o inner_a part_n of_o the_o vele_n â_o verse_n 20_o where_o jesus_n the_o precursor_n for_o we_o be_v enter_v make_v a_o high_a priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n annotation_n chap._n vi_o 1._o the_o foundation_n of_o penance_n thereof_o we_o see_v hereby_o what_o the_o first_o ground_n of_o christian_a institution_n or_o catechism_n be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o that_o there_o be_v ever_o a_o necessary_a instruction_n and_o belief_n of_o certain_a point_n have_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o tradition_n before_o man_n come_v to_o the_o scripture_n which_o can_v not_o treat_v of_o thing_n so_o particular_o as_o be_v requisite_a for_o the_o teach_n of_o all_o necessary_a ground_n among_o these_o point_n be_v the_o 12_o article_n contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o doctrine_n of_o penance_n before_o baptism_n the_o manner_n and_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n the_o sacrament_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n after_o baptism_n call_v confirmation_n the_o article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n judgement_n and_o such_o like_a without_o which_o thing_n first_o lay_v if_o one_o shall_v be_v send_v to_o pick_v his_o faith_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n there_o will_v be_v mad_a rule_n quick_o see_v s._n augustine_n in_o exposit_n inchoat_fw-la ep_v ad_fw-la ro._n versut_fw-la finem_fw-la 4._o impossible_a heresy_n how_o hard_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v and_o how_o dangerous_o they_o be_v read_v of_o the_o unlearned_a or_o of_o the_o proud_a be_v they_o never_o so_o well_o learned_a this_o one_o place_n may_v teach_v us._n 2._o whereat_o the_o novatians_n of_o old_a do_v so_o stumble_v that_o they_o think_v and_o heretical_o teach_v that_o none_o fall_v into_o any_o mortal_a sin_n after_o baptism_n can_v be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n or_o penance_n in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o to_o a_o contentious_a man_n that_o will_v follow_v his_o own_o sense_n or_o the_o bare_a word_n without_o regard_n of_o the_o church_n sense_n and_o rule_v of_o faith_n after_o which_o every_o scripture_n must_v be_v expound_v the_o apostle_n speech_n do_v here_o sound_a even_o as_o to_o the_o simple_a novatus_fw-la and_o to_o the_o heretic_n that_o submit_v not_o his_o sense_n to_o the_o church_n judgement_n certain_a place_n of_o this_o same_o epistle_n seem_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n to_o stand_v against_o the_o daily_a oblation_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o yet_o in_o truth_n make_v no_o more_o for_o that_o purpose_n than_o this_o text_n we_o now_o stand_v on_o serve_v the_o novatians_n as_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o place_n it_o shall_v be_v declare_v and_o let_v the_o good_a reader_n beware_v here_o also_o of_o the_o protestant_n exposition_n for_o they_o be_v herein_o worse_o than_o novatian_n novatians_n special_o such_o as_o precise_o follow_v caluin_n hold_v impious_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o one_o that_o forsake_v entire_o his_o faith_n that_o be_v become_v a_o apostata_fw-la or_o a_o heretic_n to_o be_v receive_v to_o penance_n or_o to_o god_n mercy_n to_o establish_v which_o false_a and_o damnable_a sense_n hebr._n these_o fellow_n make_v nothing_o of_o s._n ambrose_n s._n chrysostoms_n and_o the_o other_o father_n exposition_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a church_n sense_n that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v of_o that_o penance_n which_o be_v do_v before_o and_o in_o baptism_n place_n which_o be_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v baptize_v again_o and_o thereby_o to_o be_v renovate_v and_o illuminate_v to_o die_v be_v bury_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o second_o time_n in_o
two_o word_n more_o than_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a which_o though_o it_o may_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n and_o s._n augustine_n so_o expound_v it_o yet_o they_o shall_v not_o make_v his_o exposition_n the_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n special_o whereas_o he_o only_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o beza_n confess_v so_o expound_v it_o 33._o wrought_a justice_n man_n be_v not_o just_a by_o belief_n only_o as_o the_o protestant_n affirm_v but_o by_o work_v justice_n only_o and_o we_o may_v note_v that_o in_o all_o this_o long_a commendation_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a person_n their_o good_a work_n be_v also_o special_o recount_v as_o rahab_n harbour_v the_o spy_n abraham_n offering_n his_o son_n which_o their_o work_n s._n james_n do_v inculcate_v 2._o noâs_v make_v the_o ark_n gen._n 6._o abel_n better_a oblation_n than_o cain_n gen._n 4._o &_o hebr._n 11._o v._o 4._o and_o so_o forth_o therefore_o s._n clement_n alexandrinus_n say_v 240._o that_o the_o say_v person_n and_o other_o be_v lust_n by_o say_v and_o obedience_n by_o faith_n and_o hospitality_n by_o faith_n and_o patience_n by_o faith_n and_o humility_n the_o apostle_n purpose_v then_o be_v nothing_o else_o faith_n but_o to_o prove_v to_o the_o hebrews_n who_o make_v so_o great_a account_n of_o their_o patriarch_n and_o forefather_n and_o their_o famous_a act_n that_o all_o these_o glorious_a personage_n and_o their_o work_n be_v commendable_a and_o acceptable_a only_o through_o the_o faith_n they_o have_v of_o christ_n without_o which_o say_v none_o of_o all_o their_o life_n and_o work_n shall_v have_v profit_v they_o any_o whit_n the_o gentile_n do_v many_o noble_a act_n as_o heretic_n may_v also_o do_v which_o be_v of_o no_o estimation_n before_o god_n because_o they_o lack_v faith_n and_o that_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o of_o all_o other_o passage_n where_o he_o commend_v faith_n further_o prove_v special_o in_o this_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n that_o all_o their_o sacrifice_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o figure_n and_o attestation_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o death_n all_o which_o high_a resolution_n &_o conclusion_n against_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v the_o true_a faith_n &_o religion_n the_o heretic_n of_o our_o time_n ignorant_o and_o brutish_o abuse_v against_o christian_a work_n sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n which_o the_o apostle_n mean_v special_o to_o commend_v and_o establish_v by_o his_o high_a commendation_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o christ_n 40._o without_o we_o shall_v not_o christ_n the_o father_n before_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v accomplish_v that_o be_v not_o admit_v to_o the_o heavenly_a joy_n vision_n and_o fruition_n of_o god_n till_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o of_o the_o new_a la_o be_v associate_v to_o they_o and_o the_o way_n to_o everlasting_a glory_n open_v by_o our_o lord_n death_n and_o ascension_n neither_o shall_v either_o they_o or_o we_o be_v full_o perfect_v in_o glory_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n till_o the_o general_a resurrection_n god_n providence_n be_v so_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o one_o be_v consummate_v without_o a_o other_o all_o be_v of_o one_o faith_n and_o redeem_v by_o one_o lord_n christ_n chap._n xii_o by_o the_o foresay_a example_n he_o exhort_v they_o to_o patience_n 2_o and_o by_o example_n of_o christ_n himself_o crucify_v 5_o and_o because_o this_o discipline_n it_o a_o argument_n that_o they_o be_v god_n child_n 9_o with_o whose_o rod_n they_o shall_v be_v much_o more_o content_a than_o wish_v that_o of_o their_o carnal_a father_n and_o because_o it_o bring_v justification_n 12_o exhort_v they_o therefore_o to_o pluck_v up_o their_o heart_n and_o to_o take_v fast_a footing_n 18_o consider_v that_o all_o bring_v now_o so_o sweet_a and_o not_o terrible_a as_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n their_o damnation_n if_o they_o refuse_v to_o hear_v will_v be_v so_o much_o the_o great_a verse_n 1_o and_o therefore_o we_o also_o have_v so_o great_a a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n put_v upon_o we_o 8._o *_o lay_v away_o all_o weight_n and_o sin_n that_o compass_v we_o 1._o by_o patience_n let_v we_o run_v to_o the_o fight_n propose_v unto_o we_o â_o verse_n 2_o look_v on_o the_o author_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o consummator_n jesus_n who_o joy_n be_v propose_v unto_o he_o sustain_v the_o cross_n contemn_v confusion_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 3_o for_o think_v diligent_o upon_o he_o which_o sustain_v of_o sinner_n such_o contradiction_n against_o himself_o that_o you_o be_v not_o weary_v faint_v in_o your_o mind_n â_o verse_n 4_o for_o you_o have_v not_o yet_o resist_v unto_o blood_n repugn_v against_o sin_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o you_o have_v forget_v the_o consolation_n which_o speak_v to_o you_o as_o it_o be_v to_o child_n say_v 11._o my_o son_n neglect_v not_o the_o discipline_n of_o our_o lord_n neither_o âe_v thou_o weary_v while_o thou_o be_v rebuke_v of_o he_o â_o verse_n 6_o for_o who_o our_o lord_n love_v 19_o he_o chasten_v and_o â_o he_o scourge_v every_o child_n that_o he_o receive_v â_o verse_n 7_o perseuêre_fw-la you_o in_o discipline_n as_o unto_o child_n do_v god_n offer_v himself_o to_o you_o for_o what_o son_n be_v there_o who_o the_o father_n do_v not_o correct_v â_o verse_n 8_o but_o if_o you_o be_v without_o discipline_n whereof_o all_o be_v make_v partaker_n then_o be_v you_o bastard_n &_o not_o child_n â_o verse_n 9_o moreover_o the_o father_n in_o deed_n of_o our_o flesh_n we_o have_v for_o instructor_n and_o we_o do_v reverence_v they_o shall_v we_o not_o much_o more_o obey_v the_o father_n of_o spirit_n &_o live_v â_o verse_n 10_o and_o they_o in_o deed_n for_o a_o time_n of_o few_o day_n according_a to_o their_o will_v instruct_v we_o but_o he_o to_o that_o which_o be_v profitable_a in_o receive_v of_o his_o sanctification_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o all_o discipline_n for_o the_o present_a certes_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v of_o joy_n but_o of_o sorrow_n but_o afterward_o it_o will_v render_v to_o they_o that_o be_v exercise_v by_o it_o most_o peaceable_a fruit_n of_o justice_n â_o verse_n 12_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n stretch_v up_o the_o slack_v hand_n and_o the_o loose_a knee_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o make_v straight_a step_n to_o your_o foot_n that_o no_o man_n halt_v err_v 18._o but_o rather_o be_v heal_v â_o verse_n 14_o *_o follow_n peace_n with_o all_o man_n and_o holiness_n without_o which_o no_o man_n shall_v see_v god_n â_o verse_n 15_o look_v diligent_o lest_o any_o man_n us._n be_v want_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n lest_o any_o root_n of_o bitterness_n spring_v up_o do_v hinder_v and_o by_o it_o many_o be_v pollute_v â_o verse_n 16_o lest_o there_o be_v any_o fornicator_n or_o profane_a person_n esau_n as_o esau_n *_o who_o for_o one_o dish_n of_o meat_n sell_v his_o first-birth-rightes_a 33._o â_o verse_n 17_o for_o know_v you_o that_o afterward_o also_o desire_v to_o inherit_v the_o benediction_n he_o be_v reprobate_v 38._o *_o for_o â_o he_o find_v not_o place_n of_o repentance_n although_o with_o tear_n he_o have_v seek_v it_o â_o verse_n 18_o for_o you_o be_v not_o come_v to_o *_o a_o palpable_a mount_n 20._o and_o a_o burning_z accessible'fire_n and_o whirlwind_v and_o darkness_n and_o storm_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o the_o sound_n of_o trumpet_n &_o voice_n of_o word_n which_o they_o that_o hear_v excuse_v themselves_o that_o the_o word_n may_v not_o be_v speak_v to_o they_o â_o verse_n 20_o for_o they_o do_v not_o hear_v that_o which_o be_v say_v and_o if_o a_o beast_n shall_v touch_v the_o mount_n 12._o it_o shall_v be_v stone_v â_o verse_n 21_o and_o so_o terrible_a be_v it_o which_o be_v see_v moses_n say_v i_o be_o fright_v and_o tremble_v â_o verse_n 22_o but_o himself_o you_o be_v come_v to_o mount_v zion_n and_o the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n heavenly_a jerusalem_n and_o the_o assembly_n of_o many_o thousand_o angel_n â_o verse_n 23_o &_o the_o church_n of_o the_o firstborn_a which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o just_a ãâã_d make_v perfect_a â_o verse_n 24_o and_o the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n jesus_n and_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o blood_n speak_v better_a than_o *_o abel_n â_o verse_n 25_o see_v that_o you_o refuse_v he_o not_o speak_v 10._o for_o if_o they_o escape_v not_o refuse_v he_o that_o speak_v upon_o the_o earth_n much_o more_o we_o that_o turn_v away_o from_o he_o speak_v to_o we_o from_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 26_o who_o voice_n move_v the_o earth_n then_o but_o now_o he_o promise_v 7._o
the_o devil_n bind_v yea_o it_o be_v to_o make_v antichrist_n and_o the_o devil_n weaker_n towards_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o before_o demonstration_n and_o the_o truth_n better_a to_o be_v know_v and_o the_o faith_n more_o common_a the_o near_a we_o come_v to_o the_o same_o judgement_n which_o be_v express_o *_o against_o the_o gospel_n and_o this_o prophecy_n of_o s._n john_n we_o see_v that_o the_o sect_n of_o luther_n 24._o caluin_n and_o other_o be_v more_o spread_v through_o the_o world_n than_o they_o be_v ever_o before_o 8._o and_o consequent_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o religion_n lessen_v and_o his_o power_n of_o punish_v or_o as_o they_o call_v it_o persecute_v the_o say_a sectary_n through_o the_o multitude_n of_o his_o adversary_n diminish_v how_o then_o be_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n who_o force_n shall_v be_v great_a at_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o world_n than_o before_o or_o how_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o but_o these_o sectâmaisters_n shall_v be_v antichrist_n near_o precursor_n that_o make_v christ_n chief_a minister_n &_o the_o church_n chief_a govelnour_n that_o have_v be_v these_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o to_o be_v antichristes_n â_o and_o themselves_o and_o their_o sect_n to_o be_v true_a that_o come_v so_o near_o the_o time_n of_o the_o devil_n lose_v and_o seduction_n &_o of_o the_o personal_a reign_n of_o antichrist_n 8._o the_o camp_n of_o the_o saint_n world_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o say_v 20_o book_n de_fw-fr cluiâ_n dei_fw-la cap._n 11._o it_o be_v not_o say_v he_o to_o be_v take_v that_o the_o persecutor_n shall_v gather_v to_o any_o place_n as_o though_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o saint_n or_o the_o belove_a city_n shall_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n which_o in_o deed_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n spread_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o therefore_o wheresoever_o the_o church_n shall_v then_o be_v which_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o nation_n even_o they_o for_o so_o much_o be_v insinuate_v by_o this_o latitude_n of_o the_o earth_n here_o specify_v there_o shall_v the_o tent_n of_o saint_n be_v and_o the_o belove_a city_n of_o god_n and_o there_o shall_v she_o be_v besiege_v by_o all_o her_o enemy_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o every_o country_n where_o she_o be_v nation_n in_o most_o cruel_a and_o forcible_a sort_n so_o write_v this_o profound_a holy_a doctor_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o as_o now_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o england_n scotland_n flanders_n and_o such_o like_a be_v persecute_v by_o their_o enemy_n in_o those_o country_n so_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n of_o all_o nation_n as_o of_o italy_n spain_n france_n and_o all_o other_o which_o now_o be_v quiet_a shall_v be_v assault_v as_o now_o the_o foresay_a be_v and_o much_o more_o for_o that_o the_o general_a persecution_n of_o the_o whole_a shall_v be_v great_a then_o the_o particular_a persecution_n of_o any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n 9_o there_o come_v down_o a_o fire_n heaven_n it_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n say_v s._n augustine_n ib._n c._n 12_o into_o which_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v cast_v after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n but_o of_o a_o extraordinary_a help_n that_o god_n will_v send_v from_o heaven_n to_o give_v succourse_n to_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o church_n that_o then_o shall_v fight_v against_o the_o wicked_a or_o the_o very_a fervent_a and_o burn_a zeal_n of_o religion_n and_o god_n honour_n which_o god_n will_v kindle_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o be_v constant_a against_o all_o the_o force_n of_o that_o great_a persecution_n 12._o an_o other_o book_n this_o be_v the_o book_n of_o god_n knowledge_n or_o predestination_n judgement_n wherein_o that_o which_o before_o be_v hide_v to_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v open_v and_o wherein_o the_o true_a record_n of_o every_o man_n work_n shall_v be_v contain_v and_o they_o have_v their_o judgement_n diverse_o according_a to_o their_o work_n and_o not_o according_a to_o faith_n only_o or_o lack_v of_o faith_n only_o for_o all_o infidel_n as_o turk_n obstinate_a âewes_n and_o heretic_n shall_v never_o come_v to_o that_o examination_n be_v otherwise_o condemn_v chap._n xxi_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v make_v new_a part_n s._n john_n see_v the_o new_a city_n jerusalem_n prepare_v and_o adorn_v for_o the_o spouse_n of_o the_o lamb_n 6_o the_o just_a be_v glorify_v church_n 7_o and_o the_o wicked_a thrust_n into_o the_o pool_n of_o fire_n 12_o the_o brickwall_n and_o gate_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o city_n be_v describe_v and_o measure_v 18_o all_o which_o be_v gold_n and_o crystal_n precious_a stone_n and_o pearl_n verse_n 1_o and_o i_o see_v a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n 21._o for_o *_o the_o first_o heaven_n church_n and_o the_o first_o earth_n be_v go_v &_o the_o sea_n now_o be_v not_o 13._o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o i_o john_n see_v triumphant_a the_o holy_a city_n jerusalem_n new_a descend_v from_o heaven_n prepare_v of_o god_n as_o a_o bride_n adorn_v for_o her_o husband_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o i_o hear_v a_o loud_a voice_n from_o the_o throne_n say_v behold_v humanity_n the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n with_o man_n and_o the_o will_v dwell_n with_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v his_o people_n 8._o and_o he_o god_n with_o they_o shall_v be_v their_o god_n 17._o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o *_o god_n shall_v mortality_n wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n and_o death_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o not_o mourning_n nor_o cry_v neither_o shall_v there_o be_v sorrow_o any_o more_o the_o which_o '_o first_o thing_n be_v go_v â_o verse_n 5_o and_o he_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o throne_n 19_o say_v *_o behold_v i_o make_v all_o thing_n new_a â¢_o and_n he_o say_v to_o i_o write_v because_o these_o word_n be_v most_o faithful_a and_o true_a â_o verse_n 6_o and_o he_o say_v to_o i_o it_o be_v do_v 13._o *_o i_o be_o alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n to_o he_o that_o thirst_v i_o will_v give_v of_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n gratis_o â_o verse_n 7_o he_o that_o shall_v overcome_v triumphant_a shall_v possess_v these_o thing_n and_o i_o will_v be_v his_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o damn_v to_o the_o fearful_a and_o incredulous_a and_o execrable_a and_o murderer_n and_o fornicator_n and_o sorcerer_n and_o idolater_n and_o all_o liar_n their_o part_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o pool_n burn_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n which_o be_v the_o second_o death_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o there_o come_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o angel_n that_o have_v the_o vial_n full_a of_o the_o seven_o last_o plague_n vision_n and_o speak_v with_o i_o say_v come_v &_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o bride_n the_o wife_n of_o the_o lamb_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o he_o take_v i_o up_o in_o spirit_n unto_o a_o mountain_n great_a and_o high_a and_o he_o show_v i_o the_o holy_a city_n jerusalem_n descend_v out_o of_o heaven_n from_o god_n â_o verse_n 11_o triumphant_a have_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o light_n thereof_o like_a to_o a_o prerious_a stone_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o iaspetr_n stone_n even_o as_o crystal_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o it_o have_v a_o brickwall_n great_a and_o high_a have_v twelue_fw-la gates_z and_o in_o the_o gate_n twelue_fw-mi angel_n &_o name_n write_v thereon_o which_o be_v church_n the_o name_n of_o the_o twelue_fw-mi tribe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israël_n â_o verse_n 13_o on_o the_o east_n three_o gate_n and_o on_o the_o north_n three_o gate_n and_o on_o the_o south_n three_o gate_n and_o on_o the_o west_n three_o gate_n â_o verse_n 14_o and_o the_o brickwall_n of_o the_o city_n have_v twelue_fw-la foundation_n and_o in_o they_o twelue_fw-mi name_n of_o the_o twelue_fw-mi apostle_n of_o the_o lamb_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o he_o that_o speak_v with_o i_o have_v a_o measure_n of_o a_o reed_n of_o gold_n to_o measure_v the_o city_n and_o the_o gate_n thereof_o and_o the_o brickwall_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o carââally_o the_o city_n be_v situate_v quadrangle-wise_a and_o the_o length_n thereof_o be_v as_o great_a as_o also_o the_o breadth_n and_o he_o measure_v the_o city_n with_o the_o reed_n for_o twelue_v thousand_o furlonge_v &_o the_o length_n and_o height_n and_o breadth_n thereof_o be_v equal_a â_o verse_n 17_o and_o he_o measure_v the_o brickwall_n thereof_o of_o a_o hundred_o forty_o four_o cubit_n the_o measure_n of_o a_o man_n which_o be_v of_o a_o angel_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o the_o build_n of_o the_o brickwall_n thereof_o be_v of_o jasper_n stone_n but_o the_o city_n itself_o â_o pure_a gold_n like_a to_o pure_a glass_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o brickwall_n of_o
cain_n balaam_n corè_fw-la 695._o 704._o to_o the_o devil_n himself_o 244_o mark_fw-mi al_n the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n p._n 123._o 124._o 240_o mark_fw-mi 556._o 558._o 679._o 741._o false-prophet_n false_a christ_n lie_v master_n foretell_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n 119_o mark_fw-mi 68_o and_o 69_o and_o 669_o mark_fw-mi many_o master_n 648._o many_o antichriste_n 679_o nu_fw-la 18._o raven_a wolf_n 19_o 353._o thief_n not_o enter_v by_o the_o door_n 248_o m._n 250._o prophesy_v of_o and_o lively_o describe_v by_o s._n paul_n s._n peter_n s._n jude_n etc._n etc._n 352._o 573._o 574._o 669._o 670._o 672._o 693._o locust_n 715._o the_o cause_n that_o man_n fall_v to_o heresy_n 565._o mar_v 583._o heaven_n shut_v until_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n p._n 9_o nu_fw-la 16._o p._n 621._o mark_fw-mi p._n 633._o see_v limbus_n patrum_fw-la difference_n of_o reward_n and_o glory_n in_o heaven_n p._n 37._o 58._o 430._o 465._o mark_fw-mi 534._o nu_fw-la 1._o 259._o mark_fw-mi see_v merit_n work_n reward_n hospitality_n towards_o the_o afflict_a for_o religion_n 27_o mark_fw-mi 28._o nu_fw-la 41._o 505_o mark_fw-mi see_v alm_n what_o a_o heinous_a salt_n it_o be_v not_o to_o receive_v and_o harbour_v catholic_a preacher_n and_o priest_n 163._o mark_fw-mi i_o jesus_n in_o english_a saviour_n 4_o mark_fw-mi this_o name_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v and_o reverence_v 530._o it_o work_v miracle_n 112._o 299_o mark_fw-mi the_o force_n thereof_o against_o devil_n ibid._n and_o 577._o answer_n to_o the_o sophistical_a argument_n use_v by_o heretic_n against_o the_o reverence_n do_v to_o this_o name_n 530._o by_o irreverence_n thereunto_o they_o prepare_v the_o way_n to_o antichrist_n 723._o idol_n in_o all_o the_o bible_n signify_v the_o false_a god_n of_o the_o pagan_n 687_o 383_o mar_v the_o caluiniste_n apply_v the_o word_n against_o sacred_a image_n be_v conden_v long_o since_o by_o the_o 2_o council_n of_o nice_a 687._o see_v image_n they_o be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o translate_n image_n for_o idol_n ibid._n heresy_n be_v the_o idol_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n pag._n 448._o image_n â_o 345._o 623._o 687._o 688._o they_o have_v god_n own_o warrant_n 623._o 688._o their_o difference_n from_o idol_n 687._o 688._o how_o they_o be_v adore_v 530._o 633._o their_o antiquity_n 24._o 688._o their_o fruit_n and_o commodity_n 345._o 688._o image_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n and_o of_o angel_n 345._o imagebreaker_n old_a condemn_v heretic_n by_o the_o 2_o nicene_n council_n 687._o 688._o they_o be_v accurse_v by_o the_o same_o council_n that_o apply_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o speak_v of_o the_o pagan_n idol_n against_o sacred_a image_n 687._o miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n p._n 24._o the_o abolish_n of_o christ_n image_n a_o preparation_n to_o set_v up_o the_o image_n of_o antichrist_n 723._o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n image_n be_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n himself_o 723._o indulgence_n see_v pardon_n justification_n â_o or_o to_o be_v justify_v what_o it_o signify_v 387._o nu_fw-la 13._o the_o first_o and_o second_o justification_n 387._o the_o first_o justification_n of_o mere_a grace_n without_o work_n 392._o 409._o 412._o nu_fw-la 32._o 516._o 389._o mark_fw-mi justification_n by_o work_n pag._n 16._o 138._o 387._o pag._n 645._o 646._o 647._o 682._o 736._o not_o by_o faith_n only_o see_v faith_n what_o work_n justify_v not_o pag._n 390._o nu_fw-la 20._o 28._o p._n 392._o 411._o 632._o nu_fw-la 6._o 633._o 499._o mark_fw-mi justification_n attribute_v to_o hope_n charity_n etc._n etc._n 402._o 633._o nu_fw-la 33._o charity_n the_o principal_a virtue_n in_o justification_n 509._o 566._o how_o the_o protestant_n admit_v charity_n &_o good_a work_n to_o justification_n 509._o why_o it_o î_v so_o often_o attribute_v to_o say_v 394._o 632._o 502_o mark_fw-mi 606._o mark_fw-mi s._n paul_n meaning_n when_o he_o commend_v faith_n 633._o the_o justice_n of_o faith_n 408._o true_a inherent_a justice_n not_o imputative_a 14._o 138._o 139._o 387._o 390._o 394._o mark_fw-mi 395._o nu_fw-la 5._o pag._n 427._o nu_fw-la 30._o pag._n 511._o 513_o mark_fw-mi 517._o mar_v 519._o mar_v 524_o mark_fw-mi 543._o 682._o 398_o mark_fw-mi how_o it_o be_v say_v none_o just_a 390._o how_o it_o be_v say_v repute_a to_o justice_n 391_o mark_fw-mi increase_v of_o justice_n 744_o mark_fw-mi 396_o mark_fw-mi 550_o mark_fw-mi how_o it_o be_v call_v god_n justice_n 383_o mark_fw-mi 390_o nu_fw-la 22._o pag._n 480._o 481._o 531._o how_o christ_n be_v our_o justice_n 427._o the_o protestant_n avoid_v the_o word_n justification_n 138._o nu_fw-la 6._o p._n 736._o nu_fw-la 8._o the_o justice_n of_o moses_n law_n what_o 408_o mark_fw-mi l_o our_o b._n lady_n without_o sin_n 94._o 395._o 676._o â_o her_o perpetual_a virginity_n 4._o 5._o nu_fw-la 25._o she_o vow_v virginity_n 138._o her_o life_n death_n assumption_n pag._n 291._o her_o blessedness_n 171_o mark_fw-mi her_o festivity_n 291._o her_o excellency_n title_n prerogative_n 138._o 139._o 173._o 221._o 273._o 291._o 292._o 171_o mark_fw-mi her_o honour_n 139._o 291._o 292._o she_o be_v our_o advocate_n 292._o 679._o our_o hope_n 292._o 548._o mark_fw-mi the_o meaning_n of_o the_o term_n and_o title_n give_v unto_o she_o 292._o god_n and_o our_o lady_n save_o us._n 337._o the_o often_o say_v of_o the_o aue_fw-la marie_n 138._o the_o ancient_a father_n use_v the_o same_o 291._o 292._o holy_a simeon_n prophesy_v of_o her_o sorrow_n 145._o she_o be_v always_o partaker_n of_o sorrow_n with_o christ_n ibidem_fw-la 272_o mark_fw-mi full_o of_o deep_a contemplation_n 142._o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n speech_n unto_o she_o that_o may_v seem_v hard_a 221._o nu_fw-la 4._o &_o 5._o the_o protestant_n keep_v no_o holiday_n of_o she_o 191._o they_o keep_v not_o the_o day_n of_o her_o death_n as_o they_o do_v of_o all_o other_o chief_a saint_n in_o the_o new_a church_n of_o england_n ibidem_fw-la they_o be_v not_o of_o those_o generation_n that_o she_o prophesy_v shall_v call_v she_o bless_v 136_o mark_fw-mi they_o derogate_v from_o her_o honour_n 138._o 295._o lay_v man_n must_v not_o judge_v of_o their_o pastor_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n of_o question_n in_o religion_n pag._n 344._o they_o must_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n etc._n etc._n not_o at_o their_o own_o hand_n but_o of_o their_o clergy_n and_o pastor_n 40._o nu_fw-la 19_o 42._o mark_fw-mi see_v priest_n clergy_n limbus_n patrum_fw-la â_o or_o abraham_n bosom_n 186._o mark_fw-mi 187._o 296._o 633._o 708_o mark_fw-mi 621._o mar_v a_o three_o place_n 162._o 708_o mark_fw-mi the_o just_a man_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v not_o in_o heaven_n till_o christ_n ascension_n 186._o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n to_o deliver_v they_o 187._o see_v hell_n heaven_n m_o machabee_n canonical_a scripture_n 138._o see_v p._n 250._o marry_o see_v our_o b._n lady_n l._n marriage_n a_o sacrament_n 55._o nu_fw-la 6._o p._n 187._o nu_fw-la 18._o p._n 221._o nu_fw-la 2._o p._n 523._o indissoluble_a both_o party_n live_v 14._o 55._o 113_o mark_fw-mi 116._o 187._o 221._o 397._o mark_fw-mi 440._o and_o not_o lawful_a after_o divorce_n ibidem_fw-la honour_a by_o christ_n presence_n p._n 221._o perfect_a &_o best_a without_o carnal_a copulation_n 4._o nu_fw-la 16._o see_v chastity_n continency_n how_o it_o be_v honourable_a in_o al._n 637._o inferior_a to_o virginity_n and_o widow_n hod_n 4._o 438._o mark_fw-mi 439_o mark_fw-mi 440._o see_v chastity_n marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o votary_n unlawful_a see_v priest_n vow_v old_a heresy_n against_o marriage_n 574._o catholic_n false_o charge_v with_o the_o same_o 574._o 575._o they_o esteem_v of_o marriage_n more_o than_o the_o protestant_n 523._o martyr_n true_a and_o false_a p_o 13._o p_o 457._o no_o true_a martyrdom_n out_o of_o the_o cathol_n church_n p._n 457._o martyrdom_n a_o most_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n 592._o their_o reward_n &_o glory_n 702_o and_o 713_o mark_fw-mi how_o they_o cry_v for_o revenge_n 712._o their_o cheerful_a and_o constant_a countenance_n before_o the_o persecutor_n 305_o mark_fw-mi their_o comfort_n at_o the_o very_a time_n of_o death_n &_o torment_n 309_o mark_fw-mi mass_n â_o see_v sacrifice_n the_o word_n mass_n 447._o the_o liturgy_n or_o mass_n of_o the_o apostle_n 330._o of_o the_o greek_a father_n ibidem_fw-la it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o christ_n institution_n 451._o 452._o 453._o to_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n 454._o to_o s._n paul_n concern_v the_o prayer_n and_o petition_n therein_o 567._o kyrie_fw-la eleison_fw-la 463._o gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la pag._n 140_o inner_a mark_fw-mi sanctus_n thrice_o repeat_v 707_o and_o 708._o hosanna_n 61._o sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la 463._o the_o canon_n 267._o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la 567._o agnus_n dei_fw-la 217_o inner_a mark_fw-mi 453_o nu_fw-la 29._o kiss_v the_o pax._n 423._o domine_fw-la non_fw-la sum_fw-la dignus_fw-la 21._o 453._o nu_fw-la 29._o communio_fw-la 452._o how_o antichrist_n &_o his_o minister_n shall_v abolish_v the_o mass_n
to_o heaven_n 651._o no_o sin_n but_o in_o this_o life_n it_o may_v be_v remit_v the_o contrary_a be_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o caluinist_n 686._o see_v penance_n they_o be_v worse_o in_o this_o point_n then_o the_o novatians_n 613._o what_o be_v in_o s._n johns_n epistle_n a_o sin_n to_o death_n 687._o three_o degree_n of_o sin_n signify_v by_o the_o three_o dead_a that_o christ_n raise_v to_o life_n 100_o sin_n the_o cause_n of_o sickness_n and_o other_o plague_n 132._o spirit_n to_o adore_v and_o serve_v god_n in_o spirit_n 228._o boast_v of_o the_o spirit_n 684._o not_o to_o credit_v every_o spirit_n and_o how_o to_o try_v they_o 552._o the_o church_n only_o have_v to_o discern_v spirit_n 684._o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o us._n 402._o superiority_n and_o difference_n of_o degree_n not_o forbid_v 57_o mark_fw-mi 165_o mark_fw-mi superstition_n not_o allow_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n 344._o 539_o mark_fw-mi the_o protestant_n false_o call_v devotion_n superstition_n 344._o supremacy_n of_o temporal_a prince_n in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a see_v prince_n t_o tithe_n due_a to_o god_n and_o his_o priest_n 615._o give_v by_o the_o inferior_a to_o the_o superior_a ibid._n pay_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n &_o moses_n ib._n how_o due_a to_o the_o priest_n of_o christ_n church_n 616._o tongue_n prayer_n in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n see_v prayer_n the_o 14_o chap._n of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n explicate_v concern_v tongue_n 460._o the_o protestant_n vain_n boast_v of_o tongue_n 457_o mark_fw-mi the_o three_o principal_a tongue_n in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n 271_o mark_fw-mi the_o holy_a scripture_n most_o convenient_o preserve_v in_o they_o ibid._n tradition_n not_o write_v â_o 559._o at_o large_a 413._o 414._o 476._o 612._o 653._o 279_o mark_fw-mi 353._o 451._o 454._o 43._o 106._o 464_o mark_fw-mi 695._o 591_o mark_fw-mi apostolical_a tradition_n 413._o 414._o 451._o 476._o 559._o 560._o 612._o 464_o mark_fw-mi particular_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o lent_n 12._o 145_o mark_fw-mi the_o administration_n of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n 451._o 454._o a_o commemoration_n &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o mass_n ibid._n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a ibid._n and_o 560._o mingle_v water_n with_o wine_n ibid._n baptise_v of_o infant_n 559._o the_o apostle_n creed_n 560._o see_v other_o particular_a tradition_n pag._n 454._o 559._o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la in_o the_o mass_n 567._o keep_v of_o sunday_n easter_n whitsuntide_a etc._n etc._n 43._o 467_o mar_v how_o to_o know_v apostolical_a tradition_n 560._o 559._o ignatius_n book_n of_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n ib._n the_o father_n estimation_n of_o tradition_n 559._o the_o protestant_n hatred_n of_o the_o very_a name_n and_o suppress_v the_o same_o in_o the_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 559._o 560_o mark_fw-mi they_o be_v call_v depositum_fw-la 414._o 581_o mar_v descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o bishop_n and_o bishop_n unto_o the_o end_n 584._o the_o protestant_n can_v show_v no_o such_o depositum_fw-la 584._o heretic_n convict_v by_o tradition_n 5._o 559._o jewish_a and_o heretical_a tradition_n 43._o 106._o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n into_o greek_a call_v septuaginta_fw-la 633._o cite_v of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o authentical_a in_o the_o greek_a church_n ibid._n the_o authentical_a latin_a translation_n 633._o beza_n prefer_v it_o before_o all_o the_o rest_n see_v the_o preface_n translatour_n of_o holy_a scripture_n must_v be_v exact_v and_o sincere_a 221._o see_v the_o preface_n five_o virginity_n better_a than_o marriage_n more_o meritorious_a and_o grateful_a to_o god_n fit_a for_o his_o service_n 4._o 55._o 440._o 725_o m._n 356._o the_o contrary_n be_v jovinian_n old_a conden_v heresy_n 582._o virginity_n counsel_v not_o command_v 55._o 440._o 438_o mark_fw-mi see_v marriage_n profess_a virgin_n may_v not_o marry_v see_v vow_n the_o state_n of_o virgin_n pass_v the_o rest_n 725_o m._n vision_n record_v in_o the_o scripture_n 315._o 318._o 319._o 368._o 492._o vision_n have_v no_o credit_n with_o heretic_n special_o with_o the_o protestant_n 319_o mark_fw-mi 492._o some_o have_v be_v rapt_v to_o see_v the_o state_n of_o the_o next_o life_n 491_o mark_fw-mi extreme_a unction_n see_v extreme_a vow_v a_o act_n of_o sovereign_a worship_n 169._o never_o true_a religion_n without_o vow_n and_o votary_n ib._n the_o protestant_n have_v abandon_v all_o vow_n and_o votary_n ib._n vow_v of_o monastical_a and_o religious_a life_n 169._o 304._o vow_v of_o virginity_n or_o chastity_n lawful_a possible_a etc._n etc._n 55._o 580._o 581._o 582._o young_a woman_n may_v vow_n religion_n 581._o our_o b._n lady_n vow_v virginity_n 138._o the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n the_o deacon_n be_v vow_v virgin_n 356._o the_o apostle_n vow_v poverty_n and_o profess_v the_o religious_a state_n of_o perfection_n pag._n 55._o nu_fw-la 21._o 27._o breach_n of_o vow_n damnable_a 304._o 439._o 440._o it_o be_v to_o break_v their_o first_o faith_n 580._o it_o be_v to_o go_v after_o satan_n 581._o it_o be_v the_o high_a kind_n of_o sacrilege_n 304._o it_o be_v worse_a than_o advoutrie_n 582._o what_o virgin_n &_o widow_n the_o apostle_n allow_v to_o marry_v 440._o 581._o jovinian_a for_o persuade_v nun_n to_o marry_v be_v call_v of_o s._n augustine_n a_o monster_n &_o of_o s._n hierom_n he_o and_o his_o follower_n christian_a epicure_n 582._o the_o protestant_n call_v jovinian_n heresy_n god_n word_n 582._o what_o vow_n be_v unlawful_a and_o not_o to_o be_v keep_v 361._o usury_n not_o to_o be_v use_v among_o christian_n 255._o spiritual_a usury_n in_o the_o better_a sense_n 74._o nu_fw-la 27._o w_n widowhod_n 579_o at_o large_a this_o state_n more_o bless_v than_o the_o state_n of_o matrimony_n 439_o m._n their_o continual_a prayer_n &_o continency_n 578_o m._n the_o example_n of_o holy_a anne_n 141._o 142._o s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n augustine_n write_v whole_a book_n in_o commendation_n of_o the_o state_n of_o widowhod_n 579._o the_o church_n widow_n call_v diaconissae_n and_o their_o office_n 579._o they_o must_v have_v have_v but_o one_o husband_n ibid._n the_o caluinists_n most_o absurd_a exposition_n of_o these_o word_n the_o husband_n of_o one_o wife_n 580._o the_o apostle_n forbid_v not_o all_o young_a widow_n to_o vow_n 581._o see_v continency_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n 548._o see_v gospel_n tradition_n work_n meritorious_a of_o life_n everlasting_a â_o 17._o 177._o 387._o 430._o 593._o 594._o 613._o 703_o mar_v no_o work_n of_o themselves_o without_o faith_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v meritorious_a 378._o 594._o such_o be_v the_o work_n that_o s._n paul_n exclude_v from_o justification_n 378._o 387._o 390._o 411._o 385._o 499_o mark_fw-mi we_o presume_v not_o upon_o our_o own_o work_n or_o merit_n as_o of_o ourselves_o but_o as_o of_o god_n grace_n 516_o mark_fw-mi 594._o the_o protestant_n make_v no_o difference_n between_o christian_a man_n work_n do_v in_o grace_n and_o the_o work_n of_o jew_n &_o pagan_n 411._o they_o be_v injurious_a to_o god_n grace_n which_o make_v vorke_n meritorious_a 594._o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o false_o allege_v answer_v 189._o 402._o we_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n also_o and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o 16._o 643._o 645_o and_o 646_o at_o large_a 153_o mark_fw-mi 678_o mark_fw-mi 510_o m._n 538._o m._n see_v faith_n good_a work_n before_o faith_n though_o not_o meritorious_a yet_o be_v preparative_n to_o the_o first_o justification_n 320._o 389_o m._n that_o every_o man_n shall_v be_v reward_v according_a to_o his_o work_n be_v a_o common_a phrase_n in_o scripture_n 47._o 386_o mark_fw-mi 387._o 430._o 656_o mark_fw-mi 744_o mark_fw-mi not_o according_a to_o faith_n only_o or_o lack_v of_o faith_n 741._o nu_fw-la 12._o all_o good_a work_n reward_v in_o heaven_n 630_o mark_fw-mi 413._o nu_fw-la 1._o pag._n 587._o 524_o mark_fw-mi 543_o mark_fw-mi 191_o mark_fw-mi heaven_n be_v due_a for_o they_o according_a to_o god_n justice_n 593._o 594._o 613._o 553_o mar_v they_o give_v great_a confidence_n before_o god_n 630._o 627_o mark_fw-mi work_n may_v be_v do_v in_o respect_n of_o reward_n 16._o nu_fw-la 4._o pag._n 631._o mark_fw-mi pa._n 444._o the_o three_o work_n of_o justice_n 14._o 15._o 16._o work_n of_o mercy_n how_o acceptable_a to_o god_n 663._o 317._o m._n 341_o mark_fw-mi see_v alm_n work_n of_o perfection_n or_o supererogation_n 444._o 485._o 168_o m._n see_v c._n euangelical_n counsel_n work_n satisfactory_a 143_o m._n see_v faith_n justification_n merit_n reward_n heaven_n prepare_v for_o they_o only_o that_o deserve_v it_o by_o good_a work_n 58._o nu_fw-la 23._o pag._n 73_o mark_fw-mi without_o good_a work_n a_o man_n shall_v be_v demn_v 143_o mark_fw-mi 153_o mark_fw-mi 739_o mark_fw-mi the_o book_n of_o every_o man_n work_n open_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 741._o
the_o gospel_n on_o the_o imber_n saturday_n in_o sept._n sept._n the_o figtree_n with_o only_a leaf_n &_o no_o fruit_n be_v the_o jew_n synagogue_n &_o every_o other_o people_n or_o person_n which_o have_v faith_n and_o fair_a word_n and_o no_o good_a work_n mt._n 13_o 31._o mr._n 4_o 30._o 30._o see_v annota_fw-la matth._n 13_o 31._o mt._n 13_o 33._o mt._n 7_o 13_o 13_o christian_n in_o their_o life_n must_v seek_v the_o strait_a way_n but_o in_o religion_n the_o ancient_a common_a way_n way_n the_o gentile_n come_v into_o god_n favour_n late_a be_v prefer_v before_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v first_o first_o non_fw-la capit_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d mt._n 23_o 37._o 37._o the_o jew_n lose_v their_o preeminence_n by_o their_o own_o free_a will_n &_o not_o by_o god_n cause_v who_o cease_v not_o to_o call_v and_o cry_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o will_v not_o hear_v whereby_o free_a will_n be_v plain_o prove_v some_o punish_v for_o example_n nu._n 16._o 2_o mach._n 3_o act._n 5._o disease_n not_o natural_a penance_n schism_n cont._n lit_fw-fr petil._n li._n 2_o c._n 55._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 16_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n pentecost_n reward_v for_o charitable_a deed_n and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v do_v for_o reward_n against_o our_o adversary_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 2_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n pentecost_n worldliness_n wealth_n and_o voluptuousness_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o special_o hinder_a man_n from_o god_n the_o gospel_n for_o a_o martyr_n that_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o for_o s._n basil_n jun._n 14._o mt._n 10_o 37._o 37._o no_o creature_n so_o dear_a unto_o we_o which_o we_o must_v not_o hate_v or_o forsake_v if_o it_o hinder_v we_o and_o in_o that_o respect_n that_o it_o hinder_v we_o from_o christ_n or_o his_o church_n &_o our_o salvation_n salvation_n he_o that_o be_v a_o right_a christian_a man_n must_v make_v his_o account_n that_o if_o he_o be_v put_v to_o it_o as_o he_o often_o may_v be_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n he_o must_v renounce_v all_o that_o ever_o he_o have_v rather_o than_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a faith_n mt._n 5_o 13._o mar._n 9_o 50._o freewill_a ep_v 50_o paâlo_fw-la post_fw-la princip_n &_o ep_v 204._o &_o li._n 1_o count_n ep_v gaudent_fw-la 6._o 25._o heretic_n may_v by_o penal_a law_n be_v compel_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 3_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n pentecost_n this_o man_n be_v our_o saviour_n christ_n who_o care_n &_o travail_v in_o search_v &_o reduce_v sinner_n to_o repentance_n all_o spiritual_a man_n special_o shall_v follow_v mat._n 18_o 12._o 12._o this_o woman_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n who_o also_o continual_o seek_v her_o lose_a child_n the_o gospel_n upon_o saturday_n in_o the_o 2_o week_n of_o lent_n the_o prodigal_a son_n be_v a_o paible_a both_o of_o the_o gentile_n conversion_n &_o also_o of_o every_o dissolute_a sinner_n penitent_o return_v to_o god_n god_n god_n wonderful_a and_o tender_a mercy_n towards_o penitent_a sinner_n joy_n in_o heaven_n for_o every_o penitent_n the_o angel_n and_o saint_n know_v our_o heart_n mt._n 22_o 14._o the_o b._n sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 8_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n pentecost_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d mammon_n say_v s._n hierom_n q._n 6._o ad_fw-la algas_n in_o the_o syriake_a tongue_n signify_v riches_n mammon_n of_o iniquity_n because_o they_o be_v often_o il_fw-mi get_v or_o il_fw-mi bestow_v or_o occasion_n of_o evil_a or_o at_o the_o least_o worldly_a &_o false_a &_o not_o the_o true_a heavenly_a riches_n mat._n 6_o 24._o mat._n 11_o 12._o mat._n 5_o 18._o mat._n 5_o 31._o 19_o 9_o mar._n 10_o 11._o 1._o cor._n 7_o 11._o the_o gospel_n upon_o thursday_n in_o the_o 2_o week_n of_o lent_n lent_n lazarus_n in_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o rest_n but_o both_o in_o hell_n and_o not_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n before_o christ_n hiero._n ep_v 3._o epitaph_n nepot_n nepot_n to_o be_v in_o continual_a pleasure_n ease_n wealth_n peace_n and_o prosperlty_n in_o this_o world_n be_v perilous_a &_o a_o sign_n of_o pain_n in_o the_o next_o s._n hiero._n hiero._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o horrible_a distance_n distance_n abraham_n have_v knowledge_n of_o thing_n in_o earth_n which_o be_v not_o in_o his_o time_n as_o that_o they_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n book_n which_o he_o never_o see_v august_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mor._n c._n 14._o good_a work_n tob._n 12_o 9_o mat._n 25._o alm_n meritorious_a the_o saint_n do_v pray_v for_o us._n marriage_n after_o divorce_n unlawful_a vnmerciful_a scotfree_a man_n abraham_n bosom_n limbus_n patrum_fw-la zach._n 9_o 11._o esa_n 42_o 7._o 7._o aug._n in_o ps_n 85._o ep._n 99_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o deliver_v the_o father_n purgatory_n aug._n ep_v 99_o saint_n do_v hear_v our_o prayer_n and_o have_v care_n of_o us._n gen._n 32._o calu._n li._n 3_o caluins_n blasphemy_n justit_fw-la c._n 22_o sect_n 24._o mt._n 18_o 7_o 7_o not_o of_o mere_a necessity_n for_o than_o it_o be_v no_o fault_n but_o praesuppose_v the_o great_a wickedness_n of_o man_n it_o be_v impossible_a but_o there_o shall_v be_v scandal_n &_o therefore_o it_o follow_v win_v to_o he_o by_o who_o they_o come_v mar._n 9_o 42._o mt._n 18_o 21._o mat._n 17_o 20._o the_o four_o part_n of_o this_o gospel_n the_o come_n of_o christ_n into_o jewrie_n towards_o his_o passion_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 13_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n leu._n 14_o 2._o 2._o and_o yet_o we_o see_v here_o it_o be_v not_o only_a faith_n but_o also_o his_o thankfulness_n &_o return_v to_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n god_n while_o they_o ask_v and_o look_v for_o a_o temporal_a kingdom_n in_o pomp_n and_o glory_n lo_o their_o king_n &_o messiah_n be_v now_o among_o they_o who_o spiritual_a kingdom_n be_v within_o all_o the_o faithful_a that_o have_v dominion_n over_o sin_n mt._n 24_o 23._o mar._n 13_o 21._o 21._o no_o man_n must_v run_v out_o of_o the_o church_n after_o schismatic_n to_o hear_v they_o preach_v christ_n in_o corner_n christ_n doctrine_n be_v open_a in_o all_o the_o world_n see_v annot_v mt._n 14_o 23._o 23._o gen._n 7_o 5_o gen._n 19_o 24._o gen._n 19_o 26._o how_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a &_o profitable_a servant_n mt._n 25_o ãâã_d io._n 15_o 14._o confession_n to_o the_o priest_n priest_n we_o shall_v pray_v always_o by_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n and_o by_o work_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n though_o special_a time_n of_o vocal_a prayer_n in_o the_o canonical_a hour_n be_v assign_v for_o the_o stir_a of_o we_o up_o to_o god_n through_o external_a sign_n of_o devotion_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 10_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n pentecost_n to_o take_v pride_n of_o fast_v tithe_n or_o any_o good_a work_n be_v naught_o though_o the_o work_n themselves_o be_v very_o good_a good_a so_o do_v the_o priest_n and_o people_n at_o the_o holy_a altar_n knock_v their_o breast_n &_o say_v with_o the_o humble_a publican_n deus_fw-la propitius_fw-la august_n ps_n 31_o conc_fw-fr 3._o mt._n 19_o 13._o mr._n 10_o 13._o 13._o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n &_o religion_n we_o must_v be_v as_o humble_a &_o obedient_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o young_a child_n to_o their_o parent_n mt._n 19_o 16._o mr._n 10_o 17._o exo._n 20_o 13._o 13._o not_o faith_n only_o but_o also_o keep_v the_o commandment_n purchase_v life_n everlasting_a see_v annot_v mat._n 19_o 16._o 16._o this_o be_v not_o a_o commandment_n or_o precept_n but_o counsel_n which_o the_o religious_a do_v follow_v see_v annot_n mat._n 19_o 19_o the_o apostle_n among_o other_o thing_n leave_v their_o wife_n also_o as_o s._n hierom_n note_v out_o of_o this_o place_n li._n 1_o adu_fw-la jovin_n jovin_n life_n everlasting_a the_o reward_n for_o leave_v or_o lose_v willing_o our_o good_n for_o christ_n sake_n mt._n 20_o 17._o mr._n 10_o 32._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o sunday_n of_o quiquagesme_fw-fr the_o church_n err_v not_o in_o faith_n high_a conâ_n lucif_n c._n 6._o aug._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ec._n c._n 15_o &_o de_fw-fr verb._n do._n ser._n ãâã_d the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o dedication_n of_o a_o church_n zachaeus_n mt_n 18_o 12._o the_o gospel_n for_o a_o confessor_n that_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n and_o namely_o for_o s._n lewis_n the_o king_n of_o france_n august_n 25._o mt._n 25_o 14._o 14._o mark_v here_o against_o the_o adversary_n that_o the_o reward_n of_o these_o two_o good_a servant_n be_v diverse_a &_o unaequal_a according_a to_o the_o diversity_n or_o inequality_n of_o their_o gain_n that_o be_v their_o merit_n and_o yet_o one_o receive_v the_o penny_n mt._n 20_o 9_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o that_o be_v heaven_n or_o life_n
in_o christmas_n unto_o septuagesme_fw-fr the_o epistle_n upon_o christmas_n eve_o act._n 13._o 2._o â_o faith_n must_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o sense_n reason_n argue_v or_o understand_v but_o must_v command_v &_o be_v obey_v in_o humility_n and_o simplicity_n simplicity_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d s._n augustine_n use_v this_o place_n and_o the_o like_a against_o heretic_n which_o will_v draw_v the_o common_a catholic_a faith_n of_o all_o nation_n to_o some_o certain_a country_n or_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n aug._n ep_v 161._o 161._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d he_o pray_v without_o intermission_n that_o omit_v no_o day_n certain_a time_n of_o prayer_n aug._n here_o be_v 57_o 57_o the_o roman_n be_v convert_v and_o teach_v by_o s._n peter_n before_o therefore_o he_o use_v that_o speech_n to_o confirm_v they_o in_o their_o say_v author_n com._n apud_fw-la hierony_n theodoret_n in_o 16._o rom._n &_o chrys_n chrys_n he_o mean_v not_o god_n own_o justice_n in_o himself_o but_o that_o justice_n wherewith_o god_n endu_v man_n when_o he_o justifi_v he_o aug._n de_fw-fr sp._n &_o light_v c._n 9_o whereby_o you_o may_v gather_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o heretical_a imputatilue_a justice_n abac._n 2_o 4._o 4._o lo_o these_o and_o the_o like_a be_v the_o image_n or_o idolâ_n so_o often_o conden_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o the_o holy_a image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n saint_n eph._n 4_o 19_o he_o say_v they_o have_v deliver_v or_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o all_o uncleanness_n by_o which_o conference_n of_o scripture_n we_o learn_v that_o themselves_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o own_o sin_n and_o damnation_n god_n of_o his_o justice_n permit_v &_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o own_o will_v and_o so_o give_v they_o up_o into_o passion_n etc._n etc._n etc._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d apostolical_a salutation_n or_o blessing_n epiph._n hâres_v 6â_n the_o same_o use_v of_o heretic_n the_o roman_a faith_n high_o commend_v luc._n 22._o it_o can_v not_o false_a not_o be_v corrupt_v proââ_n li._n 2._o com._n in_o ep_v ad_fw-la gal._n the_o roman_a station_n a_o token_n of_o great_a faith_n and_o devotion_n the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a faith_n all_o one_o how_o god_n be_v serve_v in_o spirit_n pray_v for_o conversion_n of_o soul_n the_o gospel_n be_v not_o only_o the_o write_a word_n mat._n 28._o the_o apostle_n writing_n and_o preach_v whether_o more_o necessary_a and_o how_o the_o catholic_a or_o christian_a âaith_n with_o good_a work_n justifi_v &_o without_o this_o faith_n no_o work_n whatsoever_o not_o only_o faith_n god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n god_n punish_v sin_n by_o permit_v man_n to_o fall_v further_o and_o further_o sin_n mortal_a and_o venial_a good_a man_n also_o according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o good_a will_v shall_v have_v their_o reward_n aug._n âp_n 4â_n ps_n 61_o 13_o 13_o that_o be_v the_o gentile_a deu._n 10_o 17._o act._n 10._o 34._o mt._n 7_o 21_o ja._n 1_o 22_o 22_o it_o be_v a_o shameful_a and_o damnable_a thing_n for_o preacher_n teacher_n or_o other_o guide_v of_o man_n life_n to_o commit_v the_o same_o thing_n themselves_o which_o they_o reprove_v in_o other_o es_fw-ge 52_o 5._o ez._n 36_o 20._o 20._o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n that_o by_o the_o iâ_n life_n of_o the_o faithful_a our_o lord_n name_n shall_v be_v il_fw-mi speak_v of_o among_o the_o misbelever_n &_o many_o withdraw_v from_o the_o true_a religion_n thereby_o thereby_o prepuce_fw-la be_v the_o foreskinne_n not_o circumcise_v &_o therefore_o signify_v the_o gentile_n or_o the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o circumcision_n the_o jew_n and_o their_o state_n judge_v other_o man_n god_n long_a suffering_n be_v for_o our_o repentance_n good_a work_n meritorious_a li._n the_o great_a &_o lib._n arb_n c._n 8._o aug._n de_fw-fr sp._n &_o light_v c._n 16._o to_o 3._o the_o first_o justification_n without_o work_n the_o second_o by_o work_n s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o first_o special_o s._n james_n of_o the_o second_o against_o imputative_a justice_n true_a inherent_a justice_n more_o for_o god_n glory_n &_o for_o the_o commendation_n of_o christ_n merit_n true_a justice_n both_o in_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v by_o keep_v the_o law._n the_o letter_n and_o the_o spirit_n the_o carnal_a and_o spiritual_a jewe_n de_fw-fr sp_z &_o light_v to_o 3._o io._n 3_o 33._o 33._o âod_a only_a by_o nature_n be_v true_a all_o mere_a man_n by_o nature_n may_v lie_v deceive_v and_o be_v deceive_v yet_o god_n by_o his_o grace_n &_o spirit_n may_v and_o do_v preserve_v the_o apostle_n and_o principal_a governor_n of_o his_o people_n &_o the_o church_n and_o counsel_n in_o all_o truth_n though_o they_o be_v and_o be_v mere_a man_n ps_n 115_o 11._o ps_n 50_o 6._o ps_n 13_o 1._o 52_o 3._o ps_n 5_o 11._o ps_n 139_o 4_o 4_o aspidum_fw-la a_o kind_n of_o little_a serpent_n ps_n 9_o 7._o es_fw-ge 19_o 7._o pro._n 1_o 16_o ps_n 35_o 2._o gal._n 2_o 16._o 16._o to_o believe_v in_o he_o here_o comprise_v not_o only_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o hope_n &_o charity_n as_o the_o apostle_n explicate_v himself_o galat._n 5_o 6._o 6._o no_o man_n attein_v his_o first_o justification_n by_o the_o merit_v either_o of_o his_o faith_n or_o work_v but_o mere_o by_o christ_n grace_n and_o mercy_n though_o his_o faith_n &_o work_v procedâg_v of_o grace_n be_v disposition_n &_o preparation_n thereunto_o thereunto_o propitiatour_n 2._o âet_o 3._o s._n paul_n speech_n mistake_v of_o the_o wicked_a ro._n 5_o 2d_o ro._n 3_o 4._o the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n that_o sound_v as_o if_o god_n cause_v sin_n job._n 1._o how_o it_o be_v say_v none_o just_a just_a luc._n 1â_n no_o work_n avail_v without_o faith_n and_o grace_n the_o heretic_n fantastical_a or_o imputative_a justice_n de_fw-fr pââmer_fw-fr li._n 1_o â_o 9_o 10._o true_a inhaerent_a justice_n what_o work_n be_v exclude_v from_o justification_n de_fw-fr great_a &_o lib._n arb_n c._n 7._o gal._n 1._o gen._n 5_o 6._o gal._n 3_o 6._o ja._n 2_o 23._o 23._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ps_n 31_o 1._o 1._o the_o word_n repute_a do_v not_o diminish_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o justice_n as_o though_o it_o be_v repute_v for_o justice_n be_v not_o justice_n in_o deed_n but_o signify_v that_o as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o so_o god_n esteem_v &_o repute_v it_o as_o the_o same_o greek_a word_n must_v needs_o be_v take_v v._o 4._o next_o go_v before_o &_o 1_o cor._n 4_o â_o and_o else_o where_o where_o our_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n give_v ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la that_o grace_n and_o justice_n of_o faith_n which_o here_o be_v commend_v whereas_o circumcision_n be_v but_o a_o sign_n or_o mark_n of_o the_o same_o gen._n 17_o 10._o gen._n 17_o 4._o 4._o he_o believe_v gen._n 15_o 5._o abraham_n work_n before_o faith_n justice_n before_o man_n and_o justice_n before_o god_n not_o work_n but_o mere_a grace_n be_v cause_n of_o our_o first_o justification_n justification_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d heretical_a translation_n what_o be_v sin_z cover_v or_o not_o impute_v io._n 1_o 29_o 2_o cor._n 6_o 11._o apoc._n 1_o 5._o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o mere_a mark_n but_o cause_n of_o justification_n by_o what_o faith_n we_o be_v justify_v luc._n 1_o 45._o the_o epistle_n on_o imber_n saturday_n in_o whitsonweeke_n and_o for_o many_o martyr_n martyr_n christian_n man_n do_v not_o vaunt_v themselves_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o their_o salvation_n but_o glory_n in_o the_o hope_n thereof_o only_o which_o hope_n be_v here_o insinuate_v to_o be_v give_v in_o our_o justification_n &_o be_v afterward_o to_o be_v confirm_v by_o probation_n in_o tribulation_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o heretic_n false_o translate_v of_o no_o strength_n to_o take_v away_o all_o free_a will_v no._n test._n 15â0_n 15â0_n sinner_n sinner_n here_o we_o may_v see_v against_o the_o heretic_n that_o they_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o christ_n and_o justify_v by_o he_o be_v make_v &_o constitute_v just_a in_o deed_n &_o not_o by_o imputation_n only_o as_o all_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o adam_n be_v unjust_a and_o sinner_n in_o truth_n &_o not_o by_o imputation_n against_o the_o heretic_n special_a faith_n and_o security_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d justification_n attribute_v much_o to_o faith_n as_o to_o the_o fândation_n our_o hope_n be_v strengthen_v by_o well_o do_v charity_n be_v a_o quality_n in_o us._n conc._n tri._n sess_v sâ_n decr_n de_fw-fr peâ_n orig_n al_n by_o adam_n bear_v in_o original_a sin_n christ_n only_a not_o conceive_v in_o sin_n and_o as_o it_o be_v think_v our_o b._n lady_n the_o law_n do_v not_o cause_v more_o sin_n though_o that_o be_v the_o sequel_n
which_o james_n write_v this_o epistle_n iâ_n 1._o the_o church_n read_v these_o catholic_a or_o canonical_a epistle_n in_o order_n at_o matin_n from_o the_o 4_o sunday_n after_o easter_n until_o whitsunday_n the_o protestant_n abhor_v the_o word_n catholic_a euseb_n li._n 2._o hist_o c._n 22._o the_o epistle_n for_o a_o martyr_n ro._n 5_o 3._o mat._n 21_o 22._o mar._n 11_o 24._o ps_n 102_o 15._o eccl._n 14_o 18._o es_fw-ge 4_o 6_o 1_o pet._n 1_o 24._o the_o epistle_n for_o a_o martyr_n that_o be_v a_o bishop_n job_n 5_o 17._o 17._o the_o ground_n of_o tentation_n to_o sin_n be_v our_o concupiscence_n &_o not_o god_n the_o epistle_n on_o the_o 4_o sunday_n after_o easter_n prou._n 17_o 27._o the_o epistle_n on_o the_o 5_o sunday_n after_o easter_n mat._n 7_o 21._o ro._n 2_o 13._o 13._o beatitude_n or_o salvation_n consist_v in_o well_o work_v what_o faith_n be_v require_v in_o prayer_n god_n be_v not_o author_n of_o evil_a partial_a and_o wilful_a translation_n translation_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d concupiscence_n of_o itself_o no_o sin_n not_o every_o sin_n mortal_a what_o be_v the_o la_o of_o liberty_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n good_a work_n a_o part_n of_o man_n justice_n leu._n 19_o 15._o deu._n 1_o 16._o pro._n 24_o 23._o eccl._n 42_o 1._o leu._n 19_o 18._o mat._n 22_o 39_o rom._n 13._o leu._n 19_o 37._o deu._n 1_o 18._o 18._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d io._n 3_o 17_o 17_o he_o speak_v to_o all_o heretic_n that_o say_v faith_n only_o without_o work_n do_v justify_v call_v they_o vain_a man_n and_o compare_v they_o to_o devil_n devil_n dead_a gen._n 22_o 10._o gen._n 15_o 6._o ro._n 4_o 3._o gal._n 3_o jos_n 2_o 1._o 18._o and_o 6_o 22._o scripture_n abuse_v by_o the_o anabaptiste_n to_o make_v no_o distinction_n of_o person_n what_o the_o apostle_n mean_v by_o acception_n of_o person_n how_o he_o that_o offend_v in_o one_o commandment_n be_v guilty_a of_o al._n work_n of_o mercy_n exceed_v grateful_a to_o god_n the_o proud_a &_o impudent_a deal_n of_o the_o heretic_n against_o this_o epistle_n because_o it_o be_v so_o plain_a against_o only_o say_v only_o faith_n a_o old_a heresy_n s._n james_n &_o the_o rest_n inculcate_v good_a work_n against_o the_o error_n of_o only_a faith_n false_o gather_v of_o s._n paul_n word_n joco_n citate_fw-la s._n augustine_n whole_a disputation_n in_o this_o point_n very_o notable_a &_o direct_o against_o only_a faith_n faith_n li._n 83_o q._n q._n 76._o heresy_n against_o good_a work_n work_n concur_v with_o faith_n as_o cause_v of_o justification_n work_n make_v we_o just_a in_o deed_n before_o god_n the_o protestant_n say_v by_o faith_n only_o s._n james_n clean_o contrary_a not_o by_o faith_n only_o only_o gal._n â_o â_o see_v the_o annot_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n c._n 2._o v._n 13._o the_o manifold_a meaning_n of_o certain_a father_n when_o they_o say_v only_a faith_n s._n paul_n name_v faith_n &_o s._n james_n work_n cause_n of_o justification_n but_o neither_o the_o one_o faith_n only_o nor_o the_o other_o work_n only_o faith_n without_o work_n be_v a_o true_a say_v but_o not_o available_a as_o the_o body_n without_o the_o spirit_n be_v a_o true_a body_n though_o it_o be_v dead_a what_o faith_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o &_o that_o he_o know_v no_o special_a faith_n mat._n 23_o 8._o eccl._n 14_o 1._o 19_o 16._o 16._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d little_o little_o can_v it_o yield_v salt_n and_o sweet_a water_n water_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o humane_a wisdom_n special_o of_o heretic_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o her_o child_n many_o master_n be_v many_o proud_a sectmaister_n 1._o io._n 2_o 15._o 15._o the_o boldness_n of_o haeretike_n add_v here_o the_o word_n scripture_n to_o the_o text_n thus_o and_o the_o scripture_n give_v great_a grace_n prou._n 3_o 35._o 1_o pet._n 5_o 5._o 5._o free_a will_v &_o man_n own_o endeavour_n necessary_a in_o come_v to_o god_n 1_o pet._n 5_o 6._o 6._o he_o forbid_v detraction_n evil_a speak_v slander_v slander_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ro._n 14_o 4._o 4._o all_o promise_n and_o purpose_n of_o our_o worldly_a affair_n be_v to_o be_v make_v under_o condition_n of_o god_n good_a like_n &_o pleasure_n and_o it_o become_v a_o christian_a man_n to_o have_v usual_o this_o form_n of_o speech_n in_o that_o case_n if_o god_n will_v if_o god_n otherwise_o dispose_v not_o man_n work_v with_o god_n grace_n be_v no_o derogation_n thereunto_o thereunto_o a_o fearful_a description_n of_o the_o misery_n that_o shall_v befall_v in_o the_o next_o life_n to_o the_o unmerciful_a covetous_a man_n man_n condemn_v condemn_v he_o mean_v either_o fruit_n or_o rain_n rain_n be_v as_o hand_n mt._n 5_o 34_o the_o epistle_n in_o a_o votive_a mass_n for_o the_o sick_a mr._n 6_o 13_o 13_o the_o epistle_n in_o majoribus_fw-la litanijs_fw-la on_o s._n mark_v day_n and_o in_o the_o rogation_n day_n the_o heretic_n translate_v acknowledge_v your_o sin_n etc._n etc._n so_o little_o they_o can_v abide_v the_o very_a word_n of_o confession_n 3_o reg_fw-la 17._o eccl._n 48._o lu._n 4_o 25_o 3._o reg_fw-la 18_o 41._o 41._o he_o that_o have_v the_o zeal_n of_o convert_n sinner_n procure_v thereby_o mercy_n and_o remission_n to_o himself_o which_o be_v a_o singular_a grace_n the_o sin_n cry_v to_o heaven_n what_o oath_n be_v lawful_a what_o be_v not_o heretical_a translation_n against_o priesthood_n neither_o their_o elder_n so_o call_v nor_o their_o minister_n can_v be_v those_o whon_fw-mi the_o apostle_n here_o call_v presbyteros_fw-la they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o call_v their_o minister_n by_o that_o name_n their_o deacon_n shall_v rather_o be_v call_v minister_n they_o shall_v keep_v the_o name_n priest_n as_o well_o as_o deacon_n the_o sacrament_n of_o extreme_a unction_n the_o heretic_n objection_n against_o the_o say_a sacrament_n answer_v and_o withal_o it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n remission_n of_o sin_n annex_v to_o creature_n holy_a water_n holy_a oil_n bless_v by_o the_o bishop_n the_o people_n devotion_n towards_o such_o hallow_a creature_n the_o sacramental_a word_n the_o three_o effect_n of_o this_o sacrament_n priest_n and_o not_o elder_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o this_o sacrament_n sacrament_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la confession_n truth_n unwrite_v and_o know_v by_o tradition_n convert_v of_o soul_n our_o salvation_n attribute_v to_o man_n without_o derogation_n to_o christ_n â_o 10._o v._n 2._o 1_o pet._n 1._o 1_o pet._n 5._o 5._o see_v the_o annotation_n 1_o pet._n 5._o v._n 13._o 2_o pet._n 3._o 1_o pet._n 5._o 5._o see_v the_o annotation_n upon_o s._n james_n epistle_n c._n 2._o v._n 21._o the_o epistle_n in_o cathedra_fw-la s._n petri._n roma_n jan._n 10._o 2_o cor._n 1_o 3._o eph._n 1_o 3._o the_o epistle_n for_o many_o martyr_n martyr_n chastity_n not_o only_o of_o body_n but_o also_o of_o mind_n be_v require_v s._n bede_n upon_o this_o place_n leu._n 11_o 19_o 20_o 7_o deu._n 10._o 10._o god_n will_v judge_v man_n according_a to_o every_o one_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o ro._n 2._o gal._n 2._o 1_o cor._n 6_o 20._o 7_o 23_o 23_o he_o mean_v the_o error_n of_o gentility_n or_o if_o he_o write_v to_o the_o jew_n disperse_v he_o mean_v the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n with_o the_o fond_a and_o heavy_a addition_n of_o their_o late_a master_n call_v deuterôse_v the_o heretic_n to_o make_v it_o sound_v to_o the_o simple_a against_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n corrupt_v the_o text_n thus_o which_o you_o have_v receive_v by_o ãâã_d of_o ãâã_d father_n ro._n 16_o 25._o col._n 1_o 26._o tit._n 1_o 2._o esa_n 40_o 6._o the_o epistle_n upon_o saturday_n in_o easter_n week_n week_n a_o spiritual_a house_n es_fw-ge 28_o 16._o ps_n 117._o mt._n 21._o act._n 4._o es_fw-ge 8._o 8._o whereto_o also_o they_o be_v ordain_v ro._n 9_o 33._o exo._n 19_o 19_o the_o protestant_n can_v no_o more_o gather_v of_o this_o that_o all_o christian_n be_v priest_n then_o that_o all_o be_v king_n as_o be_v most_o plain_a apocalyp_n 1_o 6._o and_o 5_o 10._o thou_o have_v make_v we_o a_o kingdom_n or_o king_n &_o priest_n apoc._n 1_o ose_n 2._o ro._n 9_o gal._n 5_o 16._o the_o epistle_n upon_o the_o 3_o sunday_n after_o easter_n mt._n 5_o 16_o 16_o so_o be_v the_o greek_a but_o the_o protest_v in_o favour_n of_o temporal_a law_n make_v against_o the_o cath._n religion_n translate_v it_o very_o false_o thus_o to_o all_o manner_n ordinance_n of_o man_n themselves_o bold_o reject_v ecclesiastical_a decree_n as_o man_n ordinance_n ordinance_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ro._n 13_o 1._o 1._o in_o this_o speech_n be_v often_o commend_v the_o unity_n of_o all_o christian_n among_o themselves_o the_o
he_o that_o shall_v deny_v i_o before_o man_n i_o also_o will_v deny_v he_o before_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n bishop_n â_o verse_n 34_o do_v not_o you_o think_v *_o that_o i_o come_v to_o send_v peace_n into_o the_o earth_n 51._o i_o come_v â³_o not_o to_o send_v peace_n but_o the_o sword_n 6._o â_o verse_n 35_o for_o i_o come_v to_o separate_v *_o man_n against_o his_o father_n and_o the_o daughter_n against_o her_o mother_n and_o the_o daughter_n in_o la_o against_o her_o mother_n in_o la_o â_o verse_n 36_o and_o a_o man_n enemy_n they_o of_o his_o own_o household_n â_o verse_n 37_o he_o that_o love_v father_n or_o mother_n â³_o more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v son_n or_o daughter_n above_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o â_o verse_n 38_o and_o he_o that_o take_v not_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o â_o verse_n 39_o he_o that_o have_v find_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o have_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o i_o shall_v find_v it_o â_o verse_n 40_o *_o he_o that_o receive_v you_o 16._o receive_v i_o and_o he_o that_o receive_v i_o receive_v he_o that_o send_v i_o â_o verse_n 41_o he_o that_o receive_v a_o prophet_n â³_o in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o prophet_n shall_v receive_v the_o reward_n of_o a_o prophet_n and_o he_o that_o receive_v a_o conscience_n just_a man_n in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o just_a man_n shall_v receive_v the_o reward_n of_o a_o just_a man_n â_o verse_n 42_o and_o *_o whosoever_o shall_v give_v drink_n to_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o a_o cup_n of_o cold_a water_n 41._o only_o in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o disciple_n amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o he_o shall_v not_o lose_v his_o reward_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n x._o 1._o power_n miracle_n be_v so_o necessary_a to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o doctrine_n begin_v then_o to_o be_v preach_v that_o not_o only_a christ_n himself_o do_v miracle_n but_o also_o he_o give_v to_o his_o apostle_n power_n to_o do_v they_o 2._o first_o simon_n peter_n the_o first_o not_o in_o call_v but_o in_o preeminence_n primacy_n for_o as_o s._n ambrose_n say_v in_o 2_o cor._n 12._o andrew_z first_o follow_v our_o saviour_n before_o peter_n 155â_n and_o yet_o the_o primacy_n andrew_n receive_v not_o but_o peter_n which_o preeminence_n of_o s._n peter_n above_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v so_o plain_o signify_v in_o this_o word_n first_o by_o the_o judgement_n even_o of_o heretic_n that_o beza_n notwithstanding_o he_o confess_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o copy_n both_o latin_a and_o greek_a yet_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o he_o suspect_v that_o this_o word_n be_v thrust_v into_o the_o text_n by_o some_o favourer_n of_o peter_n primacy_n whereby_o we_o have_v also_o that_o they_o care_v no_o more_o for_o the_o greek_a then_o for_o the_o latin_a when_o it_o make_v against_o they_o but_o at_o their_o pleasure_n say_v that_o all_o be_v corrupt_v 9_o do_v not_o possess_v preacher_n may_v not_o careful_o seek_v after_o the_o superfluity_n of_o this_o life_n or_o any_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v a_o impediment_n to_o their_o function_n and_o as_o for_o necessary_n they_o deserve_v their_o temporal_a live_n at_o their_o hand_n for_o who_o they_o labour_v spiritual_o 12._o peace_n to_o this_o house_n as_o christ_n himself_o use_v these_o word_n or_o this_o blessing_n often_o blessing_n peace_n be_v to_o you_o so_o here_o he_o bid_v his_o apostle_n say_v the_o like_a to_o the_o house_n where_o they_o come_v and_o so_o have_v it_o be_v always_o a_o most_o godly_a use_n of_o bishop_n 14._o to_o geve_v their_o blessing_n where_o they_o come_v which_o blessing_n must_v needs_o be_v of_o great_a grace_n and_o profit_n when_o none_o but_o worthy_a person_n as_o here_o we_o read_v may_v take_v good_a thereof_o sin_n and_o when_o it_o be_v never_o lose_v but_o return_v to_o the_o gever_n when_o the_o other_o party_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o it_o among_o other_o spiritual_a benefit_n it_o take_v away_o venial_a sin_n amb._n in_o 9_o luc._n 14._o shake_v of_o the_o dust_n to_o contemn_v the_o true_a preacher_n or_o not_o to_o receive_v the_o truth_n preach_v be_v a_o very_a damnable_a sin_n 15._o more_o tolerable_a hereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o there_o be_v degree_n and_o difference_n of_o damnation_n in_o hell_n fire_n according_a to_o man_n desert_n aug._n li._n â_o de_fw-fr bapt._n c._n 19_o 18._o king_n in_o the_o begin_n king_n and_o emperor_n persecute_v the_o church_n that_o by_o the_o very_a death_n and_o blood_n of_o martyr_n it_o shall_v grow_v more_o miraculous_o afterward_o when_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n be_v themselves_o become_v christian_n they_o use_v their_o power_n for_o the_o church_n against_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n aug._n ep_v 48._o 19_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v this_o be_v verify_v even_o at_o this_o present_a also_o when_o many_o good_a catholic_n that_o have_v no_o great_a learning_n by_o their_o answer_n confound_v the_o adversary_n 25._o how_o much_o more_o no_o marvel_v therefore_o if_o heretic_n call_v christ_n vicar_n antichrist_n when_o their_o forefather_n the_o faithless_a jew_n call_v christ_n himself_o beelzebub_n 32._o confess_v i_o see_v how_o christ_n esteem_v the_o open_a confess_v of_o he_o truth_n that_o be_v of_o his_o truth_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n 9_o for_o as_o when_o saul_n persecute_v the_o church_n he_o say_v *_o himself_o be_v persecute_v so_o to_o confess_v he_o and_o his_o church_n be_v all_o one_o contrariwise_o see_v how_o he_o abhor_v they_o that_o deny_v he_o before_o man_n which_o be_v not_o only_o to_o deny_v any_o one_o little_a article_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n commend_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n but_o also_o to_o allow_v or_o consent_v to_o heresy_n by_o any_o mean_n as_o by_o subscribe_v come_v to_o their_o service_n and_o sermon_n further_a they_o any_o way_n against_o catholic_n and_o such_o like_a 34._o not_o peace_n but_o sword_n christ_n come_v to_o break_v the_o peace_n of_o worldling_n and_o sinner_n as_o when_o the_o son_n beleve_v in_o he_o and_o the_o father_n do_v not_o the_o wife_n be_v a_o catholic_a and_o the_o husband_n be_v not_o for_o to_o agree_v together_o in_o infidelity_n heresy_n or_o any_o other_o sin_n be_v a_o naughty_a peace_n this_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o christ_n word_n mark_v that_o the_o heretic_n interpret_v this_o to_o maintain_v their_o rebellion_n and_o trouble_n which_o their_o new_a gospel_n breed_v beza_n in_o no._n test_n a_o 1565._o 37._o more_o than_o no_o earthly_a thing_n nor_o duty_n to_o parent_n wife_n child_n country_n or_o to_o a_o man_n own_o body_n and_o life_n can_v be_v any_o just_a excuse_n why_o a_o man_n shall_v do_v or_o feign_v himself_o to_o do_v or_o believe_v any_o thing_n against_o christ_n or_o the_o unity_n and_o faith_n of_o his_o church_n 41._o in_o the_o name_n reward_v for_o hospitality_n and_o special_o for_o receive_v a_o holy_a person_n as_o prophet_n apostle_n bishop_n or_o priest_n persecute_v for_o christ_n sake_n for_o by_o receive_v of_o he_o in_o that_o respect_n as_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o he_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o he_o reward_v as_o for_o such_o a_o one_o whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n he_o that_o receive_v a_o heretic_n into_o his_o house_n and_o a_o false_a preacher_n do_v communicate_v with_o his_o wicked_a work_n ep._n 2._o io._n chap._n xi_o john_n the_o baptist_n in_o prison_n also_o do_v his_o diligence_n send_v some_o of_o his_o disciple_n to_o christ_n that_o as_o they_o hear_v so_o they_o may_v also_o see_v his_o miracle_n with_o their_o eye_n 7_o afterwards_o christ_n declare_v how_o worthy_a of_o credit_n johns_n testimony_n be_v 16_o and_o inveigh_v against_o the_o lew_n who_o with_o neither_o of_o their_o manner_n of_o life_n can_v be_v win_v 20_o no_o nor_o with_o christ_n infinite_a miracle_n 25_o praise_v god_n wisdom_n in_o this_o behalf_n 27_o and_o call_v to_o himself_o all_o such_o as_o feel_v theâe_n own_o burden_n verse_n 1_o and_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o jesus_n have_v do_v command_v his_o twelue_fw-la disciple_n he_o pass_v from_o thence_o to_o teach_v &_o preach_v in_o their_o city_n â_o verse_n 2_o *_o and_o when_o john_n have_v hear_v in_o prison_n the_o work_n of_o christ_n advent_a send_v two_o of_o his_o disciple_n 18._o he_o say_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 3_o â³_o be_v thou_o he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v or_o look_v we_o for_o a_o other_o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o jesus_n make_v answer_n say_v to_o they_o go_v and_o report_v to_o john_n what_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v 1._o â_o verse_n 5_o *_o the_o blind_a see_v the_o
through_o dry_a place_n seek_v rest_n and_o find_v not_o â_o verse_n 44_o then_o he_o say_v i_o will_v return_v into_o my_o house_n whence_o i_o come_v out_o and_o come_v he_o find_v it_o vacant_a sweep_v with_o besom_n and_o trim_v â_o verse_n 45_o then_o go_v he_o and_o take_v with_o he_o seven_o other_o spirit_n more_o wicked_a than_o himself_o 20._o and_o they_o enter_v in_o and_o dwell_n there_o and_o *_o the_o last_o of_o that_o man_n be_v make_v worse_o than_o the_o first_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v also_o to_o this_o wicked_a generation_n â_o verse_n 46_o as_o he_o be_v yet_o speak_v to_o the_o multitude_n 31._o *_o behold_v his_o mother_n and_o his_o brethren_n stand_v without_o â0_n seek_v to_o speak_v to_o he_o 20._o â_o verse_n 47_o and_o one_o say_v unto_o he_o behold_v thy_o mother_n and_o thy_o brethren_n stand_v without_o seek_v thou_o â_o verse_n 48_o but_o he_o answer_v he_o that_o tell_v he_o say_v â³_o who_o be_v my_o mother_n and_o who_o be_v my_o brethren_n â_o verse_n 49_o and_o stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n upon_o his_o disciple_n he_o say_v behold_v my_o mother_n and_o my_o brethren_n â_o verse_n 50_o for_o whosoever_o shall_v do_v the_o will_v of_o my_o father_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o be_v my_o brother_n and_o sister_n and_o mother_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n xii_o 24._o in_o beelzebub_n the_o like_a blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o attribute_v the_o miracle_n do_v by_o saint_n either_o dead_a or_o alive_a to_o the_o devil_n 30._o not_o with_o i_o they_o that_o be_v indifferent_a to_o all_o religion_n religion_n common_o and_o fit_o call_v neuter_n âoyning_v themselves_o to_o neither_o part_n let_v they_o mark_v these_o word_n well_o and_o they_o shall_v see_v that_o christ_n account_v all_o they_o to_o be_v against_o he_o and_o his_o church_n that_o be_v not_o plain_o and_o flat_o with_o he_o and_o it_o 30._o gather_v not_o with_o i_o he_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o his_o own_o person_n but_o of_o all_o to_o who_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n and_o special_o of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n succeed_v peter_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a â8_o as_o s._n hierom_n write_v to_o damasus_n pope_n of_o rome_n apply_v these_o word_n unto_o he_o say_v of_o all_o heretic_n he_o that_o gather_v not_o with_o thou_o scatter_v that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o that_o be_v not_o with_o christ_n be_v with_o antichrist_n 31._o the_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o mean_v not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o sin_n so_o great_a which_o god_n will_v not_o forgive_v or_o whereof_o a_o man_n may_v not_o repent_v in_o this_o life_n as_o some_o heretic_n at_o this_o day_n affirm_v but_o that_o some_o heinous_a sin_n as_o namely_o this_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o jew_n against_o the_o evident_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o likewise_o archeheretike_n who_o wilful_o resist_v the_o know_v truth_n and_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o god_n church_n be_v hardly_o forgeven_v and_o seldom_o have_v such_o man_n grace_v to_o repent_v otherwise_o among_o all_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v common_o reckon_v six_o one_o only_a shall_v never_o be_v forgive_v impenitence_n that_o be_v die_v without_o repentance_n wilful_o call_v final_a impenitence_n which_o sin_n he_o commit_v that_o die_v with_o contempt_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n obstinate_o refuse_v absolution_n by_o the_o church_n ministry_n as_o s._n augustine_n plain_o declare_v in_o these_o word_n church_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o beleve_v not_o man_n sin_n to_o be_v remit_v in_o god_n church_n and_o therefore_o despise_v the_o bountifulness_n of_o god_n in_o so_o mighty_a a_o work_n if_o he_o in_o that_o obstinate_a mind_n continue_v tll_v his_o life_n end_n he_o be_v guilty_a of_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o which_o holy_a ghost_n christ_n remit_v sin_n enchir._n 83._o ep._n 50_o in_o fine_a 32._o son_n of_o man_n the_o jew_n in_o their_o word_n sin_v against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n when_o they_o reprehend_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v as_o a_o man_n to_o wit_n call_v he_o therefore_o a_o glutton_n a_o great_a drinker_n of_o wine_n a_o friend_n of_o the_o publican_n and_o take_v offence_n because_o he_o keep_v company_n with_o sin_n break_v the_o sabbath_n and_o such_o like_a and_o this_o sin_n may_v more_o easy_o be_v forgive_v they_o because_o they_o judge_v of_o he_o as_o they_o will_v have_v do_v of_o any_o other_o man_n but_o they_o sin_v and_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v here_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o wrought_v miracle_n when_o of_o malice_n they_o attribute_v the_o evident_a work_n of_o god_n in_o cast_v our_o devil_n to_o the_o devil_n himself_o and_o this_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v remit_v because_o it_o shall_v hardly_o be_v remit_v as_o we_o see_v by_o the_o plague_n of_o their_o posterity_n until_o this_o day_n 3â_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v s._n augustine_n and_o other_o holy_a doctor_n gather_v hereupon_o that_o some_o sin_n may_v be_v remit_v in_o the_o next_o life_n purgatory_n and_o consequent_o prove_v purgatory_n thereby_o de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la li._n 21_o c._n 18._o d._n gregor_n dial._n li._n 4_o c._n 39_o 36._o idle_a word_n if_o of_o every_o idle_a word_n we_o must_v make_v account_n before_o god_n in_o judgement_n and_o yet_o shall_v not_o for_o every_o such_o word_n be_v damn_v everlasting_o then_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o temporal_a punishment_n in_o the_o next_o life_n 4â_n who_o be_v my_o mother_n the_o dutiful_a affection_n towards_o our_o parent_n and_o kinsfolk_n be_v not_o blame_v but_o the_o inordinate_a love_n of_o they_o to_o the_o hindrance_n of_o our_o service_n and_o duty_n towards_o god_n scripture_n upon_o this_o place_n some_o old_a heretic_n deny_v christ_n to_o have_v any_o mother_n aug._n li._n de_fw-fr fid._n &_o symb._n c._n 4._o neither_o ever_o be_v there_o any_o heresy_n so_o absurd_a but_o it_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v scripture_n for_o it_o chap._n xiii_o speak_v in_o parable_n as_o the_o scripture_n foretell_v of_o he_o and_o as_o meet_v be_v for_o the_o reprobate_a jew_n he_o show_v by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o sour_n that_o in_o the_o labour_n of_o his_o church_n three_o part_n of_o four_o do_v perish_v through_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o hearer_n 24_o and_o yet_o by_o the_o parable_n of_o good_a seed_n and_o cockle_n as_o also_o of_o the_o nettâ_n that_o his_o seruantâ_n must_v not_o for_o all_o that_o never_o while_n the_o world_n last_v make_v any_o schism_n or_o separation_n 31_o and_o by_o parable_n of_o the_o little_a mustard_n seed_n and_o leaven_n that_o notwithstanding_o the_o three_o part_n perish_v and_o oversow_v of_o cockle_n yet_o that_o four_o part_n of_o the_o good_a seed_n shall_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n 44_o and_o withal_o what_o a_o treasure_n and_o pearl_n it_o be_v 53_o after_o all_o which_o yet_o his_o own_o country_n will_v not_o honour_v he_o verse_n 1_o the_o same_o day_n jesus_n go_v out_o of_o the_o house_n 1._o sit_v by_o the_o sea_n side_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o *_o great_a multitude_n be_v gather_v together_o unto_o he_o 4._o in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o go_v up_o into_o a_o boat_n &_o sit_v and_o all_o the_o multitude_n stand_v in_o the_o shore_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o many_o thing_n in_o parablesh_fw-mi say_v behold_v the_o sower_n go_v forth_o to_o sow_v â_o verse_n 4_o and_o while_o he_o sow_v some_o fall_v by_o the_o way_n side_n and_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n do_v come_v and_o eat_v it_o â_o verse_n 5_o othersome_a also_o fall_v upon_o rocky_a place_n where_o they_o have_v not_o much_o earth_n and_o they_o shoot_v up_o in_o continent_n because_o they_o have_v not_o deepens_n of_o earth_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o after_o the_o sun_n be_v up_o they_o parch_v and_o because_o they_o have_v not_o root_n they_o wither_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o other_o fall_v among_o thorn_n and_o the_o thorn_n grew_a and_o choke_v they_o â_o verse_n 8_o and_o othersome_a fall_v upon_o good_a ground_n and_o they_o yield_v fruit_n the_o â³_o one_o a_o hundred-fold_n the_o other_o threescore_o and_o a_o other_o thirty_o â_o verse_n 9_o he_o that_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v let_v he_o hear_v â_o verse_n 10_o and_o his_o disciple_n come_v and_o say_v to_o he_o why_o speak_v thou_o to_o they_o in_o parable_n â_o verse_n 11_o who_o answer_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o because_o â³_o to_o you_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o to_o they_o it_o be_v not_o give_v â_o verse_n 12_o for_o he_o that_o have_v to_o he_o
but_o by_o christ_n warrant_n and_o authority_n and_o by_o such_o as_o he_o have_v place_v to_o rule_v his_o church_n of_o who_o he_o say_v 16_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o they_o be_v make_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n join_v with_o our_o pastor_n in_o the_o regiment_n of_o the_o faithful_a they_o be_v make_v by_o our_o mother_n the_o church_n which_o whosoever_o obi_v not_o 17._o we_o be_v warn_v to_o take_v he_o as_o a_o heathen_a but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n all_o law_n doctrine_n service_n and_o injunction_n of_o heretic_n how_o soever_o pretend_v to_o be_v consonant_n to_o the_o scripture_n be_v commandment_n of_o man_n because_o both_o the_o thing_n by_o they_o prescribe_v be_v impious_a and_o the_o author_n have_v neither_o send_v nor_o commission_n from_o god_n 11._o not_o that_o which_o enter_v the_o catholic_n do_v not_o abstain_v from_o certain_a meat_n meat_n for_o that_o they_o esteem_v any_o meat_n unclean_a either_o by_o creation_n or_o by_o judaical_a observation_n but_o they_o abstain_v for_o chastisement_n of_o their_o concupiscence_n aug._n li._n de_fw-fr mor._n ec._n cath._n c._n 33._o 18._o defile_v a_o man_n it_o be_v sin_n only_o which_o proper_o defile_v man_n and_o meat_n of_o themselves_o or_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n do_v not_o defile_v but_o so_o far_o as_o by_o accident_n they_o make_v a_o man_n to_o sin_n abstinence_n as_o the_o disobedience_n of_o god_n commandment_n or_o of_o our_o superior_n who_o forbid_v some_o meat_n for_o certain_a time_n and_o cause_n 3._o be_v a_o sin_n as_o the_o apple_n which_o our_o first_o parent_n do_v eat_v of_o though_o of_o itself_o it_o do_v not_o defile_v they_o yet_o be_v eat_v against_o the_o precept_n it_o do_v defile_v so_o neither_o flesh_n nor_o fish_n of_o itself_o do_v defile_v but_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o church_n precept_n defile_v chap._n xvi_o the_o obstinate_a pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n as_o though_o his_o foresay_a miracle_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n require_v to_o see_v some_o one_o from_o heaven_n 5_o whereupon_o forsake_v they_o he_o warn_v his_o disciple_n to_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o their_o doctrine_n ãâã_d and_o peter_n the_o time_n now_o approach_v for_o he_o to_o go_v into_o lewrie_n to_o his_o passion_n for_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n he_o make_v the_o rock_n of_o his_o church_n geve_v fullness_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n according_o 21_o and_o after_o he_o so_o rebuke_v he_o fordissuade_v his_o cross_n and_o passion_n that_o he_o also_o affirm_v the_o like_a suffering_n in_o every_o one_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n verse_n 1_o and_o there_o come_v to_o he_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n tempt_v 12._o and_o they_o demand_v he_o to_o show_v they_o a_o sign_n from_o heaven_n 54._o â_o verse_n 2_o but_o he_o answer_v &_o say_v to_o they_o when_o it_o be_v evening_n you_o say_v it_o will_v be_v faire-weth_a for_o the_o element_n be_v read_v â_o verse_n 3_o and_o in_o the_o morning_n this_o day_n there_o will_v be_v a_o tempest_n for_o the_o element_n do_v glow_v and_o lower_n the_o face_n therefore_o of_o the_o element_n you_o have_v skill_n to_o discern_v and_o the_o sign_n of_o time_n can_v you_o not_o â_o verse_n 4_o the_o *_o naughty_a and_o advouterous_a generation_n seek_v for_o a_o sign_n 39_o and_o there_o shall_v not_o a_o sign_n be_v give_v it_o but_o the_o sign_n of_o jonas_n the_o prophet_n and_o he_o leave_v they_o and_o go_v away_o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o *_o when_o his_o disciple_n be_v come_v over_o the_o water_n 14._o they_o forget_v to_o take_v bread_n â_o verse_n 6_o who_o say_v to_o they_o 1._o look_v well_o and_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n &_o sadducee_n â_o verse_n 7_o but_o they_o think_v within_o themselves_o say_v because_o we_o take_v not_o bread_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o jesus_n know_v it_o say_v why_o do_v you_o think_v within_o yourselves_o o_o you_o of_o little_a faith_n for_o that_o you_o have_v not_o bread_n â_o verse_n 9_o do_v you_o not_o yet_o understand_v 34._o neither_o do_v you_o remember_v *_o the_o five_o loaf_n among_o five_o thousand_o man_n and_o how_o many_o basket_n you_o take_v up_o â_o verse_n 10_o neither_o the_o *_o seven_o loaf_n among_o four_o thousand_o man_n and_o how_o many_o maunde_v you_o take_v up_o â_o verse_n 11_o why_o do_v you_o not_o understand_v that_o i_o say_v not_o of_o bread_n to_o you_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n &_o sadducee_n â_o verse_n 12_o then_o they_o understand_v that_o he_o say_v not_o they_o shall_v beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o bread_n but_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o *_o jesus_n come_v into_o the_o quarter_n of_o caesarea_n philippi_n thereof_o and_o he_o ask_v his_o disciple_n 27._o say_v â³_o who_o say_v man_n that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v â_o verse_n 14_o but_o â³_o they_o say_v 18._o some_o john_n the_o baptist_n &_o othersome_a elias_n and_o other_o hieremie_n or_o one_o of_o the_o prophet_n â_o verse_n 15_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o but_o who_o do_v you_o say_v that_o i_o be_o â_o verse_n 16_o simon_n peter_n answer_v &_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o jesus_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o â³_o bless_a be_v thou_o simon_n bar-iona_n because_o flesh_n &_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v it_o to_o thou_o but_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o â³_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o 42._o that_o â³_o thou_o be_v *_o rock_n peter_n and_o â³_o upon_o this_o â³_o rock_n will_v i_o â³_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o â³_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o â_o verse_n 19_o and_o i_o *_o will_v give_v â³_o to_o thou_o the_o â³_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 15._o and_o â³_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v in_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v loose_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 20_o then_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n that_o they_o shall_v tell_v no_o body_n that_o he_o be_v jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 21_o from_o that_o time_n jesus_n begin_v to_o show_v his_o disciple_n that_o he_o must_v go_v to_o jerusalem_n &_o suffer_v many_o thing_n of_o the_o ancient_n &_o scribe_n &_o cheefe-prieste_n and_o be_v kill_v and_o the_o three_o day_n rise_v again_o â_o verse_n 22_o and_o peter_n take_v he_o unto_o he_o begin_v to_o rebuke_v he_o say_v lord_n be_v it_o far_o from_o thou_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v unto_o thou_o â_o verse_n 23_o who_o turn_v say_v to_o peter_n go_v after_o i_o here_o satan_n thou_o be_v a_o scandal_n unto_o i_o because_o thou_o savoure_v not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n but_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o man_n â_o verse_n 24_o then_o jesus_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n bishop_n if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o â_o verse_n 25_o for_o he_o that_o will_v save_v his_o life_n shall_v lose_v it_o and_o he_o that_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n for_o i_o shall_v find_v it_o â_o verse_n 26_o for_o what_o do_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n if_o he_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o sustain_v the_o damage_n of_o his_o soul_n or_o what_o permutation_n shall_v a_o man_n give_v for_o his_o soul_n â_o verse_n 27_o for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o his_o angel_n and_o then_o will_v he_o render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o â³_o work_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 28_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o 1_o *_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o that_o stand_v here_o 27._o that_o shall_v not_o taste_v death_n till_o they_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o his_o kingdom_n annotation_n chap._n xvi_o 13._o who_o say_v man_n christ_n intend_v here_o to_o take_v order_n for_o the_o sound_n primacy_n regiment_n and_o stability_n of_o his_o church_n after_o his_o deceaâe_n and_o to_o name_v the_o person_n to_o who_o he_o mean_v to_o geve_v the_o general_a charge_n thereof_o will_v before_o by_o interrogatory_n draw_v out_o and_o namely_o out_o of_o that_o one_o who_o he_o think_v to_o make_v the_o chief_a the_o profession_n of_o that_o high_a and_o principal_a article_n that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n be_v a_o necessary_a quality_n and_o condition_n in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v make_v head_n
be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o good_a emperor_n be_v within_o the_o church_n not_o above_o the_o church_n ambr._n lib._n 5._o epist_n orat._n de_fw-fr basil_n trad_a 30._o as_o angel_n as_o christ_n prove_v here_o prayer_n that_o in_o heaven_n they_o neither_o marry_v nor_o be_v marry_v because_o there_o they_o shall_v be_v as_o angel_n by_o the_o very_a same_o reason_n be_v prove_v that_o saint_n may_v hear_v our_o prayer_n and_o help_v we_o be_v they_o near_a or_o far_o of_o because_o the_o angel_n do_v so_o and_o in_o every_o moment_n be_v present_a where_o they_o listen_v and_o need_v not_o to_o be_v near_o we_o when_o they_o hear_v or_o help_v us._n 30._o as_o angel_n not_o to_o marry_v nor_o be_v marry_v angelical_a be_v to_o be_v like_a to_o angel_n therefore_o be_v the_o state_n of_o religious_a man_n and_o woman_n and_o priest_n for_o not_o marry_v worthy_o call_v of_o the_o father_n a_o angelical_a life_n cyp._n lib._n 2._o the_o discipl_n &_o haâ_n virg._n sub_fw-la finem_fw-la 32._o of_o the_o dead_a s._n hierom_n by_o this_o place_n disprove_v the_o heretic_n vigilantius_n and_o in_o he_o these_o of_o our_o time_n which_o to_o diminish_v the_o honour_n of_o saint_n call_v they_o of_o purpose_n dead_a man_n 40._o on_o these_o two_o hereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o all_o depend_v not_o upon_o faith_n only_o faith_n but_o much_o more_o upon_o charity_n though_o faith_n be_v the_o first_o which_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o our_o neighbour_n which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n because_o he_o that_o have_v this_o double_a charity_n express_v here_o by_o these_o two_o principal_a commandment_n fulfil_v and_o accomplish_v all_o that_o be_v command_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n chap._n xxiii_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n after_o all_o this_o continue_v still_o incorrigible_a although_o he_o will_v have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o chair_n obey_v yet_o against_o their_o work_n and_o namely_o their_o ambition_n he_o open_o inveigh_v cry_v to_o they_o eight_o woe_n for_o their_o eightfold_n hypocrisy_n and_o blindness_n 34_o and_o so_o conclude_v with_o the_o most_o worthy_a reprobation_n of_o that_o persecute_v generation_n and_o their_o mother-citie_n jerusalem_n with_o her_o temple_n verse_n 1_o than_o jesus_n speak_v to_o the_o multitude_n and_o to_o his_o disciple_n lent_n â_o verse_n 2_o saying_n upon_o â_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n have_v sit_v the_o scribe_n and_o the_o pharisee_n â_o verse_n 3_o all_o thing_n therefore_o â_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v say_v to_o you_o observe_v you_o and_o do_v you_o 46._o but_o according_a to_o their_o work_n do_v you_o not_o 10._o for_o they_o say_v and_o do_v not_o â_o verse_n 4_o for_o *_o they_n bind_v heavy_a burden_n &_o importable_a and_o put_v they_o upon_o man_n shoulder_n but_o with_o a_o finger_n of_o their_o own_o they_o will_v not_o move_v they_o â_o verse_n 5_o but_o they_o do_v all_o their_o work_n for_o to_o be_v see_v of_o man_n for_o they_o make_v broad_a their_o mat._n phylactery_n 12._o and_o enlarge_v their_o *_o fringe_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o they_o â_o love_n the_o first_o place_n at_o supper_n and_o *_o the_o first_o chair_n in_o the_o synagogs_n 38._o â_o verse_n 7_o and_o salutation_n in_o the_o marketplace_n and_o to_o be_v call_v of_o man_n 38._o rabbi_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o be_v not_o you_o call_v rabbi_n for_o â_o one_o be_v youâ_n master_n and_o all_o you_o be_v brethren_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o call_v none_o father_n to_o yourself_o upon_o earth_n for_o one_o be_v your_o father_n he_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n 1._o â_o verse_n 10_o neither_o *_o be_v you_o call_v â_o master_n for_o one_o be_v your_o master_n christ_n â_o verse_n 11_o he_o that_o be_v the_o great_a of_o you_o shall_v be_v your_o seruiteur_fw-fr â_o verse_n 12_o and_o he_o that_o exalt_v himself_o shall_v be_v humble_v and_o he_o that_o humble_v himself_o shall_v be_v exalt_v â_o â_o verse_n 13_o but_o woe_n to_o you_o â_o scribes_z &_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n because_o you_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n before_o man_n for_o your_o self_n do_v not_o enter_v in_o &_o those_o that_o be_v go_v in_o you_o suffer_v not_o to_o enter_v â_o verse_n 14_o woe_n to_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n because_o you_o *_o devour_v widow_n house_n 47._o â_o pray_v long_o prayer_n for_o this_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o great_a judgement_n â_o verse_n 15_o woe_n to_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n because_o you_o go_v round_o about_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o land_n to_o make_v one_o proselyte_n and_o when_o he_o be_v make_v you_o make_v he_o the_o child_n of_o hell_n â_o double_a more_o than_o yourselves_o â_o verse_n 16_o woe_n to_o you_o blind_a guide_n that_o say_v whosoever_o shall_v swear_v by_o the_o temple_n it_o be_v nothing_o but_o he_o that_o shall_v swear_v by_o the_o gold_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v bind_v â_o verse_n 17_o you_o foolish_a and_o blind_a for_o whether_o be_v great_a the_o gold_n or_o the_o temple_n that_o sanctifi_v the_o gold_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o whosoever_o shall_v swear_v by_o the_o altar_n it_o be_v nothing_o but_o whosoever_o shall_v swear_v by_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v upon_o it_o be_v bind_v â_o verse_n 19_o you_o blind_a for_o whether_o be_v great_a the_o gift_n or_o the_o altar_n that_o â_o sanctifi_v the_o gift_n â_o verse_n 20_o he_o therefore_o that_o swear_v by_o the_o altar_n swear_v by_o it_o and_o by_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v upon_o it_o â_o verse_n 21_o and_o whosoever_o shall_v swear_v by_o the_o temple_n swear_v by_o it_o and_o â_o by_o he_o that_o dwell_v in_o it_o â_o verse_n 22_o and_o he_o that_o swear_v by_o heaven_n swear_v by_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n &_o by_o he_o that_o sit_v thereon_o â_o verse_n 23_o woe_n to_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n because_o you_o tithe_v mint_n and_o anise_v and_o cummin_n and_o have_v leave_v the_o weighty_a thing_n of_o the_o la_o judgement_n and_o mercy_n and_o faith_n these_o thing_n you_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v &_o not_o to_o have_v omit_v those_o â_o verse_n 24_o blind_a guide_n that_o strain_v a_o gâat_n and_o swallow_v a_o camel_n â_o verse_n 25_o woe_n to_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n because_o you_o make_v clean_o that_o on_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o dish_n full_a but_o within_o you_o be_v full_o '_o of_o rapine_n and_o uncleanness_n â_o verse_n 26_o thou_o blind_a pharisee_n first_o make_v clean_o the_o inside_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o the_o dish_n that_o the_o outside_n may_v become_v clean_o â_o verse_n 27_o woe_n to_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n hypocrite_n because_o you_o be_v like_a to_o white_v sepulcher_n which_o outward_o appear_v unto_o man_n beautiful_a but_o within_o be_v full_o of_o dead_a man_n bone_n and_o all_o filthiness_n â_o verse_n 28_o so_o you_o also_o outward_o in_o deed_n â_o appear_v to_o man_n just_a but_o inward_o you_o be_v full_a of_o hypocrisy_n and_o iniquity_n â_o verse_n 29_o woe_n to_o you_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n you_o hypocrite_n because_o you_o build_v the_o prophet_n sepulcher_n and_o â_o garnish_v the_o monument_n of_o just_a man_n â_o verse_n 30_o and_o say_v if_o we_o have_v be_v in_o our_o father_n day_n we_o have_v not_o be_v their_o fellow_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n â_o verse_n 31_o therefore_o you_o be_v a_o testimony_n to_o your_o own_o self_n that_o you_o be_v the_o son_n of_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o prophet_n â_o verse_n 32_o and_o fill_v you_o up_o the_o measure_n of_o your_o father_n â_o verse_n 33_o you_o serpent_n 26._o viper_n brood_n how_o will_v you_o flee_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o hell_n â_o verse_n 34_o therefore_o behold_v i_o send_v unto_o you_o prophet_n and_o wise_a man_n and_o scribe_n and_o of_o they_o you_o shall_v kill_v &_o crucify_v and_o of_o they_o you_o shall_v scourge_v in_o your_o synagogs_n and_o persecute_v from_o city_n into_o city_n â_o verse_n 35_o that_o upon_o you_o may_v come_v all_o the_o just_a blood_n that_o be_v shed_v upon_o the_o earth_n 8_o from_o the_o blood_n of_o *_o abel_n the_o just_a even_o unto_o the_o blood_n of_o *_o zacharias_n the_o son_n of_o barachias_n 22._o who_o you_o murder_v between_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o altar_n â_o verse_n 36_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v come_v upon_o this_o generation_n 34._o â_o verse_n 37_o *_o jerusalem_n jerusalem_n which_o kill_v the_o prophet_n and_o stone_v they_o that_o be_v send_v to_o thou_o how_o often_o will_v i_o gather_v together_o thy_o child_n as_o the_o hen_n do_v gather_v together_o her_o chicken_n under_o her_o
the_o place_n where_o man_n must_v adore_v 13._o â_o verse_n 21_o jesus_n '_o say_v to_o she_o woman_n believe_v i_o that_o the_o hour_n shall_v come_v when_o you_o shall_v neither_o in_o this_o mountain_n nor_o in_o jerusalem_n adore_v the_o father_n 36._o â_o verse_n 22_o *_o you_o adore_v that_o you_o know_v not_o we_o adore_v that_o we_o know_v for_o salvation_n be_v of_o the_o jew_n â_o verse_n 23_o but_o the_o hour_n come_v and_o now_o it_o be_v when_o the_o true_a adorer_n shall_v adore_v the_o father_n â³_o in_o spirit_n and_o verity_n for_o the_o father_n also_o seek_v such_o to_o adore_v he_o â_o verse_n 24_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o they_o that_o adore_v he_o must_v adore_v in_o spirit_n and_o verity_n â_o verse_n 25_o the_o woman_n say_v to_o he_o i_o know_v that_o messiah_n come_v which_o be_v call_v christ_n therefore_o when_o he_o come_v he_o will_v show_v we_o all_o thing_n â_o verse_n 26_o jesus_n say_v to_o she_o i_o be_o he_o that_o speak_v with_o thou_o â_o verse_n 27_o and_o incontinent_a his_o disciple_n come_v and_o they_o marvel_v that_o he_o talk_v with_o a_o woman_n no_o man_n for_o all_o that_o say_v what_o seek_v thou_o or_o why_o talk_v thou_o with_o she_o â_o verse_n 28_o the_o woman_n therefore_o leave_v her_o waterpot_n and_o she_o go_v into_o the_o city_n and_o say_v to_o those_o man_n â_o verse_n 29_o come_v and_o see_v a_o man_n that_o have_v tell_v i_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v do_v be_v not_o he_o christ_n â_o verse_n 30_o they_o go_v forth_o therefore_o out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o come_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 31_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o disciple_n desire_v he_o say_v rabbi_n eat_v â_o verse_n 32_o but_o he_o say_v to_o they_o i_o have_v meat_n to_o eat_v which_o you_o know_v not_o â_o verse_n 33_o the_o disciple_n therefore_o say_v one_o to_o a_o other_o have_v any_o man_n bring_v he_o for_o to_o eat_v â_o verse_n 34_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o my_o meat_n be_v to_o do_v the_o will_v of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o to_o perfect_v his_o work_n â_o verse_n 35_o do_v not_o you_o say_v that_o yet_o there_o be_v four_o month_n and_o harvest_n come_v behold_v i_o say_v to_o you_o lift_v up_o your_o eye_n and_o see_v the_o country_n that_o they_o be_v white_a already_o to_o harvest_n â_o verse_n 36_o and_o he_o that_o reap_v receive_v hire_v and_o gather_v fruit_n unto_o life_n everlasting_a that_o both_o he_o that_o sow_v and_o he_o that_o reap_v may_v rejoice_v together_o â_o verse_n 37_o for_o in_o this_o be_v the_o say_n true_a that_o it_o be_v one_o man_n that_o sow_v and_o it_o be_v a_o other_o that_o reap_v â_o verse_n 38_o i_o have_v send_v you_o to_o reap_v that_o which_o you_o labour_v not_o other_o have_v labour_v and_o you_o have_v enter_v into_o their_o labour_n â_o verse_n 39_o and_o of_o that_o city_n many_o believe_v in_o he_o of_o the_o samaritan_n for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o instruction_n woman_n give_v testimony_n that_o he_o tell_v i_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v do_v â_o verse_n 40_o therefore_o when_o the_o samaritan_n be_v come_v to_o he_o they_o desire_v he_o that_o he_o will_v tarry_v there_o and_o he_o tarry_v there_o two_o day_n â_o verse_n 41_o and_o many_o more_o believe_v for_o his_o own_o word_n â_o verse_n 42_o and_o they_o say_v to_o the_o woman_n that_o now_o not_o for_o thy_o say_n do_v we_o believe_v for_o ourselves_o have_v hear_v and_o do_v know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n in_o deed_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 43_o and_o after_o the_o two_o day_n he_o depart_v thence_o and_o go_v into_o galilee_n â_o verse_n 44_o for_o jesus_n himself_o give_v testimony_n that_o a_o prophet_n have_v not_o honour_n in_o his_o own_o country_n 12_o â_o verse_n 45_o therefore_o *_o when_o he_o be_v come_v into_o galilee_n 14_o the_o galilaean_o receive_v he_o 14._o whereas_o they_o have_v see_v all_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v do_v at_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o festival_n day_n for_o themselves_o also_o come_v to_o the_o festival_n day_n â_o verse_n 46_o he_o come_v again_o therefore_o into_o cana_n of_o galilee_n 9_o *_o where_o he_o make_v water_n wine_n pentecost_n and_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a lord_n who_o son_n be_v sick_a at_o capharnáum_n â_o verse_n 47_o he_n have_v hear_v that_o jesus_n come_v from_o jewrie_n into_o galilee_n go_v to_o he_o and_o desire_v he_o that_o he_o will_v come_v down_o &_o heal_v his_o son_n for_o he_o begin_v to_o die_v â_o verse_n 48_o jesus_n therefore_o say_v to_o he_o unless_o you_o see_v sign_n and_o wonder_v you_o believe_v not_o â_o verse_n 49_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o he_o lord_n come_v down_o before_o that_o my_o son_n die_v â_o verse_n 50_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o go_v thy_o son_n live_v the_o man_n believe_v the_o word_n that_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o and_o go_v â_o verse_n 51_o and_o as_o he_o be_v now_o go_v down_o his_o servant_n meet_v he_o and_o they_o bring_v word_n say_v that_o his_o son_n live_v â_o verse_n 52_o he_o ask_v therefore_o of_o they_o the_o hour_n wherein_o he_o be_v amend_v and_o they_o say_v to_o he_o that_o yesterday_o at_o the_o seven_o hour_n the_o fever_n leave_v he_o â_o verse_n 53_o the_o father_n therefore_o know_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o same_o hour_n wherein_o jesus_n say_v to_o he_o thy_o son_n live_v and_o himself_o believe_v and_o his_o whole_a house_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 54_o this_o again_o the_o *_o second_n sign_n do_v jesus_n 11._o when_o he_o be_v come_v from_o jewrie_n into_o galilee_n annotation_n chap._n four_o â0_n our_o father_n adore_v temple_n by_o adoration_n be_v mean_v do_v of_o sacrifice_n for_o other_o office_n of_o religion_n may_v be_v do_v in_o any_o place_n the_o samaritan_n to_o defend_v their_o adore_v in_o garizim_n pretend_v their_o worship_v there_o to_o be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o jew_n in_o jerusalem_n refer_v it_o to_o jacob_n whereas_o in_o deed_n that_o patriarch_n adore_v there_o before_o the_o temple_n be_v appoint_v or_o the_o law_n give_v 8._o make_v nothing_o for_o their_o schism_n which_o be_v begone_v by_o manasses_n a_o fugitive_a priest_n only_o to_o hold_v his_o unlawful_a wife_n thereby_o and_o to_o obtain_v superiority_n in_o schism_n which_o he_o can_v not_o do_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o brethren_n long_o after_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n from_o which_o the_o revolt_n be_v make_v therefore_o christ_n give_v sentence_n for_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n affirm_v that_o they_o have_v a_o good_a ground_n thereof_o but_o the_o samaritan_n none_n at_o al._n josephus_n also_o record_v how_o the_o samaritan_n demand_v of_o alexander_n the_o great_a the_o like_a privilege_n and_o immunity_n as_o he_o have_v grant_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n pretend_v their_o temple_n to_o be_v as_o great_a and_o as_o worthy_a prevail_v and_o themselves_o to_o be_v jew_n as_o the_o other_o and_o to_o worship_v the_o same_o god_n 6._o but_o their_o schismatical_a hypocrisy_n be_v easy_o spy_v and_o dimiss_v with_o nothing_o an_o other_o time_n the_o jew_n and_o samaritan_n as_o the_o same_o writer_n testify_v make_v a_o great_a stir_n in_o alexandria_n about_o the_o truth_n and_o antiquity_n of_o the_o schismatical_a temple_n and_o service_n in_o garizim_n and_o the_o other_o true_a temple_n of_o solomon_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o matter_n be_v put_v to_o arbitrement_n by_o ptolomaeus_n the_o king_n commandment_n only_o to_o trieâ_n whether_o of_o the_o two_o be_v first_o and_o the_o schismatic_n as_o their_o custom_n be_v per_fw-la saltum_fw-la can_v make_v their_o church_n or_o service_n as_o old_a as_o they_o listen_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o patriarch_n as_o our_o schismatic_n do_v now_o to_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n but_o when_o the_o trial_n be_v make_v only_o they_o of_o jerusalem_n do_v invincible_o prove_v by_o continual_a succession_n of_o their_o priest_n succession_n and_o by_o the_o just_a note_n of_o the_o time_n when_o the_o schismatic_n go_v out_o from_o they_o that_o they_o be_v the_o lawful_a and_o the_o other_o the_o false_a temple_n and_o false_a adoration_n and_o so_o it_o be_v judge_v and_o the_o samaritan_n put_v to_o silence_n afterward_o the_o say_a schismatic_n which_o be_v light_o the_o end_n of_o all_o schism_n revolt_v quite_o from_o the_o jew_n religion_n and_o dedicate_v their_o temple_n in_o garîzim_n to_o jupiter_n olympius_n as_o caluins_n supper_n and_o his_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v like_a at_o length_n to_o come_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o ceres_n and_o bacchus_n 23._o in_o spirit_n and_o verity_n our_o saviour_n foretell_v she_o that_o the_o
evil_a into_o the_o resurrection_n of_o judgement_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 30_o i_o can_v not_o of_o myself_o do_v any_o thing_n as_o i_o hear_v so_o i_o judge_v and_o my_o judgement_n be_v just_a because_o i_o seek_v not_o my_o will_v but_o the_o will_v of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o â_o verse_n 31_o if_o i_o give_v testimony_n of_o myself_o my_o testimony_n be_v not_o true_a â_o verse_n 32_o there_o be_v a_o other_o that_o give_v testimony_n of_o i_o and_o i_o know_v that_o the_o testimony_n be_v true_a which_o he_o give_v of_o i_o â_o verse_n 33_o *_o you_o send_v to_o john_n 19_o and_o he_o give_v testimony_n to_o the_o truth_n â_o verse_n 34_o but_o â³_o i_o receive_v not_o testimony_n of_o man_n but_o i_o say_v these_o thing_n that_o you_o may_v be_v save_v â_o verse_n 35_o he_o be_v the_o lamp_n burn_v and_o shine_v and_o you_o will_v for_o a_o time_n rejoice_v in_o his_o light_n â_o verse_n 36_o but_o i_o have_v a_o great_a testimony_n than_o john_n for_o the_o work_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o to_o perfect_v they_o the_o very_a work_n themselves_o which_o i_o do_v give_v testimony_n of_o i_o that_o the_o father_n have_v send_v i_o â_o verse_n 37_o and_o the_o father_n that_o send_v i_o himself_o have_v *_o give_v testimony_n of_o i_o 17_o neither_o have_v you_o hear_v his_o voice_n at_o any_o time_n nor_o see_v his_o shape_n â_o verse_n 38_o and_o his_o word_n you_o have_v not_o remain_v in_o you_o because_o who_o he_o have_v send_v he_o you_o believe_v not_o â_o verse_n 39_o â³_o search_v the_o like_a scripture_n for_o you_o think_v in_o they_o to_o have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o the_o same_o be_v they_o that_o give_v testimony_n of_o i_o â_o verse_n 40_o and_o you_o will_v not_o come_v to_o i_o that_o you_o may_v have_v life_n â_o verse_n 41_o glory_n of_o man_n i_o receive_v not_o â_o verse_n 42_o but_o i_o have_v know_v you_o that_o the_o love_n of_o god_n you_o have_v not_o in_o you_o â_o verse_n 43_o i_o be_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o my_o father_n and_o you_o receive_v i_o not_o if_o not_o a_o other_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n he_o you_o will_v receive_v â_o verse_n 44_o how_o can_v you_o believe_v that_o receive_v glory_v one_o of_o a_o other_o and_o the_o glory_n which_o be_v of_o god_n only_o you_o seek_v not_o â_o verse_n 45_o think_v not_o that_o i_o will_v accuse_v you_o to_o the_o father_n there_o be_v that_o accuse_v you_o moses_n in_o who_o you_o trust_v â_o verse_n 46_o for_o if_o you_o do_v believe_v moses_n you_o will_v perhaps_o believe_v i_o also_o for_o of_o i_o he_o have_v write_v â_o verse_n 47_o and_o if_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v his_o write_n how_o will_v you_o believe_v my_o word_n annotation_n chap._n v._n 2._o a_o pond_n creature_n this_o be_v as_o great_a a_o wonder_n and_o work_v as_o be_v in_o the_o old_a law_n yet_o never_o record_v in_o the_o scripture_n before_o the_o condition_n and_o circunstance_n of_o the_o same_o much_o to_o be_v distinct_o weigh_v against_o the_o miscreant_n of_o this_o time_n for_o many_o cause_n first_o that_o god_n without_o derogation_n to_o his_o honour_n yea_o to_o the_o great_a commendation_n of_o it_o do_v give_v virtue_n of_o miracle_n and_o cure_n to_o water_n or_o other_o creature_n second_o creature_n that_o he_o give_v such_o virtue_n to_o these_o creature_n special_o which_o be_v by_o use_n and_o occupy_v in_o sacred_a function_n or_o otherwise_o as_o it_o be_v sanctify_v for_o this_o pond_n be_v it_o wherein_o the_o carcase_n of_o sheep_n therefore_o call_v probatica_fw-la &_o other_o beast_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v med_n be_v first_o wash_v to_o which_o be_v always_o red_a as_o s._n hierom_n say_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o host_n this_o force_n be_v give_v for_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n there_o offer_v how_o much_o more_o may_v we_o acknowledge_v such_o work_n of_o god_n miraculous_o do_v in_o or_o about_o the_o sacrifice_n or_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o faithless_a man_n whole_o reject_v and_o condemn_v for_o fable_n because_o they_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o power_n of_o god_n three_o solemnity_n that_o this_o operation_n be_v give_v at_o one_o time_n more_o than_o a_o other_o &_o rather_o on_o great_a festival_n day_n than_o other_o vulgar_a time_n for_o this_o be_v the_o feast_n of_o pasche_n or_o of_o pentecost_n as_o day_n more_o sanctify_v and_o when_o the_o people_n make_v great_a concourse_n which_o show_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o wonder_n to_o see_v great_a miracle_n do_v at_o the_o memory_n and_o feast_n of_o martyr_n or_o other_o great_a festivity_n more_o than_o at_o other_o place_n and_o time_n four_o miracle_n that_o the_o angel_n or_o some_o special_a saint_n be_v precedent_n or_o patroness_n of_o such_o place_n of_o miracle_n and_o worker_n also_o under_o god_n of_o the_o effect_n that_o there_o extraordinary_o be_v do_v which_o ought_v to_o make_v christian_n less_o doubt_n that_o the_o force_n of_o diverse_a water_n in_o the_o world_n be_v just_o attribute_v by_o our_o forefather_n and_o good_a story_n to_o the_o prayer_n and_o presence_n of_o saint_n which_o profane_a incredulous_a man_n refer_v only_o to_o nature_n untrue_o pretend_v that_o god_n be_v more_o glorify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v of_o his_o ordinary_a providence_n then_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o miracle_n give_v to_o his_o saint_n or_o angel_n by_o his_o extraordinary_a providence_n five_o 137._o that_o miracle_n be_v not_o wrought_v on_o man_n by_o their_o faith_n only_o and_o as_o well_o by_o their_o presence_n in_o spirit_n as_o in_o body_n or_o upon_o the_o party_n desire_n or_o devotion_n only_o according_a to_o the_o heretic_n pretext_n that_o god_n be_v a_o like_a present_a by_o his_o power_n and_o grace_n to_o every_o man_n and_o place_n and_o therefore_o that_o man_n need_v not_o to_o go_v from_o their_o own_o house_n or_o country_n to_o seek_v holiness_n or_o health_n at_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o saint_n birth_n death_n memory_n for_o none_o can_v have_v benefit_n of_o this_o water_n but_o he_o that_o can_v touch_v it_o and_o be_v in_o it_o corporal_o and_o at_o that_o just_a time_n when_o the_o water_n be_v in_o motion_n by_o the_o angel_n pleasure_n yea_o sixth_o we_o may_v consider_v that_o in_o such_o case_n to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o marvellous_a rare_a and_o more_o earnest_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o and_o to_o signify_v to_o we_o that_o god_n have_v all_o such_o extraordinary_a operation_n in_o his_o own_o will_n and_o commandment_n without_o all_o rule_n of_o our_o reason_n and_o question_v thereon_o 2._o none_o can_v be_v heal_v but_o that_o person_n who_o first_o can_v get_v into_o the_o pond_n after_o the_o angel_n come_v and_o stir_v the_o same_o baptism_n seventh_o that_o these_o grace_n of_o corporal_a cure_n give_v to_o this_o water_n *_o prefigure_v the_o like_a force_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n for_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n though_o we_o need_v not_o seek_v correspondence_n thereof_o to_o the_o figure_n in_o every_o point_n last_o christ_n by_o his_o power_n of_o excellency_n and_o prerogative_n can_v and_o do_v heal_v this_o poor_a man_n that_o can_v get_v no_o body_n to_o help_v he_o into_o the_o water_n creature_n because_o he_o earnest_o and_o long_o desire_v the_o remedy_n by_o god_n appoint_v but_o be_v exclude_v by_o necessity_n as_o our_o lord_n save_v all_o such_o as_o die_v without_o baptism_n if_o they_o in_o their_o own_o person_n earnest_o intend_v desire_a and_o seek_v for_o the_o same_o 14._o sin_n no_o more_o we_o may_v gather_v hereby_o that_o this_o man_n long_a infirmity_n be_v for_o punishment_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o that_o man_n often_o attribute_v their_o sickness_n to_o other_o natural_a defect_n and_o seek_v for_o remedy_n of_o the_o world_n in_o vain_a infirmity_n when_o the_o sin_n for_o which_o it_o be_v send_v remain_v or_o be_v not_o repent_v ofâ_n and_o therefore_o that_o in_o all_o infirmity_n man_n shall_v first_o turn_v to_o god_n &_o go_v to_o their_o ghostly_a father_n and_o then_o call_v for_o the_o worldly_a physician_n afterward_o 34._o i_o receive_v not_o our_o master_n mean_v that_o man_n testimony_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o he_o nor_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o divinity_n depend_v on_o worldly_a witness_n or_o man_n commendation_n though_o to_o we_o such_o testimony_n be_v agreeable_a and_o necessary_a and_o so_o for_o our_o instruction_n he_o vouchsave_v to_o take_v the_o testimony_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n and_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n to_o send_v forth_o all_o his_o apostle_n and_o in_o
they_o all_o bishop_n and_o lawful_a pastor_n to_o be_v his_o witness_n from_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n superficial_o he_o reprehend_v the_o jew_n that_o read_v daily_o the_o scripture_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o they_o they_o shall_v find_v life_n and_o salvation_n they_o yet_o look_v over_o they_o so_o superficial_o that_o they_o can_v not_o find_v therein_o he_o to_o be_v christ_n their_o king_n lord_n life_n and_o saviour_n for_o the_o special_a master_n &_o scribe_n of_o the_o jew_v then_o be_v like_a unto_o our_o heretic_n now_o who_o be_v ever_o talk_v and_o turn_v and_o shuffle_n the_o scripture_n but_o be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o ignorant_a in_o the_o deep_a knowledge_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o our_o master_n refer_v they_o not_o to_o the_o read_v only_o or_o learn_v they_o without_o book_n or_o have_v the_o sentence_n thereof_o glorious_o paint_v or_o write_v in_o their_o temple_n house_n or_o coat_n but_o to_o the_o deep_a search_n of_o the_o meaning_n and_o mystery_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o so_o easy_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o letter_n chap._n vi_o have_v with_o five_o loaf_n feed_v five_o thousand_o 16_o walk_v also_o the_o night_n after_o upon_o the_o sea_n 22_o on_o the_o morrow_n the_o people_n there_o upon_o resort_v unto_o he_o part_n 27_o he_o preach_v unto_o they_o of_o the_o bread_n which_o he_o will_v give_v tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v come_v from_o heaven_n after_o and_o therefore_o able_a to_o give_v such_o bread_n as_o can_v quicken_v the_o word_n even_o his_o own_o flesh_n and_o that_o all_o his_o elect_n shall_v believe_v as_o much_o 60_o many_o not_o with_o stand_v do_v murmur_n at_o this_o doctrine_n yea_o and_o become_v apostate_n thoug_a he_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v see_v by_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n that_o he_o be_v descend_v from_o heaven_n but_o the_o twelue_fw-mi stick_v unto_o he_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v god_n omnipotent_a as_o he_o say_v among_o who_o also_o that_o no_o man_n be_v scandalize_v he_o signify_v that_o he_o foreknow_v which_o will_v become_v a_o trait_a as_o among_o the_o foresay_a which_o will_v become_v apostate_n verse_n 1_o after_o these_o thing_n jesus_n go_v beyond_o the_o sea_n of_o galilee_n sunday_n which_o be_v of_o tiberias_n 32._o â_o verse_n 2_o and_o a_o great_a multitude_n follow_v he_o because_o they_o see_v the_o sign_n which_o he_o do_v upon_o those_o that_o be_v sick_a 10_o â_o verse_n 3_o jesus_n therefore_o go_v up_o into_o the_o mountain_n and_o there_o he_o sare_z with_o his_o disciple_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o the_o pasche_n be_v at_o hand_n the_o festival_n day_n of_o the_o jew_n â_o verse_n 5_o when_o jesus_n therefore_o have_v lift_v up_o his_o eye_n and_o see_v that_o a_o very_a great_a multitude_n come_v to_o he_o he_o say_v to_o philippe_n whence_o shall_v we_o buy_v bread_n that_o these_o may_v eat_v â_o verse_n 6_o and_o this_o he_o say_v tempt_v he_o for_o himself_o know_v what_o he_o will_v do_v â_o verse_n 7_o philippe_n answer_v he_o two_o hundred_o penny_n worth_a of_o bread_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o they_o that_o every_o man_n may_v take_v a_o little_a piece_n â_o verse_n 8_o one_o of_o his_o disciple_n andrew_n the_o brother_n of_o simon_n peter_n say_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 9_o there_o be_v a_o boy_n here_o that_o have_v five_o barley_n loaf_n &_o two_o fish_n but_o what_o be_v these_o among_o so_o many_o â_o verse_n 10_o jesus_n therefore_o say_v make_v the_o man_n to_o sit_v down_o and_o there_o be_v much_o grass_n in_o the_o place_n the_o man_n therefore_o sit_v down_o in_o number_n about_o five_o thousand_o â_o verse_n 11_o jesus_n therefore_o take_v the_o loaf_n and_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_n he_o distribute_v to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o like_a manner_n also_o of_o the_o fish_n as_o much_o as_o they_o will_v â_o verse_n 12_o and_o after_o they_o be_v fill_v he_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n gather_v the_o fragment_n that_o be_v remain_v lest_o they_o be_v lose_v â_o verse_n 13_o they_o gather_v therefore_o and_o fill_v twelue_v basket_n with_o fragment_n of_o the_o five_o barley_n loaf_n which_o remain_v to_o they_o that_o have_v eat_v â_o verse_n 14_o those_o man_n therefore_o when_o they_o have_v see_v what_o a_o sign_n jesus_n have_v do_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o prophet_n in_o deed_n that_o be_v to_o come_v into_o the_o world_n â_o verse_n 15_o jesus_n therefore_o when_o he_o know_v that_o they_o will_v come_v to_o take_v he_o and_o make_v he_o king_n 46._o *_o he_o flee_v again_o into_o the_o mountain_n himself_o alone_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 16_o and_o when_o even_o be_v come_v his_o disciple_n go_v down_o to_o the_o sea_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o when_o they_o be_v go_v up_o into_o the_o ship_n they_o come_v beyond_o the_o sea_n into_o capharnáum_n and_o now_o it_o be_v dark_a and_o jesus_n be_v not_o come_v unto_o they_o â_o verse_n 18_o and_o the_o sea_n arise_v by_o reason_n of_o a_o great_a wind_n that_o blow_v â_o verse_n 19_o when_o they_o have_v to_o wed_v therefore_o about_o five_o and_o twenty_o or_o thirty_o furlonge_v they_o see_v jesus_n walk_v upon_o the_o sea_n and_o to_o draw_v nigh_o to_o the_o ship_n and_o they_o fear_v â_o verse_n 20_o but_o he_o say_v to_o they_o it_o be_v i_o fear_v not_o â_o verse_n 21_o they_o will_v therefore_o have_v take_v he_o into_o the_o ship_n and_o forthwith_o the_o ship_n be_v at_o the_o land_n to_o which_o they_o go_v â_o verse_n 22_o the_o next_o day_n the_o multitude_n that_o stand_v beyond_o the_o sea_n see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o boat_n there_o but_o one_o and_o that_o jesus_n have_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o boat_n with_o his_o disciple_n but_o that_o his_o disciple_n only_o be_v depart_v â_o verse_n 23_o but_o other_o boat_n come_v in_o from_o tiberias_n beside_o the_o place_n where_o they_o have_v eat_v the_o bread_n our_o lord_n thereof_o give_v thanks_n â_o verse_n 24_o when_o therefore_o the_o multitude_n see_v that_o jesus_n be_v not_o there_o nor_o his_o disciple_n they_o go_v up_o into_o the_o boat_n &_o come_v to_o capharnaun_n seek_v jesus_n â_o verse_n 25_o and_o when_o they_o have_v find_v he_o beyond_o the_o sea_n they_o say_v to_o he_o rabbi_n when_o come_v thou_o hither_o â_o verse_n 26_o jesus_n answer_v they_o and_o say_v amen_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o you_o seek_v i_o not_o because_o you_o have_v see_v sign_n but_o because_o you_o do_v eat_v of_o the_o loaf_n and_o be_v fill_v â_o verse_n 27_o â³_o work_v not_o the_o meat_n that_o perish_v but_o that_o endure_v unto_o life_n everlasting_a which_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v give_v you_o for_o he_o the_o father_n god_n have_v sign_v â_o verse_n 28_o they_o say_v therefore_o unto_o he_o what_o shall_v we_o do_v that_o we_o may_v work_v the_o work_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 29_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v to_o they_o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v â_o verse_n 30_o they_o say_v therefore_o to_o he_o what_o sign_n therefore_o do_v thou_o that_o we_o may_v see_v and_o may_v believe_v thou_o what_o work_v thou_o â_o verse_n 31_o our_o *_o father_n do_v eat_v manna_n in_o the_o desert_n 14._o as_o it_o be_v write_v bread_n from_o heaven_n he_o give_v they_o to_o eat_v â_o verse_n 32_o jesus_n therefore_o say_v to_o they_o 34._o amen_o 24._o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o moses_n give_v you_o not_o the_o bread_n from_o heaven_n but_o my_o father_n give_v you_o â³_o the_o true_a bread_n from_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 33_o for_o the_o bread_n of_o god_n it_o be_v that_o descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o give_v life_n to_o the_o world_n â_o verse_n 34_o they_o say_v therefore_o unto_o he_o lord_n give_v we_o always_o this_o bread_n â_o verse_n 35_o and_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o shall_v not_o hunger_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v never_o thirst_v â_o verse_n 36_o but_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o both_o you_o have_v see_v i_o and_o you_o believe_v not_o dead_a â_o verse_n 37_o al_n that_o the_o father_n give_v i_o shall_v come_v to_o i_o and_o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o i_o will_v not_o cast_v forth_o â_o verse_n 38_o because_o i_o descend_v from_o heaven_n not_o to_o do_v my_o own_o will_v but_o the_o will_v of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o â_o verse_n 39_o for_o this_o be_v the_o will_v of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o the_o father_n that_o all_o that_o he_o have_v give_v i_o i_o lose_v not_o thereof_o
have_v not_o leave_v i_o alone_o because_o the_o thing_n that_o please_v he_o i_o do_v always_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 30_o when_o he_o speak_v these_o thing_n many_o believe_v in_o he_o â_o verse_n 31_o jesus_n therefore_o say_v to_o they_o that_o believe_v he_o the_o jew_n if_o you_o commandment_n abide_v in_o my_o word_n you_o shall_v be_v my_o disciple_n in_o deed_n â_o verse_n 32_o and_o you_o shall_v know_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o truth_n shall_v make_v you_o free_a â_o verse_n 33_o they_o answer_v he_o we_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o we_o never_o serve_v any_o man_n how_o say_v thou_o you_o shall_v be_v free_a â_o verse_n 34_o jesus_n answer_v they_o amen_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o 16_o that_o *_o every_o one_o which_o commit_v sin_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n 19_o â_o verse_n 35_o and_o the_o servant_n abide_v not_o in_o the_o house_n for_o ever_o the_o son_n abide_v for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 36_o if_o therefore_o the_o son_n make_v you_o free_a you_o shall_v be_v io._n free_a in_o deed_n â_o verse_n 37_o i_o know_v that_o you_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n but_o you_o seek_v to_o kill_v i_o because_o my_o word_n take_v not_o in_o you_o â_o verse_n 38_o i_o speak_v that_o which_o i_o have_v see_v with_o my_o father_n and_o you_o do_v the_o thing_n that_o you_o have_v see_v with_o your_o father_n â_o verse_n 39_o they_o answer_v and_o say_v to_o he_o our_o father_n be_v abraham_n jesus_n say_v to_o they_o if_o you_o be_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n 2._o do_v the_o work_n of_o abraham_n â_o verse_n 40_o but_o now_o you_o seek_v to_o kill_v i_o a_o man_n that_o have_v speak_v the_o truth_n to_o you_o which_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o god_n this_o do_v not_o abraham_n â_o verse_n 41_o you_o do_v the_o work_n of_o your_o father_n they_o say_v therefore_o to_o he_o we_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o fornication_n we_o have_v one_o father_n god_n â_o verse_n 42_o jesus_n therefore_o say_v to_o they_o if_o god_n be_v your_o father_n very_o you_o will_v love_v i_o for_o from_o god_n i_o procee_v and_o come_v for_o i_o come_v not_o of_o myself_o but_o he_o send_v i_o â_o verse_n 43_o why_o do_v you_o not_o know_v my_o speech_n because_o you_o can_v not_o hear_v my_o word_n â_o verse_n 44_o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o your_o father_n you_o will_v do_v he_o be_v a_o 11._o mankiller_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o he_o stand_v not_o in_o the_o verity_n because_o verity_n be_v not_o in_o he_o when_o he_o speak_v a_o lie_n he_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o because_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o father_n thereof_o â_o verse_n 45_o but_o because_o i_o say_v the_o verity_n you_o believe_v i_o not_o â_o verse_n 46_o which_o of_o you_o â³_o shall_v argue_v i_o of_o sin_n if_o i_o say_v the_o verity_n why_o do_v you_o not_o believe_v i_o â_o verse_n 47_o he_o that_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n sunday_n therefore_o you_o hear_v not_o because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n â_o verse_n 48_o the_o jew_n therefore_o answer_v and_o say_v to_o he_o do_v not_o we_o say_v well_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o samaritane_n and_o have_v a_o devil_n â_o verse_n 49_o jesus_n answer_v joan._n i_o have_v no_o devil_n but_o i_o do_v honour_n my_o father_n and_o you_o have_v dishonour_v i_o â_o verse_n 50_o but_o i_o seek_v not_o my_o own_o glory_n there_o be_v that_o seek_v and_o judge_v â_o verse_n 51_o amen_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o if_o any_o man_n keep_v my_o word_n he_o shall_v not_o see_v death_n for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 52_o the_o jew_n therefore_o say_v now_o we_o have_v know_v that_o thou_o have_v a_o devil_n abraham_n be_v dead_a and_o the_o prophet_n and_o thou_o say_v if_o any_o man_n keep_v my_o word_n he_o shall_v not_o taste_v death_n for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 53_o why_o be_v thou_o great_a than_o our_o father_n abraham_n who_o be_v dead_a and_o the_o prophet_n be_v dead_a who_o do_v thou_o make_v thyself_o â_o verse_n 54_o jesus_n answer_v if_o i_o do_v glorify_v myself_o my_o glory_n be_v nothing_o it_o be_v my_o father_n that_o glorifi_v i_o who_o you_o say_v that_o he_o be_v your_o god_n â_o verse_n 55_o and_o you_o have_v not_o know_v he_o but_o i_o know_v he_o and_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o i_o know_v he_o not_o i_o shall_v be_v like_a to_o you_o a_o liar_n but_o i_o do_v know_v he_o and_o do_v keep_v his_o word_n â_o verse_n 56_o abraham_n your_o father_n rejoice_v that_o he_o may_v see_v my_o day_n and_o he_o see_v and_o be_v glad_a â_o verse_n 57_o the_o jew_n therefore_o say_v to_o he_o thou_o have_v not_o yet_o fifty_o year_n and_o have_v thou_o see_v abraham_n â_o verse_n 58_o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o amen_o amen_o i_o say_v to_o you_o before_o that_o abraham_n be_v make_v i_o be_o â_o verse_n 59_o they_o take_v stone_n therefore_o to_o cast_v at_o he_o but_o jesus_n hide_v himself_o and_o go_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n viii_o 34._o amen_n amen_n translate_v what_o be_v it_o say_v s._n augustine_n upon_o this_o place_n when_o our_o lord_n say_v amen_o amen_o he_o do_v much_o commend_v and_o urge_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o so_o utter_v double_v it_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a oath_n of_o he_o if_o a_o man_n may_v so_o say_v for_o amen_o in_o hebrew_n signify_v verum_fw-la a_o truth_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o translate_v whereas_o it_o may_v have_v be_v say_v verum_fw-la verum_fw-la diâo_fw-la vobis_fw-la but_o neither_o the_o ãâã_d greek_a interpreter_n dare_v do_v it_o nor_o the_o latin_a the_o hebrew_n word_n have_v remain_v still_o that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v the_o more_o esteem_v tract_n 41_o in_o joan._n by_o which_o word_n and_o the_o like_v 4._o record_v in_o other_o place_n of_o this_o new_a testament_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v great_a reason_n why_o we_o also_o say_v amen_o amen_n and_o dare_v not_o translate_v it_o and_o such_o like_a word_n into_o our_o english_a tongue_n chap._n ix_o to_o show_v that_o by_o his_o baptism_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o illumination_n or_o faith_n he_o will_v take_v away_o the_o blindness_n of_o the_o world_n he_o give_v with_o strange_a ceremony_n sight_n to_o one_o bear_v blind_a 8_o by_o which_o wonder_v miracle_n the_o attestation_n of_o the_o party_n himself_o and_o of_o his_o parent_n concur_v first_o the_o neighbour_n than_o also_o the_o pharisee_n themselves_o be_v plain_o confound_v yet_o so_o obstinate_a they_o be_v that_o because_o it_o be_v the_o sabbath_n when_o he_o wrought_v it_o they_o infer_v that_o he_o be_v not_o of_o god_n yea_o and_o throw_v out_o of_o their_o synagogue_n the_o party_n for_o confess_v he_o 35_o but_o our_o lord_n receive_v he_o 39_o and_o foretell_v by_o this_o occasion_n the_o excecation_n of_o the_o jeweâ_n because_o of_o their_o wilful_a obstinacy_n and_o illumination_n of_o the_o gentile_n who_o confess_v their_o own_o blindness_n verse_n 1_o and_o jesus_n pass_v by_o leât_n see_v a_o man_n blind_a from_o his_o nativity_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o his_o disciple_n ask_v he_o rabbi_n who_o have_v sin_v this_o man_n or_o his_o parent_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v bear_v blind_a â_o verse_n 3_o jesus_n answer_v glorify_v neither_o have_v this_o man_n sin_v nor_o his_o parent_n but_o that_o the_o work_n of_o god_n may_v be_v manifest_v in_o he_o â_o verse_n 4_o i_o must_v work_v the_o work_n of_o he_o that_o send_v i_o while_o it_o be_v day_n the_o night_n come_v here_o when_o no_o man_n can_v work_v â_o verse_n 5_o as_o long_o as_o i_o be_o in_o the_o world_n i_o be_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n â_o verse_n 6_o when_o he_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n he_o spit_v on_o the_o ground_n and_z â³_o make_v clay_n of_o the_o spittle_n and_o spread_v the_o clay_n upon_o his_o eye_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o say_v to_o he_o go_v sacramentis_fw-la wash_v in_o the_o pool_n of_o siloé_n which_o be_v interpret_v sent._n he_o go_v therefore_o and_o wash_v and_o he_o come_v see_v â_o verse_n 8_o therefore_o the_o neighbour_n and_o they_o which_o have_v see_v he_o before_o that_o he_o be_v a_o beggar_n say_v be_v not_o this_o he_o that_o sit_v and_o beg_v verse_n 9_o other_o say_v that_o this_o be_v he_o â_o but_o other_o no_o not_o so_o but_o he_o be_v like_o he_o but_o he_o say_v that_o i_o be_o he_o â_o verse_n 10_o they_o say_v therefore_o to_o he_o how_o be_v thy_o eye_n open_v â_o verse_n 11_o he_o answer_v that_o man_n that_o be_v call_v jesus_n make_v clay_n and_o anoint_v my_o eye_n and_o say_v to_o i_o go_v to_o
he_o account_v of_o they_o by_o this_o that_o he_o die_v for_o they_o 15_o and_o reveal_v unto_o they_o the_o secret_n of_o heaven_n 17_o and_o appoint_v their_o fruit_n to_o be_v perpetual_a 1â_n confirm_v they_o also_o against_o the_o persecution_n and_o hatred_n of_o the_o obstinate_a jew_n verse_n 1_o i_o be_o the_o true_a vine_n and_o my_o father_n be_v the_o husbandman_n martyr_n â_o verse_n 2_o every_o church_n branch_n in_o i_o not_o bear_v fruit_n he_o will_v take_v it_o away_o and_o every_o one_o that_o bear_v fruit_n he_o will_v purge_v it_o live_v that_o it_o may_v bring_v more_o fruit_n â_o verse_n 3_o now_o you_o be_v clean_o for_o the_o io._n word_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o â_o verse_n 4_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o as_o the_o branch_n can_v not_o bear_v fruit_n of_o itself_o unless_o it_o abide_v in_o the_o vine_n so_o you_o neither_o unless_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o â_o verse_n 5_o i_o be_o the_o vine_n you_o the_o branch_n he_o that_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o the_o same_o bear_v much_o fruit_n for_o without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o â_o verse_n 6_o if_o any_o abide_v not_o in_o i_o he_o shall_v be_v cast_v forth_o as_o the_o branch_n and_o shall_v wither_v and_o they_o shall_v gather_v he_o up_o and_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o fire_n and_o he_o burn_v â_o verse_n 7_o if_o you_o christ_n abide_v in_o i_o and_o my_o word_n abide_v in_o you_o you_o shall_v ask_v what_o thing_n soever_o you_o will_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o you_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 8_o in_o this_o my_o father_n be_v glorify_v that_o you_o bring_v very_o much_o fruit_n and_o become_v my_o disciple_n â_o verse_n 9_o as_o my_o father_n have_v love_v i_o i_o also_o have_v love_v you_o abide_v in_o my_o love_n â_o verse_n 10_o if_o you_o keep_v my_o precept_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n as_o i_o also_o have_v keep_v my_o father_n precept_n and_o do_v abide_v in_o his_o love_n â_o verse_n 11_o these_o thing_n i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o that_o my_o joy_n may_v be_v in_o you_o and_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v fill_v â_o verse_n 12_o *_o this_o be_v my_o precept_n 34_o that_o you_o love_v one_o a_o other_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o apostle_n â_o verse_n 13_o great_a love_n than_o this_o no_o man_n have_v that_o a_o man_n yield_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n â_o verse_n 14_o you_o be_v my_o friend_n if_o you_o do_v the_o thing_n that_o i_o command_v you_o â_o verse_n 15_o now_o i_o call_v you_o not_o servant_n for_o the_o servant_n know_v not_o what_o his_o lord_n do_v but_o you_o i_o have_v call_v friend_n because_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o hear_v of_o my_o father_n i_o have_v notify_v unto_o you_o â_o verse_n 16_o you_o choose_v not_o i_o but_o i_o choose_v you_o and_o have_v appoint_v you_o that_o you_o go_v &_o bring_v fruit_n and_o your_o fruit_n abide_v that_o whatsoever_o you_o ask_v the_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o may_v give_v it_o you_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 17_o these_o thing_n i_o command_v you_o that_o you_o love_v one_o a_o other_o â_o verse_n 18_o if_o the_o world_n hate_v you_o know_v you_o that_o it_o have_v hate_v i_o before_o you_o day_n â_o verse_n 19_o if_o you_o have_v be_v of_o the_o world_n the_o world_n will_v love_v his_o own_o but_o because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n but_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o out_o of_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o world_n hate_v you_o â_o verse_n 20_o remember_v my_o word_n that_o i_o say_v to_o you_o 16_o *_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o great_a than_o his_o master_n 40._o if_o they_o have_v persecute_v i_o you_o also_o will_v they_o persecute_v if_o they_o have_v keep_v my_o word_n precept_n you_o also_o will_v they_o keep_v â_o verse_n 21_o but_o all_o these_o thing_n they_o will_v do_v to_o you_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n because_o they_o know_v not_o he_o that_o send_v i_o â_o verse_n 22_o if_o i_o have_v not_o come_v and_o speak_v to_o they_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v sin_n but_o now_o they_o have_v no_o excuse_n of_o their_o sin_n â_o verse_n 23_o he_o that_o hate_v i_o hate_v my_o father_n also_o â_o verse_n 24_o if_o i_o have_v not_o do_v among_o they_o work_n that_o no_o other_o man_n have_v do_v they_o shall_v not_o have_v sin_n but_o now_o both_o they_o have_v see_v and_o they_o do_v hate_n both_o i_o and_o my_o father_n â_o verse_n 25_o but_o that_o the_o word_n may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v write_v in_o their_o la_o that_o they_o hate_v i_o gratis_o trinity_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 26_o but_o when_o the_o paraclete_n come_v who_o i_o *_o will_v send_v you_o from_o the_o father_n 19_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 1._o which_o procee_v from_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v give_v testimony_n of_o i_o â_o verse_n 27_o and_o you_o shall_v give_v testimony_n because_o you_o be_v with_o i_o from_o the_o beginning_n annotation_n chap._n xv._o 4._o unless_o you_o abide_v perseuêrance_n these_o conditional_a speech_n if_o you_o remain_v in_o the_o vine_n if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n and_o such_o like_a give_v we_o to_o wit_n that_o we_o be_v not_o sure_a to_o persist_v or_o perseuêre_fw-la nor_o to_o be_v save_v but_o under_o condition_n to_o be_v fulfil_v by_o us._n aug._n de_fw-fr corrept_v &_o gra_fw-mi c._n 13._o 4._o unless_o it_o abide_v whosoever_o by_o heresy_n or_o schism_n or_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n be_v cut_v of_o or_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n he_o can_v do_v no_o meritorious_a work_n to_o salvation_n 10._o keep_v my_o precept_n faith_n this_o careful_a and_o often_o admonition_n of_o keep_v his_o commandment_n prove_v that_o a_o christian_a man_n life_n be_v not_o only_o or_o principal_o in_o faith_n but_o in_o good_a work_n 24._o if_o i_o have_v if_o the_o jew_n have_v not_o sin_v by_o refuse_v christ_n in_o case_n he_o have_v not_o do_v great_a miracle_n than_o any_o other_o then_o be_v it_o a_o great_a folly_n of_o catholic_n to_o believe_v luther_n or_o caluins_n new_a opinion_n without_o any_o miracle_n at_o all_o 26._o who_o i_o will_v send_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v send_v by_o the_o son_n therefore_o he_o procee_v from_o he_o also_o as_o from_o the_o father_n though_o the_o late_a schismatical_a greek_n think_v otherwise_o 27._o you_o shall_v give_v he_o vouchsafe_v to_o join_v together_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o testimony_n of_o truth_n joint_o to_o consist_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n xvi_o the_o cause_n why_o be_v foretell_v they_o their_o persecution_n by_o the_o jew_n be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o afterward_o scandalize_v thereat_o 4_o though_o they_o think_v this_o heavy_a news_n it_o be_v for_o their_o vantage_n that_o he_o depart_v because_o of_o the_o great_a benefit_n that_o they_o shall_v receive_v by_o the_o come_v they_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o shall_v also_o be_v his_o witness_v against_o his_o enemy_n 16_o although_o in_o this_o world_n they_o shall_v so_o be_v persecute_v yet_o to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n they_o and_o their_o prayer_n make_v in_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v most_o acceptable_a and_o at_o length_n the_o child_n that_o be_v christ_n in_o all_o his_o member_n be_v bear_v their_o joy_n shall_v be_v such_o as_o no_o persecutor_n can_v take_v from_o they_o 31_o howbeit_o at_o this_o instant_n of_o his_o apprehension_n they_o will_v all_o forsake_v he_o verse_n 1_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v to_o you_o that_o you_o be_v not_o scandalize_v â_o verse_n 2_o out_o of_o the_o synagog_n they_o will_v 22._o cast_v you_o but_o the_o hour_n come_v that_o every_o one_o which_o kill_v you_o shall_v think_v that_o he_o do_v service_n to_o god_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o these_o thing_n they_o will_v do_v to_o you_o because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v the_o father_n nor_o i_o â_o verse_n 4_o but_o these_o thing_n i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o that_o when_o the_o hour_n shall_v come_v you_o may_v remember_v they_o that_o i_o tell_v you_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 5_o but_o i_o tell_v you_o not_o these_o thing_n from_o the_o beginning_n because_o i_o be_v with_o you_o easter_n and_o now_o i_o go_v to_o he_o that_o send_v i_o and_o none_o of_o you_o ask_v i_o whither_o go_v thou_o â_o verse_n 6_o but_o because_o i_o have_v speak_v these_o thing_n to_o you_o sorrow_o have_v fill_v your_o hart_n â_o verse_n 7_o but_o i_o tell_v you_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v expedient_a for_o you_o that_o i_o go_v for_o if_o i_o go_v not_o the_o paraclete_n shall_v not_o come_v to_o
emulation_n 35._o *_o sell_v joseph_n into_o egypt_n and_o god_n be_v with_o he_o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o deliver_v he_o out_o of_o all_o his_o tribulation_n 37._o and_o he_o *_o give_v he_o grace_n and_o wisdom_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o pharaoh_n the_o king_n of_o egypt_n 41._o and_o he_o appoint_v he_o governor_n over_o egypt_n and_o over_o all_o his_o house_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o there_o come_v famine_n upon_o all_o egypt_n and_o chanaan_n and_o great_a tribulation_n 42._o and_o our_o father_n find_v no_o victual_n â_o verse_n 12_o but_o when_o *_o jacob_n have_v hear_v that_o there_o be_v corn_n in_o egypt_n he_o send_v our_o father_n first_o 45._o â_o verse_n 13_o and_o at_o the_o *_o second_n time_n joseph_n be_v know_v of_o his_o brethren_n and_o his_o kindred_n be_v make_v know_v unto_o pharaoh_n â_o verse_n 14_o and_o joseph_n send_v call_v thither_o jacob_n his_o father_n and_o all_o his_o kindred_n in_o seventie_o five_o soul_n 46._o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o *_o jacob_n descend_v into_o egypt_n 49._o and_o *_o he_o die_v and_o our_o father_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o they_o be_v ult._n translate_v into_o sichem_n 50._o and_o be_v *_o lay_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n that_o abraham_n *_o buy_v for_o a_o price_n of_o silver_n of_o the_o son_n of_o hemor_n the_o son_n of_o sichem_n 23._o 24._o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o when_o the_o time_n draw_v near_o of_o the_o promise_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o abraham_n 7._o the_o people_n *_o increase_v and_o be_v multiply_v in_o egypt_n â_o verse_n 18_o until_o a_o other_o king_n arise_v in_o egypt_n that_o know_v not_o joseph_n â_o verse_n 19_o this_o same_o circumvent_a our_o stock_n afflict_v our_o father_n that_o they_o shall_v expose_v their_o child_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v not_o be_v keep_v alive_a â_o verse_n 20_o the_o same_o time_n be_v *_o moses_n bear_v 2._o and_o he_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n who_o be_v nourish_v three_o month_n in_o his_o father_n house_n â_o verse_n 21_o and_o when_o he_o be_v expose_v pharaos_n daughter_n take_v he_o up_o and_o nourish_v he_o for_o her_o own_o son_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o moses_n be_v instruct_v in_o all_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o egyptian_n and_o he_o be_v mighty_a in_o his_o word_n and_o work_n 11_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o *_o when_o he_o be_v full_o of_o the_o age_n of_o forty_o year_n it_o come_v to_o his_o mind_n to_o visit_v his_o brethren_n the_o child_n of_o israël_n â_o verse_n 24_o and_o when_o he_o have_v see_v one_o suffer_v wrong_a he_o defend_v he_o and_o strike_v the_o egyptian_a he_o revenge_v his_o quarrel_n that_o sustain_v the_o wrong_n â_o verse_n 25_o and_o he_o think_v that_o his_o brethren_n do_v understand_v that_o god_n by_o his_o hand_n will_v save_v they_o but_o they_o understand_v it_o not_o 13._o â_o verse_n 26_o and_o the_o day_n follow_a *_o he_o appear_v to_o they_o be_v at_o strife_n and_o he_o reconcile_v they_o unto_o peace_n say_v man_n you_o be_v brethren_n wherefore_o hurt_v you_o one_o a_o other_o â_o verse_n 27_o but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o injury_n to_o his_o neighbour_n repel_v he_o say_v who_o have_v appoint_v thou_o prince_n and_o judge_n over_o we_o â_o verse_n 28_o what_o will_v thou_o kill_v i_o as_o thou_o do_v yesterday_o kill_v the_o egyptian_a â_o verse_n 29_o and_o moses_n flee_v upon_o this_o word_n and_o he_o become_v a_o seiourner_n in_o the_o land_n of_o madian_n where_o he_o beget_v two_o son_n â_o verse_n 30_o and_o after_o forty_o year_n be_v expire_v 2._o there_o *_o appear_v to_o he_o in_o the_o desert_n of_o mount_n sina_n a_o angel_n in_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o flame_n of_o a_o bush_n â_o verse_n 31_o and_o moses_n see_v it_o maruel_v at_o the_o vision_n and_o as_o he_o go_v near_o to_o view_v it_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v make_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 32_o i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o father_n the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n and_o moses_n be_v make_v to_o tremble_v dare_v not_o view_v it_o â_o verse_n 33_o and_o our_o lord_n say_v to_o he_o loose_v of_o the_o shoe_n of_o thy_o foot_n for_o the_o place_n wherein_o thou_o stand_v be_v â³_o holy_a ground_n â_o verse_n 34_o see_v i_o have_v see_v the_o affliction_n of_o my_o people_n which_o be_v in_o egypt_n and_o i_o have_v hear_v their_o groan_a and_o be_o descend_v to_o deliver_v they_o and_o now_o come_v and_o i_o will_v send_v thou_o into_o egypt_n â_o verse_n 35_o this_o moses_n who_o they_o deny_v say_v who_o have_v appoint_v the_o prince_n and_o captain_n he_o god_n send_v prince_n &_o 1._o redeemer_n with_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o angel_n that_o appear_v to_o he_o in_o the_o bush_n â_o verse_n 36_o he_o *_o bring_v they_o forth_o do_v wonder_v and_o sign_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n 37_o and_o in_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o in_o the_o *_o desert_n forty_o year_n â_o verse_n 37_o this_o be_v that_o moses_n which_o say_v to_o the_o child_n of_o israël_n 16._o a_o prophet_n will_v god_n raise_v up_o to_o you_o of_o your_o own_o brethren_n at_o myself_o 18._o he_o you_o shall_v hear_v 19_o â_o verse_n 38_o this_o be_v he_o that_o *_o be_v in_o the_o assembly_n in_o the_o wilderness_n with_o the_o angel_n that_o speak_v to_o he_o in_o mount-sina_n and_o with_o our_o father_n who_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o life_n to_o give_v unto_o us._n â_o verse_n 39_o to_o who_o our_o father_n will_v not_o be_v obedient_a but_o they_o repel_v he_o and_o in_o their_o heart_n turn_v away_o into_o egypt_n â_o verse_n 40_o say_v to_o aaron_n make_v we_o god_n that_o may_v go_v before_o we_o 1._o for_o this_o moses_n that_o bring_v we_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n we_o know_v not_o what_o be_v befall_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 41_o and_o they_o make_v a_o calf_n in_o those_o day_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o idol_n and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o work_n of_o their_o own_o hand_n â_o verse_n 42_o and_o god_n turn_v and_o 1_o deliver_v they_o up_o ãâã_d to_o serve_v the_o host_n of_o heaven_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n do_v you_o offer_v victim_n and_o host_n unto_o i_o forty_o year_n in_o the_o desert_n 25._o o_o house_n of_o israël_n â_o verse_n 43_o and_o you_o take_v unto_o you_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o moloch_n and_o the_o star_n of_o your_o god_n rempham_n figure_n which_o you_o make_v to_o adore_v they_o and_o i_o will_v translate_v you_o beyond_o babylon_n â_o verse_n 44_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o testimony_n be_v among_o our_o father_n in_o the_o desert_n as_o god_n ordain_v speak_v to_o moses_n 40._o that_o he_o shall_v make_v it_o according_a to_o the_o form_n which_o he_o have_v see_v â_o verse_n 45_o which_o our_o father_n *_o with_o saviour_n jesus_n receive_v 14._o bring_v it_o in_o also_o into_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o gentile_n which_o god_n expel_v from_o the_o face_n of_o our_o father_n till_o in_o the_o day_n of_o david_n â_o verse_n 46_o who_o find_v grace_n before_o god_n 5_o and_o *_o desire_a that_o he_o may_v find_v a_o tabernacle_n for_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n 17_o â_o verse_n 47_o and_o *_o solomon_n build_v he_o a_o house_n 25._o â_o verse_n 48_o but_o the_o high_a dwell_v â³_o not_o in_o house_n *_o make_v by_o hand_n as_o the_o prophet_n say_v â_o verse_n 49_o heaven_n be_v my_o seat_n and_o the_o earth_n the_o footestole_a of_o my_o foot_n 1._o what_o house_n will_v you_o build_v i_o say_v our_o lord_n or_o what_o place_n be_v there_o of_o my_o rest_n â_o verse_n 50_o have_v not_o my_o hand_n make_v all_o these_o thing_n â_o verse_n 51_o you_o stiffnecked_a and_o of_o uncircumcised_a heart_n and_o ear_n you_o always_o resist_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o your_o father_n yourselves_o also_o â_o verse_n 52_o which_o of_o the_o prophet_n do_v not_o your_o father_n persecute_v and_o they_o slay_v they_o that_o foretell_v of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o just_a one_o of_o who_o now_o â_o verse_n 53_o you_o have_v be_v betrayer_n and_o murderer_n who_o receive_v the_o law_n by_o the_o disposition_n of_o angel_n and_o have_v not_o keep_v it_o â_o verse_n 54_o and_o hear_v these_o thing_n they_o be_v cut_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o they_o gnash_v with_o their_o tooth_n at_o he_o â_o verse_n 55_o but_o he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n look_v steadfast_o unto_o heaven_n martyr_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o jesus_n stand_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 56_o and_o he_o say_v behold_v i_o see_v the_o heaven_n open_v and_o the_o son_n of_o
paul_n write_n hold_v this_o for_o a_o certainty_n as_o the_o apostle_n own_o defence_n whatsoever_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v hereafter_o sound_v in_o their_o sense_n that_o sin_n come_v of_o god_n or_o may_v therefore_o be_v commit_v that_o he_o may_v work_v good_a thereof_o that_o the_o apostle_n himself_o condemn_v that_o sense_n as_o slanderous_a and_o blasphemous_a 10._o not_o any_o just_a these_o general_a speech_n that_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v in_o sin_n and_o none_o at_o all_o just_a 1._o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v take_v just_a that_o none_o in_o neither_o sort_n be_v ever_o good_a the_o scripture_n express_o say_v that_o job_n 1â_n zacharie_n elisabeth_n and_o such_o like_a be_v just_a before_o god_n &_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o say_v that_o these_o word_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o 13_o psalm_n be_v mean_v in_o christ_n mother_n in_o s._n john_n the_o baptist_n in_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n for_o this_o only_a be_v the_o sense_n that_o neither_o by_o the_o la_o of_o nature_n nor_o la_o of_o moses_n can_v any_o man_n be_v just_a or_o avoid_v such_o sin_n as_o here_o be_v reckon_v but_o by_o faith_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o which_o there_o be_v a_o number_n in_o all_o age_n special_o among_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v just_a and_o holy_a who_o these_o word_n touch_v not_o be_v speak_v only_o to_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a which_o the_o prophet_n make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o several_a body_n conspire_v against_o christ_n and_o persecute_v the_o just_a and_o godly_a of_o which_o ill_a company_n he_o say_v that_o none_o be_v just_a nor_o fear_v god_n 20._o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law._n s._n hierom_n and_o s._n chrysostom_n expound_v this_o of_o the_o ceremonial_a work_n only_o grace_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n the_o apostle_n special_o prosecute_v this_o proposition_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n but_o it_o be_v true_a also_o of_o all_o man_n moral_a work_n do_v without_o faith_n &_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o can_v not_o be_v acceptable_a or_o available_a in_o god_n sight_n to_o justify_v any_o man_n and_o so_o s._n augustine_n take_v it_o de_fw-fr sp._n &_o light_v c._n â_o to_o â_o 22._o justice_n of_o god_n beware_v of_o the_o wicked_a and_o vain_a commentary_n of_o the_o caluiniste_n gloss_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n to_o be_v that_o which_o be_v resident_a in_o christ_n justice_n apprehend_v by_o our_o faith_n and_o so_o that_o impute_v to_o we_o which_o we_o in_o deed_n have_v not_o wherein_o at_o once_o they_o have_v forge_v themselves_o against_o god_n manifest_a word_n a_o new_a no_o justice_n a_o fantastical_a apprehension_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o a_o false_a faith_n and_o untrue_a imputation_n whereas_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n here_o be_v that_o wherewith_o he_o endu_v a_o man_n at_o his_o first_o conversion_n and_o be_v now_o in_o a_o man_n and_o therefore_o man_n justice_n but_o yet_o god_n justice_n also_o because_o it_o be_v of_o god_n 10._o of_o this_o justice_n in_o we_o whereby_o we_o be_v true_o justify_v and_o in_o deed_n make_v just_a s._n augustine_n speak_v thus_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n do_v work_v our_o illumination_n and_o justification_n inward_o also_o justice_n and_o again_o he_o give_v to_o the_o faithful_a the_o most_o secret_a grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n which_o secret_o he_o pour_v into_o infant_n also_o and_o again_o they_o be_v justify_v in_o christ_n that_o believe_v in_o he_o through_o the_o secret_a communication_n and_o inspiration_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n whereby_o every_o one_o lean_v to_o our_o lord_n and_o again_o hemake_v just_a âeâewing_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o regeneration_n by_o grace_n 28._o by_o faith_n without_o work_n this_o be_v the_o place_n whereupon_o the_o protestant_n gather_v false_o their_o only_a faith_n justification_n and_o which_o they_o common_o avouch_v as_o though_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o only_a faith_n do_v justify_v where_o he_o both_o in_o word_n and_o meaning_n except_v only_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n do_v without_o christ_n before_o our_o conversion_n neither_o exclude_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n or_o penance_n not_o hope_n and_o charity_n or_o other_o christian_a virtue_n all_o which_o be_v the_o justice_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o good_a work_n procede_v thereof_o be_v likewise_o the_o la_o and_o justice_n of_o faith_n all_o which_o the_o adversary_n will_v exclude_v by_o foist_v in_o the_o terâe_n 7._o only_o of_o which_o kind_n of_o man_n s._n augustine_n upon_o this_o place_n faith_n thus_o man_n not_o understand_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o count_v a_o man_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n do_v think_v that_o he_o say_v faith_n will_v suffice_v a_o man_n though_o he_o live_v ill_a and_o have_v no_o good_a work_n 1._o which_o god_n forbid_v the_o vessel_n of_o election_n shall_v think_v who_o in_o a_o certain_a place_n after_o he_o have_v say_v *_o in_o christ_n jesus_n neither_o circumcision_n nor_o prepuce_fw-la avail_v any_o whit_n he_o straight_o add_v but_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n chap._n four_o that_o abraham_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o his_o own_o power_n but_o by_o god_n grace_n in_o who_o he_o believe_v 6_o which_o be_v a_o way_n for_o the_o sinner_n also_o to_o come_v to_o justice_n 9_o and_o that_o see_v he_o be_v not_o as_o then_o circumcise_v not_o only_o the_o circumcise_a low_a but_o also_o the_o uncircumcised_a gentil_n may_v by_o believe_v the_o christian_a faith_n come_v to_o justice_n as_o abraham_n do_v ãâã_d special_o consider_v also_o that_o abraham_n be_v promise_v to_o be_v father_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o not_o only_o of_o the_o jew_n to_o who_o only_o the_o law_n be_v give_v and_o that_o not_o to_o fulfil_v the_o promise_n but_o for_o a_o other_o cause_n verse_n 1_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o that_o â³_o abraham_n do_v find_v our_o father_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n â_o verse_n 2_o for_o if_o abraham_n be_v justify_v â³_o by_o work_n he_o have_v glory_n 6._o but_o not_o with_o god_n â_o verse_n 3_o for_o what_o say_v the_o scripture_n 6._o abraham_n believe_v god_n 23._o and_o it_o be_v repute_v he_o to_o justice_n â_o verse_n 4_o but_o â³_o to_o he_o that_o work_v the_o reward_n be_v not_o ãâã_d impute_v according_a to_o grace_n but_o according_a to_o debt_n â_o verse_n 5_o but_o â³_o to_o he_o that_o work_v not_o yet_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o impious_a his_o faith_n be_v ãâã_d repute_v to_o justice_n according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 6_o â³_o as_o david_n also_o term_v the_o blessedness_n of_o a_o man_n to_o who_o god_n repute_v justice_n without_o work_n 1._o â_o verse_n 7_o blessed_n be_v they_o who_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n be_v â³_o cover_v â_o verse_n 8_o blessed_n be_v the_o man_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n have_v not_o impute_v sin_n â_o verse_n 9_o this_o blessedness_n than_o do_v it_o abide_v in_o the_o circumcision_n or_o in_o the_o prepuce_fw-la also_o for_o we_o say_v that_o unto_o abraham_n faith_n be_v where_o repute_v to_o justice_n â_o verse_n 10_o how_o be_v it_o repute_v in_o circumcision_n or_o in_o prepuce_fw-la not_o in_o circumcision_n but_o in_o prepuce_fw-la â_o verse_n 11_o and_o *_o he_o receive_v same_o the_o sign_n of_o circumcision_n 10._o â³_o a_o seal_v of_o the_o justice_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o prepuce_fw-la that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o father_n of_o all_o that_o believe_v by_o the_o prepuce_fw-la that_o unto_o they_o also_o it_o may_v be_v repute_v to_o justice_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o may_v be_v father_n of_o circumcision_n not_o to_o they_o only_o that_o be_v of_o the_o circumcision_n but_o to_o they_o also_o that_o follow_n the_o step_n of_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o the_o prepuce_fw-la of_o our_o father_n abraham_n â_o verse_n 13_o for_o not_o by_o the_o law_n be_v the_o promise_n to_o abraham_n or_o to_o his_o seed_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o the_o world_n but_o by_o the_o justice_n of_o faith_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o if_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o law_n be_v heir_n faith_n be_v make_v void_a the_o promise_n be_v abolish_v â_o verse_n 15_o for_o the_o law_n work_v wrath_n for_o where_o be_v no_o la_o neither_o be_v there_o prevarication_n â_o verse_n 16_o therefore_o of_o faith_n that_o according_a to_o grace_v the_o promise_n may_v be_v firm_a to_o all_o the_o seed_n not_o to_o that_o only_a which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n but_o to_o that_o also_o which_o be_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o we_o all_o 4._o as_o it_o be_v write_v â_o verse_n 17_o for_o a_o
and_o just_o answer_v to_o the_o time_n and_o weight_n of_o his_o travel_n and_o work_n in_o which_o sense_n the_o scripture_n say_v 18._o dignus_fw-la est_fw-la operarius_fw-la mercede_fw-la sva_fw-la the_o workman_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o hire_n rather_o then_o a_o free_a gift_n though_o because_o faithful_a man_n must_v acknowledge_v that_o their_o merit_n be_v the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o rather_o use_v the_o word_n reward_n than_o hire_n 12._o stipend_n or_o repayment_n though_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o you_o may_v see_v by_o diverse_a place_n of_o holy_a write_v as_o *_o my_o merces_fw-la reward_n be_v with_o i_o to_o render_v to_o every_o one_o *_o according_a to_o his_o work_n and_o our_o lord_n will_v âender_v unto_o i_o according_a to_o my_o justice_n ps_n 1â_n and_o the_o very_a word_n itself_o merit_v equivalent_a to_o the_o greek_a be_v use_v thus_o ãâã_d mercy_n shall_v make_v a_o place_n to_o every_o one_o *_o according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n ecclâi_fw-la 16_o 15._o and_o if_o you_o do_v your_o justice_n before_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v reward_n in_o heaven_n mat._n 6_o 1._o where_o you_o see_v that_o the_o reward_n of_o heaven_n be_v recompense_n of_o justice_n and_o the_o evasion_n of_o the_o heretic_n be_v frivolous_a and_o evident_o false_a as_o the_o former_a and_o like_a word_n do_v convince_v for_o they_o say_v heaven_n be_v our_o merces_fw-la or_o reward_n not_o because_o be_v be_v due_a to_o our_o work_n but_o to_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n where_o the_o word_n be_v plain_a according_a to_o every_o man_n work_n or_o labour_n upon_o which_o work_n and_o for_o which_o work_n conditional_o the_o promise_n of_o heaven_n be_v make_v 12._o upon_o this_o foundation_n the_o foundaion_n be_v christ_n and_o faith_n in_o he_o work_v by_o charity_n the_o uppe_n building_n may_v be_v either_o pure_a and_o perfect_a matter_n of_o gold_n stubble_n silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n which_o according_a to_o the_o most_o authentical_a and_o probable_a exposition_n be_v good_a work_n of_o charity_n and_o all_o christian_a justice_n do_v by_o god_n grace_n or_o else_o wood_n hay_n stubble_n which_o signify_v the_o manifold_a act_n of_o man_n infirmity_n and_o his_o venial_a sin_n which_o more_a or_o less_o mix_v and_o meddle_v with_o the_o better_a matter_n aforesaid_a require_v more_o or_o less_o punishment_n or_o purgation_n at_o the_o day_n of_o our_o death_n at_o which_o day_n if_o by_o penance_n or_o other_o mean_n in_o the_o church_n the_o say_v venial_a sin_n be_v before_o hand_n cleanse_v there_o shall_v need_v no_o purgiug_n at_o all_o but_o they_o shall_v straight_o receive_v the_o reward_n due_a to_o they_o 13._o shall_v be_v manifest_a whether_o our_o life_n and_o work_n be_v pure_a and_o need_v no_o cleanse_n fire_n now_o in_o this_o world_n be_v hard_o to_o judge_v but_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v at_o our_o death_n will_v make_v it_o plain_a in_o what_o term_n every_o man_n life_n be_v towards_o god_n for_o then_o purgatory_n fire_n shall_v reveal_v and_o prove_v it_o for_o whosoever_o have_v any_o impure_a matter_n of_o venial_a sin_n or_o such_o other_o dette_n to_o god_n justice_n paiable_a and_o purgable_a must_v into_o that_o fire_n and_o after_o due_a payment_n and_o cleanse_v be_v save_v through_o the_o same_o where_o the_o work_n of_o the_o perfect_a man_n and_o such_o as_o die_v with_o all_o dette_n pay_v cleanse_v or_o forgive_v be_v quit_v from_o the_o fire_n and_o never_o incur_v damage_n pain_n or_o loss_n thereby_o the_o place_n of_o father_n expound_v this_o for_o purgatory_n be_v very_o many_o most_o evident_a which_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o last_o annotation_n follow_a 1â_n the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v declare_v that_o this_o purgation_n rather_o signify_v the_o place_n of_o god_n justice_n after_o our_o death_n than_o any_o affliction_n in_o this_o life_n the_o apostle_n precise_a specify_v of_o fire_n declare_v and_o of_o reveal_v and_o notify_v the_o difference_n of_o man_n work_n by_o the_o same_o which_o be_v not_o do_v evident_o ever_o in_o this_o life_n lord_n and_o namely_o the_o word_n day_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o common_o and_o proper_o signify_v in_o scripture_n and_o namely_o in_o this_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 3_o 5._o 2_o cor._n 1_o 1â_n philip._n 1_o 10._o 6._o 1_o thes_n â_o 2._o 2_o thes_n 2_o 2._o either_o the_o particular_a or_o the_o general_a judgement_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o trial_n speak_v of_o be_v not_o proper_o nor_o literal_o mean_v any_o affliction_n or_o adversity_n of_o this_o life_n locum_fw-la as_o caluin_n also_o confess_v coin_v a_o foolish_a new_a construction_n of_o his_o own_o where_o you_o may_v note_v also_o in_o that_o man_n commentary_n that_o this_o word_n dies_fw-la domini_fw-la be_v so_o prejudicial_a against_o he_o and_o all_o other_o exposition_n of_o the_o trial_n to_o be_v make_v in_o this_o world_n that_o he_o will_v glad_o have_v domini_fw-la ouâ_n read_v thus_o a_o day_n shall_v ââme_n which_o shall_v open_v etc._n etc._n ãâã_d where_o understand_v that_o if_o it_o be_v only_a die_n as_o *_o in_o the_o greek_a yet_o thereby_o also_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o signify_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n as_o 2_o tim._n 1_o 12._o 28._o and_o 2_o tim._n 4_o 8._o and_o heb._n 10_o 25_o the_o day_n as_o in_o this_o place_n with_o the_o greek_a article_n only_o which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o dies_fw-la illa_fw-la or_o dies_fw-la domini_fw-la 15._o as_o by_o fire_n s._n augustine_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o psalm_n 37._o lord_n rebuke_v i_o not_o in_o thy_o indignation_n nor_o amend_v i_o in_o thy_o wrath_n for_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v say_v he_o that_o some_o be_v amend_v in_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o be_v rebuke_v in_o his_o indignation_n and_o not_o all_o perhaps_o that_o be_v rebuke_v shall_v be_v amend_v but_o yet_o some_o there_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o amend_v fire_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o sure_o because_o amend_v it_o âamed_v yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n but_o some_o there_o shall_v be_v that_o shall_v be_v rebuke_v and_o not_o amend_v to_o who_o he_o shall_v say_v go_v you_o into_o everlasting_a fire_n fear_v therefore_o these_o more_o grevous_a pain_n he_o desire_v that_o he_o may_v neither_o be_v rebuke_v in_o indignation_n by_o eternal_a fire_n nor_o amend_v in_o his_o wrath_n that_o be_v to_o say_v purge_v i_o in_o this_o life_n and_o make_v i_o such_o a_o one_o as_o shall_v not_o need_v the_o amend_v fire_n be_v for_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v save_v yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n wherefore_o but_o because_o here_o they_o build_v upon_o this_o foundation_n wood_n hay_n stubble_n for_o if_o they_o do_v build_v gold_n silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n they_o shall_v be_v secure_a from_o both_o fire_n not_o only_o from_o that_o eternal_a which_o shall_v torment_v the_o impious_a eternal_o but_o also_o from_o that_o which_o shall_v amend_v they_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o fire_n for_o it_o be_v say_v he_o shall_v be_v safe_a yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n and_o because_o it_o be_v say_v he_o shall_v be_v safe_a that_o fire_n be_v contemn_v yea_o very_o though_o safe_a by_o fire_n yet_o that_o fire_n shall_v be_v more_o grevous_a life_n than_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n can_v suffer_v in_o this_o life_n and_o you_o know_v how_o great_a evil_n the_o wicked_a have_v suffer_v and_o may_v suffer_v yet_o they_o have_v suffer_v such_o as_o the_o good_a also_o may_v suffer_v for_o what_o have_v any_o malefactor_n suffer_v by_o the_o law_n that_o a_o martyr_n have_v not_o suffer_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n these_o evil_n therefore_o that_o be_v here_o be_v much_o more_o easy_a and_o yet_o see_v how_o man_n not_o to_o suffer_v they_o do_v whatsoever_o thou_o command_v how_o much_o better_o do_v they_o that_o which_o god_n command_v that_o they_o may_v not_o suffer_v thâse_a great_a pain_n thus_o far_o s._n augustine_n see_v s._n ambr._n upon_o this_o place_n 1_o cor._n 3._o &_o ser._n 20_o in_o psal_n â18_n hiero._n li._n 2_o c._n 13_o adu_fw-la jovinianum_fw-la gieg._n li._n 4._o dialog_n c._n â9_n &_o in_o psal_n 1._o pânit_fw-la in_o principie_n origen_n ãâã_d â_o in_o c._n 15._o exod._n and_o bâ_n 14_o in_o c._n 24._o levit._n chap._n four_o he_o require_v to_o be_v esteem_v for_o his_o office_n but_o regard_v not_o to_o be_v praise_v of_o man_n for_o his_o virtue_n consider_v that_o neither_o his_o own_o conscience_n be_v a_o sufficient_a judge_n thereof_o but_o only_o god_n who_o see_v al._n 8_o he_o touch_v they_o for_o contemn_v in_o their_o pride_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o miserable_a 18_o threaten_v to_o come_v to_o those_o proud_a falseapostle_n who_o be_v the_o
for_o she_o because_o hear_v be_v give_v she_o for_o a_o veil_n â_o verse_n 16_o but_o if_o any_o man_n seem_v to_o be_v contentious_a church_n we_o have_v no_o such_o â³_o custom_n nor_o the_o `_o church_n '_o of_o god_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o this_o i_o command_v not_o praise_v it_o that_o you_o come_v together_o not_o to_o better_v thursday_n but_o to_o worse_a â_o verse_n 18_o first_o in_o deed_n when_o you_o come_v together_o into_o the_o church_n i_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v schism_n among_o you_o and_o in_o part_n i_o believe_v it_o â_o verse_n 19_o for_o â³_o there_o must_v be_v heresy_n also_o that_o they_o also_o which_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a among_o you_o â_o verse_n 20_o when_o you_o come_v therefore_o together_o in_o one_o be_v it_o not_o now_o to_o eat_v â³_o our_o lord_n supper_n â_o verse_n 21_o for_o every_o one_o take_v his_o own_o supper_n before_o to_o eat_v and_o one_o certes_o be_v a_o hunger_a and_o a_o other_o be_v drink_v â_o verse_n 22_o why_o have_v you_o not_o house_n to_o eat_v and_o drink_v in_o or_o contemn_v you_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o confound_v they_o that_o have_v not_o what_o shall_v i_o say_v to_o you_o praise_n i_o you_o in_o this_o i_o do_v not_o praise_v you_o â_o verse_n 23_o day_n for_o i_o receive_v of_o our_o lord_n that_o which_o also_o â³_o i_o have_v deliver_v unto_o you_o 26._o imagine_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n â³_o in_o the_o night_n that_o he_o be_v betray_v 22._o â³_o take_v â³_o bread_n â_o verse_n 24_o and_o give_v thanks_n break_v and_o say_v 19_o â³_o take_v you_o &_o eat_v â³_o this_o be_v â³_o my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o â³_o this_o do_v you_o for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o â_o verse_n 25_o in_o like_a manner_n also_o the_o chalice_n after_o he_o have_v sup_v say_v this_o chalice_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n this_o do_v you_o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v drink_v for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o â_o verse_n 26_o for_o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o chalice_n â³_o you_o shall_v show_v the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n until_o he_o come_v â_o verse_n 27_o therefore_o whosoever_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n or_o drink_v the_o chalice_n of_o our_o lord_n unworthy_o he_o shall_v be_v â³_o guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 28_o but_o let_v a_o man_n prove_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o chalice_n â_o verse_n 29_o for_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o eat_v and_z drinketh_z judgement_n to_o himself_o â³_o not_o discern_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 30_o therefore_o be_v there_o among_o you_o many_o weak_a and_o feeble_a and_o â³_o many_o sleep_v â_o verse_n 31_o but_o if_o we_o do_v â³_o judge_v ourselves_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v â_o verse_n 32_o but_o while_o we_o be_v judge_v of_o our_o lord_n we_o be_v chastise_v that_o with_o this_o world_n we_o be_v not_o damn_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 33_o therefore_o my_o brethren_n when_o you_o come_v together_o to_o eat_v â³_o expect_v one_o a_o other_o â_o verse_n 34_o if_o any_o man_n be_v a_o hunger_a let_v he_o eat_v at_o home_n that_o you_o come_v not_o together_o unto_o judgement_n and_o the_o rest_n â³_o i_o will_v dispose_v when_o i_o come_v annotation_n chap._n xi_o 2._o my_o precept_n our_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n have_v authority_n to_o command_v and_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v and_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n may_v take_v order_n and_o prescribe_v that_o which_o be_v comely_a in_o every_o state_n as_o time_n and_o place_n require_v though_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o religion_n 5._o every_o woman_n what_o gift_n of_o god_n so_o ever_o woman_n have_v though_o supernatural_a as_o some_o have_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o they_o may_v not_o forget_v their_o womanly_a shamefastness_n but_o show_v themselves_o subject_a and_o modest_a and_o cover_v their_o head_n with_o a_o veil_n 16._o custom_n if_o woman_n or_o other_o to_o defend_v their_o disorder_n &_o malipertnes_n dispute_n or_o allege_v scripture_n and_o reason_n wrangler_n or_o require_v cause_n of_o their_o preacher_n why_o &_o by_o what_o authority_n they_o shall_v be_v thus_o restrain_v in_o thing_n indifferent_a make_v they_o no_o other_o answer_n but_o this_o this_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v our_o custom_n which_o be_v a_o goodly_a rule_n to_o repress_v the_o sauciness_n of_o contentious_a jangler_n which_o be_v out_o of_o all_o modesty_n and_o reason_n never_o want_n word_n and_o reply_n against_o the_o church_n which_o church_n if_o it_o can_v then_o by_o prescription_n of_o twenty_o or_o thirty_o year_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o one_o or_o two_o of_o their_o first_o preacher_n stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o seditious_a what_o shall_v not_o the_o custom_n of_o fiftene_o hundred_o year_n &_o the_o decree_n of_o many_o hundred_o pastor_n gain_v of_o reasonable_a modest_a and_o humble_a man_n 19_o there_o must_v be_v heresy_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v wherefore_o heresy_n must_v be_v he_o show_v the_o event_n and_o not_o that_o god_n have_v direct_o so_o appoint_v it_o as_o necessary_a for_o that_o they_o be_v it_o come_v of_o man_n malice_n and_o free_a will_v but_o that_o they_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o good_a and_o constant_a in_o faith_n &_o the_o church_n unity_n that_o be_v god_n special_a work_n of_o providence_n that_o work_v good_a of_o evil_a and_o for_o that_o there_o shall_v fall_v heresy_n and_o schism_n special_o concern_v the_o article_n and_o use_n of_o the_o b_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n heresy_n whereof_o he_o now_o begin_v to_o treat_v it_o may_v make_v we_o marvel_v the_o less_o to_o see_v so_o great_a dissension_n heresy_n and_o schism_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o weak_a in_o faith_n concern_v the_o same_o such_o thing_n than_o will_v be_v but_o woe_n to_o he_o by_o who_o scandal_n or_o sect_n do_v come_v let_v we_o use_v heretic_n say_v s._n augustine_n not_o to_o that_o end_n to_o approve_v their_o error_n but_o that_o by_o defend_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n against_o their_o deceice_n we_o may_v be_v more_o watchful_a and_o wary_a because_o it_o be_v most_o true_o write_v there_o must_v be_v heresy_n that_o the_o try_a and_o approve_a may_v be_v manifest_v or_o discover_v from_o the_o hollow_a heart_n among_o you_o let_v we_o use_v this_o benefit_n of_o god_n providence_n for_o heretic_n be_v make_v of_o such_o as_o will_v err_v or_o be_v naught_o though_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o be_v out_o they_o profit_v we_o exceed_o not_o by_o teach_v the_o truth_n which_o they_o know_v not_o but_o by_o stir_v up_o the_o carnal_a in_o the_o church_n to_o seek_v truth_n and_o the_o spiritual_a catholic_n to_o dear_a the_o truth_n for_o there_o be_v innumerable_a holy_a approve_a man_n in_o the_o church_n but_o they_o be_v not_o discern_v from_o other_o among_o we_o nor_o manifest_a so_o long_o as_o we_o have_v rather_o sleep_v in_o darkness_n of_o ignorance_n then_o behold_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n therefore_o many_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o their_o sleep_n by_o heretic_n to_o see_v the_o day_n of_o god_n and_o be_v glad_a thereof_o august_n c._n 8._o de_fw-la vera_fw-la relig_n 20._o our_o lord_n supper_n the_o christian_n at_o or_o about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n only_a sacrifice_n and_o their_o communicate_v thereof_o keep_v great_a feast_n which_o continue_v long_o for_o that_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o poor_a upon_o the_o common_a charge_n of_o the_o rich_a sort_n charity_n and_o the_o charity_n and_o unity_n of_o all_o sort_n be_v much_o preserve_v thereby_o 11._o for_o which_o cause_n they_o be_v call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v charity_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o be_v keep_v common_o in_o church_n house_n or_o porch_n adjoin_v or_o in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o see_v tertullian_n apolog._n c._n 19_o 28._o clemens_n alexand._n s._n justine_n s._n augustine_n cont_n faie_v li._n 20_o c._n 20._o after_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o communion_n be_v end_v as_o s._n chrysostom_n ho._n 27._o in_o 1_o cor._n in_o initio_fw-la judge_v those_o feast_n s._n paul_n here_o call_v coenas_fw-la dominicas_fw-la because_o they_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n which_o then_o be_v call_v dominica_n sacrament_n that_o be_v our_o lord_n house_n the_o disorder_n therefore_o keep_v among_o the_o corinthian_n in_o these_o church-feaste_n of_o charity_n the_o apostle_n seek_v here_o to_o redress_v from_o the_o foul_a abuse_n
that_o object_v lightness_n against_o he_o for_o not_o come_v to_o corinth_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n verse_n 1_o paul_n a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o will_v of_o god_n and_o timothee_n our_o brother_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o be_v at_o corinth_n with_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v in_o all_o achaia_n â_o verse_n 2_o grace_n unto_o you_o and_o peace_n from_o god_n our_o father_n and_o from_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 3_o blessed_n be_v the_o god_n and_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n bishop_n the_o father_n of_o mercy_n and_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n â_o verse_n 4_o who_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o tribulation_n that_o we_o also_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comfort_v they_o that_o be_v in_o all_o distress_n ãâã_d by_o the_o exhortation_n wherewith_o we_o also_o be_v exhort_v of_o god_n â_o verse_n 5_o for_o as_o the_o â³_o passion_n of_o christ_n abound_v in_o we_o so_o also_o by_o christ_n do_v our_o â³_o comfort_n abound_v â_o verse_n 6_o and_o whether_o we_o be_v in_o tribulation_n for_o your_o exhortation_n and_o salvation_n whether_o we_o be_v exhort_v for_o your_o exhortation_n and_o salvation_n which_o work_v the_o toleration_n of_o the_o same_o passion_n which_o we_o also_o do_v suffer_v â_o verse_n 7_o and_o our_o hope_n be_v firm_a for_o you_o know_v that_o as_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o passion_n so_o shall_v you_o be_v of_o the_o consolation_n also_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 8_o for_o we_o will_v not_o have_v you_o ignorant_a brethren_n concern_v our_o tribulation_n which_o happen_v in_o asia_n that_o we_o be_v press_v above_o measure_n above_o our_o power_n so_o that_o it_o be_v tedion_n unto_o we_o even_o to_o live_v â_o verse_n 9_o but_o we_o in_o ourselves_o have_v the_o answer_n of_o death_n that_o we_o be_v not_o trust_v in_o ourselves_o but_o in_o god_n who_o raise_v up_o the_o dead_a â_o verse_n 10_o who_o have_v deliver_v and_o do_v deliver_v we_o out_o of_o so_o great_a danger_n in_o who_o we_o hope_v that_o he_o will_v yet_o also_o deliver_v we_o â_o verse_n 11_o you_o â³_o help_a withal_o in_o prayer_n for_o we_o that_o â³_o by_o many_o man_n person_n thanks_n for_o that_o gift_n which_o be_v in_o we_o may_v be_v give_v by_o many_o in_o our_o behalf_n â_o verse_n 12_o for_o our_o glory_n be_v this_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n that_o in_o simplicity_n and_o sincerity_n of_o god_n and_o not_o in_o carnal_a wisdom_n but_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o have_v converse_v in_o this_o world_n and_o more_o abundant_o towards_o you_o â_o verse_n 13_o for_o we_o write_v no_o other_o thing_n to_o you_o then_o that_o you_o have_v read_v and_o know_v and_o i_o hope_v that_o you_o shall_v know_v unto_o the_o end_n â_o verse_n 14_o as_o also_o you_o have_v know_v we_o in_o part_n that_o we_o be_v â³_o your_o glory_n as_o you_o also_o we_o in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o in_o this_o confidence_n i_o will_v first_o have_v come_v to_o you_o that_o you_o may_v have_v a_o second_o grace_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o by_o you_o pass_v into_o macedonia_n and_o again_o from_o macedonia_n come_v to_o you_o and_o of_o you_o be_v bring_v on_o my_o way_n into_o jewrie_n â_o verse_n 17_o whereas_o then_o i_o be_v thus_o mind_v do_v i_o use_v lightenes_n or_o the_o thing_n that_o i_o mind_n do_v i_o mind_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n that_o there_o be_v with_o i_o it_o be_v and_o it_o be_v not_o â_o verse_n 18_o but_o god_n be_v faithful_a because_o our_o preach_v which_o be_v to_o you_o there_o be_v not_o in_o it_o â³_o it_o be_v and_z it_o be_v not_o â_o verse_n 19_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n who_o by_o we_o be_v preach_v among_o you_o by_o i_o and_o syluanus_n and_o timothee_n be_v not_o it_o be_v and_z it_o be_v not_o but_o it_o be_v be_v in_o he_o â_o verse_n 20_o for_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n that_o be_v in_o he_o it_o be_v therefore_o also_o by_o he_o amen_n to_o god_n unto_o our_o glory_n â_o verse_n 21_o and_o he_o that_o confirm_v we_o with_o you_o in_o christ_n and_o that_o have_v anoint_v we_o god_n â_o verse_n 22_o who_o also_o â³_o have_v seal_v we_o and_o give_v the_o pledge_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o heart_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o i_o call_v god_n to_o witness_v upon_o my_o soul_n that_o spare_v you_o i_o come_v not_o any_o more_o to_o corinth_n â_o verse_n 24_o â³_o not_o because_o we_o over-rule_v your_o faith_n but_o we_o be_v helper_n of_o your_o joy_n for_o in_o the_o faith_n you_o stand_v annotation_n chap._n i._n 5._o passion_n of_o christ_n body_n all_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v call_v christ_n own_o passion_n not_o only_o because_o they_o be_v suffer_v for_o he_o but_o for_o that_o there_o be_v so_o straight_a conjunction_n and_o communion_n betwixt_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o every_o of_o the_o live_a member_n of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v suffer_v by_o any_o one_o of_o the_o same_o be_v count_v as_o a_o piece_n of_o his_o own_o passion_n as_o likewise_o whatsoever_o good_a work_n be_v do_v to_o any_o of_o they_o or_o by_o any_o of_o they_o be_v accept_v as_o do_v to_o or_o by_o christ_n himself_o which_o thing_n if_o the_o protestant_n well_o weigh_v they_o will_v not_o marvel_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n attribute_v such_o force_n of_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o work_n of_o holy_a man_n satisfaction_n 5._o the_o comfort_n abound_v catholic_n worldly_n man_n that_o see_v only_o the_o exterior_a misery_n and_o affliction_n that_o catholic_n do_v suffer_v be_v persecute_v by_o the_o heathen_a or_o heretic_n deem_v they_o exceed_o miserable_a but_o if_o they_o feel_v or_o can_v conceive_v the_o abundance_n of_o consolation_n which_o christ_n ever_o give_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o affliction_n they_o will_v never_o wonder_v at_o the_o voluntary_a toleration_n of_o what_o torment_v so_o ever_o for_o christ_n sake_n but_o will_v wish_v rather_o themselves_o to_o be_v in_o any_o dungeon_n in_o england_n with_o the_o comfort_n that_o such_o have_v from_o god_n then_o to_o live_v out_o of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o the_o wealth_n of_o the_o world_n â1_n you_o help_v in_o prayer_n christ_n s._n paul_n know_v that_o the_o help_n of_o other_o man_n prayer_n be_v nothing_o derogatory_n to_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n mediation_n or_o intercession_n for_o he_o nor_o to_o the_o hope_n that_o he_o have_v in_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o crave_v the_o corinthian_n aid_n herein_o as_o a_o support_n and_o succour_n for_o himself_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n with_o what_o reason_n or_o scripture_n then_o can_v the_o protestant_n say_v that_o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n be_v injurious_a to_o christ_n or_o not_o to_o stand_v with_o the_o confidence_n we_o have_v in_o he_o as_o though_o it_o be_v more_o dishonour_n to_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v use_v the_o aid_n of_o saint_n in_o heaven_n then_o of_o sinner_n in_o earth_n vigil_n or_o *_o that_o the_o intercession_n of_o these_o our_o fellow_n beneath_o be_v more_o available_a than_o the_o prayer_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o glorious_a sight_n of_o god_n above_o 11._o by_o many_o man_n fast_n he_o mean_v that_o as_o the_o prayer_n of_o many_o join_v together_o for_o he_o shall_v be_v rather_o hear_v then_o of_o any_o alone_a so_o their_o common_a thanks_n give_v to_o god_n for_o grant_v their_o request_n shall_v be_v more_o acceptable_a and_o glorious_a to_o god_n than_o any_o one_o man_n thanks_n alone_o which_o thing_n do_v much_o commend_v the_o holy_a church_n public_a prayer_n procession_n station_n and_o pilgrimage_n where_o so_o many_o meet_a and_o uniform_o join_v their_o prayer_n and_o laudes_fw-la together_o unto_o god_n 14._o your_o glory_n other_o the_o apostle_n teacher_n and_o preacher_n that_o convert_v country_n or_o particular_a person_n to_o christ_n and_o the_o people_n or_o party_n by_o they_o convert_v shall_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n have_v much_o mutual_a joy_n and_o glory_n of_o and_o for_o each_o other_o one_o give_v to_o the_o other_o great_a matter_n of_o merit_n in_o this_o life_n and_o of_o reward_n in_o the_o next_o see_v 1_o thess_n 2._o v._n 19_o 18._o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o etc._n as_o he_o discharge_v himself_o of_o all_o other_o levity_n touch_v his_o promise_n or_o purpose_n of_o come_v to_o they_o so_o much_o more_o of_o all_o inconstancy_n in_o preach_v christ_n doctrine_n and_o faith_n wherein_o one_o day_n to_o affirm_v a_o other_o day_n to_o deny_v to_o dissent_v from_o his_o fellow_n
we_o provide_v good_a thing_n *_o not_o only_o before_o god_n but_o also_o before_o man_n â_o verse_n 22_o and_o we_o have_v send_v with_o they_o our_o brother_n also_o who_o we_o have_v prove_v in_o many_o thing_n often_o to_o be_v careful_a but_o now_o much_o more_o careful_a for_o the_o great_a confidence_n in_o you_o â_o verse_n 23_o either_o for_o titus_n which_o be_v my_o fellow_n and_o coadiutor_n towards_o you_o or_o our_o brethren_n apostle_n of_o the_o church_n the_o glory_n of_o christ_n â_o verse_n 24_o the_o declaration_n therefore_o which_o be_v of_o your_o charity_n and_o our_o glory_v for_o you_o declare_v you_o towards_o they_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n viii_o 14._o abundance_n supply_n person_n he_o mean_v that_o such_o as_o abound_v in_o worldly_a riches_n shall_v communicate_v for_o supply_v of_o other_o their_o brethren_n necessity_n whatsoever_o they_o may_v that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o who_o they_o help_v in_o temporal_n may_v impart_v to_o they_o again_o some_o of_o their_o spiritual_a riches_n as_o prayer_n and_o other_o holy_a work_n and_o grace_n which_o be_v a_o happy_a change_n and_o intercourse_n for_o the_o wealthy_a man_n other_o if_o they_o can_v see_v it_o and_o this_o place_n prove_v plain_o that_o the_o fasting_n and_o satisfactory_a deed_n of_o one_o man_n be_v available_a to_o other_o yea_o and_o that_o holy_a saint_n or_o other_o virtuous_a person_n may_v in_o measure_n and_o proportion_n of_o other_o man_n necessity_n and_o deserve_n allot_v unto_o they_o as_o well_o the_o supererogation_n of_o their_o spiritual_a work_n as_o these_o that_o abound_v in_o worldly_a good_n may_v give_v alm_n of_o their_o superfluity_n to_o they_o which_o be_v in_o necessity_n which_o interchange_n and_o proportion_n of_o thing_n the_o apostle_n do_v evident_o set_v down_o chap._n ix_o he_o procee_v exhort_v they_o to_o the_o foresay_a contribution_n 3_o to_o verify_v his_o commend_v of_o they_o 6_o and_o to_o do_v it_o liberal_o that_o so_o they_o may_v merit_v the_o more_o and_o god_n be_v the_o more_o praise_v verse_n 1_o for_o concern_v the_o ministry_n that_o be_v do_v â³_o towards_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v superfluous_a for_o i_o to_o write_v unto_o you_o â_o verse_n two_o for_o i_o know_v your_o prompt_a mind_n for_o the_o which_o i_o glory_n of_o you_o to_o the_o macedonian_n that_o achaia_n also_o be_v ready_a from_o the_o year_n past_a and_o your_o emulation_n have_v provoke_v very_o many_o â_o verse_n 3_o but_o i_o have_v send_v the_o brethren_n that_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o glory_n of_o you_o be_v not_o make_v void_a in_o this_o behalf_n that_o as_o i_o have_v say_v you_o may_v be_v ready_a â_o verse_n 4_o lest_z when_o the_o macedonian_n shall_v come_v with_o i_o and_o find_v you_o unready_a we_o that_o we_o say_v not_o you_o may_v be_v ashamed_a theophyl_n in_o this_o substance_n â_o verse_n 5_o therefore_o i_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o desire_v the_o brethren_n that_o they_o will_v come_v to_o you_o and_o prepare_v this_o blessing_n before_o promise_v 10_o to_o be_v ready_a so_o as_o a_o blessing_n â³_o not_o as_o avarice_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o this_o i_o say_v he_o that_o â³_o sow_v spare_o spare_o also_o shall_v reap_v and_o he_o that_o sow_v in_o blessing_n of_o blessing_n also_o shall_v reap_v â_o verse_n 7_o every_o one_o as_o he_o have_v determine_v in_o his_o hart_n not_o of_o sadness_n or_o of_o necessity_n 11._o â_o for_o god_n love_v a_o cheerful_a giver_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o god_n be_v able_a to_o make_v all_o grace_n abound_v in_o you_o that_o in_o all_o thing_n always_o have_v all_o sufficiency_n you_o may_v abound_v unto_o all_o good_a work_n â_o verse_n 9_o as_o it_o be_v write_v 9_o he_o distribute_v he_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a fruit_n his_o justice_n remain_v for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o he_o that_o minister_v seed_n to_o the_o sower_n will_v give_v bread_n also_o for_o to_o eat_v &_o will_v multiply_v your_o seed_n and_o will_v augment_v the_o increase_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o your_o justice_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 11_o that_o be_v enrich_v in_o all_o thing_n you_o may_v abound_v unto_o all_o simplicity_n which_o work_v by_o we_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n â_o verse_n 12_o because_o the_o ministry_n of_o this_o office_n â³_o do_v not_o only_o supply_v those_o thing_n that_o the_o saint_n want_n but_o abound_v also_o by_o many_o thankes-givings_a in_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 13_o by_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o ministry_n glorify_v god_n in_o the_o obedience_n of_o your_o confession_n unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o simplicity_n of_o communicate_v unto_o they_o and_o unto_o all_o â_o verse_n 14_o and_o in_o their_o pray_n for_o you_o be_v desirous_a of_o you_o because_o of_o the_o excellent_a grace_n of_o god_n in_o you_o â_o verse_n 15_o thank_n be_v to_o god_n for_o his_o unspeakable_a gift_n annotation_n chap._n ix_o 7._o towards_o the_o saint_n prisoner_n by_o the_o apostle_n earnest_a and_o often_o call_v upon_o the_o corinthian_n to_o give_v alm_n for_o relieve_n the_o faithful_a in_o distress_n the_o pastor_n of_o god_n church_n may_v learn_v that_o be_v special_o pertain_v to_o their_o office_n to_o be_v proctor_n for_o holy_a man_n in_o prison_n poverty_n and_o all_o other_o necessity_n special_o when_o their_o want_n come_v for_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n 5._o not_o at_o avarice_n give_v the_o covetous_a man_n that_o part_v with_o his_o penny_n painful_o and_o with_o sorrow_n as_o though_o he_o lose_v a_o limb_n of_o his_o body_n be_v note_v and_o cheerful_a ready_a voluntary_a and_o large_a contribution_n be_v commend_v 6._o sow_v spare_o reward_n alm_n be_v compare_v to_o seed_n for_o as_o the_o seed_n throw_v into_o the_o ground_n though_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v cast_v away_o yet_o be_v not_o lose_v but_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o certain_a hope_n of_o great_a increase_n so_o that_o which_o man_n give_v in_o alm_n though_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v cast_v away_o and_o to_o perish_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o giver_n yet_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v most_o fruitful_a the_o benefit_n thereof_o manifold_o return_v to_o he_o again_o whereupon_o the_o apostle_n conclusion_n be_v clear_a that_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o alm_n or_o seed_v which_o be_v more_o or_o less_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o will_v and_o ability_n of_o the_o giver_n the_o increase_n and_o abundance_n of_o harvest_n that_o be_v of_o grace_n and_o glory_n shall_v ensue_v see_v s._n augustine_n in_o psal_n 49_o circamed_a &_o q._n 4._o ad_fw-la dulcitium_fw-la 1â_n do_v not_o only_o supply_v honour_n when_o alm_n be_v give_v special_o to_o holy_a man_n not_o only_o the_o giver_n obtain_v great_a benefit_n thereby_o and_o the_o want_v of_o other_o be_v supply_v but_o god_n also_o by_o the_o receiver_n continual_a prayer_n and_o thanks_n give_v therefore_o be_v exceed_o honour_a so_o that_o charity_n bestow_v in_o this_o sort_n be_v a_o act_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o of_o religion_n chap._n x._o against_o the_o false_a apostle_n grant_v the_o infirmity_n of_o his_o person_n he_o do_v notwithstanding_o set_v out_o the_o power_n of_o his_o apostleship_n ãâã_d reprehend_v they_o also_o for_o chaleng_v to_o themselves_o the_o praise_n of_o other_o man_n labour_n verse_n 1_o and_o i_o paul_n myself_o beseech_v you_o by_o the_o mildness_n and_o modesty_n of_o christ_n who_o in_o presence_n in_o deed_n be_o humble_a among_o you_o but_o absent_a be_o bold_v on_o you_o â_o verse_n 2_o but_o i_o beseech_v you_o that_o be_v present_a i_o need_v not_o be_v bold_a by_o that_o confidence_n wherewith_o i_o be_o think_v to_o be_v bold_a against_o some_o which_o think_v we_o as_o though_o we_o walk_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n â_o verse_n 3_o for_o walk_v in_o the_o flesh_n we_o war_n not_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n â_o verse_n 4_o for_o the_o â³_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a but_o mighty_a to_o god_n unto_o the_o destruction_n of_o munition_n destroy_v counsel_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o all_o loftiness_n extol_v itself_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v into_o captivity_n all_o understanding_n unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o have_v in_o a_o readiness_n â³_o to_o revenge_v all_o disobedience_n when_o your_o obedience_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v â_o verse_n 7_o see_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v according_a to_o appearance_n if_o any_o man_n have_v affiance_n in_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v christ_n let_v he_o think_v this_o again_o with_o himself_o that_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n so_o we_o also_o â_o verse_n 8_o for_o and_o if_o i_o shall_v glory_v somewhat_o more_o of_o our_o power_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v
which_o cause_n comfort_v one_o a_o other_o &_o edify_v one_o a_o other_o as_o also_o you_o do_v â_o verse_n 12_o and_o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n that_o you_o will_v know_v they_o that_o labour_n among_o you_o and_o that_o govern_v you_o in_o our_o lord_n and_o admonish_v you_o â_o verse_n 13_o that_o you_o have_v they_o more_o aboudant_o in_o charity_n for_o their_o work_n have_v peace_n with_o they_o â_o verse_n 14_o lent_n and_o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n 9_o admonish_v the_o unquiet_a comfort_v the_o weak-minded_n bear_v up_o the_o weak_a be_v patient_a to_o al._n â_o verse_n 15_o see_v that_o *_o none_n render_v evil_a for_o evil_a to_o any_o man_n but_o always_o that_o which_o be_v good_a pursue_v towards_o each_o other_o 1._o and_o towards_o al._n â_o verse_n 16_o always_o rejoice_v â_o verse_n 17_o probam_fw-la pray_v *_o without_o intermission_n â_o verse_n 18_o in_o all_o thing_n give_v thanks_n for_o this_o be_v the_o will_v of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n in_o all_o you_o â_o verse_n 19_o the_o spirit_n extinguish_v not_o â_o verse_n 20_o prophecy_n despise_v not_o â_o verse_n 21_o but_o â³_o prove_v all_o thing_n hold_v that_o which_o be_v good_a â_o verse_n 22_o from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil_a refrain_v yourselves_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n himself_o sanctify_v you_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o your_o whole_a spirit_n and_o soul_n and_o body_n without_o blame_n may_v be_v preserve_v in_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 24_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v call_v you_o who_o also_o will_v do_v it_o â_o verse_n 25_o brethren_n pray_v for_o us._n â_o verse_n 26_o salute_v all_o the_o brethren_n in_o a_o holy_a kiss_n â_o verse_n 27_o i_o adjure_v you_o by_o our_o lord_n that_o this_o epistle_n be_v read_v to_o all_o the_o holy_a brethren_n â_o verse_n 28_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v with_o you_o amen_n annotat_fw-la chap._n v._n 10_o but_o proous_a spirit_n though_o we_o may_v not_o extinguish_v the_o spirit_n nor_o contemmne_v the_o prophet_n yet_o we_o must_v beware_v we_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o geve_v to_o light_a credit_n to_o every_o one_o that_o vaunt_v himself_o of_o the_o spirit_n as_o arch-heretike_n ever_o do_v we_o must_v try_v thââ_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o can_v not_o be_v guile_n â_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o the_o second_o to_o the_o thessalonian_o have_v in_o the_o title_n as_o the_o first_o paul_n and_o silvanus_n and_o timothee_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o place_n to_o wit_n at_o corinth_n where_o they_o remain_v 11._o a_o year_n and_o six_o month_n &_o straight_o upon_o their_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o epistle_n first_o he_o thank_v god_n for_o their_o increase_n and_o perseuêrance_n comfort_v they_o again_o in_o those_o persecution_n and_o pray_v for_o their_o accomplisment_n second_o he_o assure_v they_o that_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v not_o at_o hand_n put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n what_o he_o tell_v they_o thereof_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n when_o he_o be_v present_a as_o therefore_o he_o bid_v they_o afterward_o 15._o to_o hold_v his_o tradition_n unwrite_v no_o less_o than_o the_o write_v to_o wit_n that_o all_o those_o persecution_n and_o heresy_n raise_v then_o and_o afterward_o against_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v but_o the_o mystery_n of_o antichrist_n and_o not_o antichrist_n himself_o but_o that_o there_o shall_v come_v at_o length_n a_o plain_a apostasy_n &_o they_o the_o whole_a before_o run_v mystery_n be_v once_o perfect_o wrought_v shall_v follow_v the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n himself_o in_o person_n as_o after_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n come_v himself_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n and_o then_o at_o length_n after_o all_o this_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n shall_v be_v as_o hand_n and_o not_o before_o whatsoever_o pretence_n of_o vision_n or_o of_o some_o speech_n of_o i_o say_v s._n paul_n any_o make_v to_o seduce_v you_o withal_o or_o of_o my_o former_a epistle_n or_o any_o other_o for_o which_o cause_n also_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o epistle_n he_o bid_v they_o to_o know_v his_o hand_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n in_o every_o epistle_n last_o he_o reque_v their_o prayer_n and_o require_v they_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o tradition_n namely_o that_o the_o poor_a which_o be_v able_a get_v their_o own_o live_n with_o work_v as_o he_o also_o give_v they_o example_n though_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v thereto_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o chap._n i._n he_o thank_v god_n for_o their_o increase_n in_o faith_n and_o charity_n and_o constancy_n in_o persecution_n assure_v they_o that_o they_o merit_v thereby_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o their_o persecutor_n do_v damnation_n 11_o and_o also_o pray_v for_o their_o accomplishment_n verse_n 1_o paul_n and_o silvanus_n and_o timothee_n to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o in_o god_n our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 2_o grace_n to_o you_o and_o peace_n from_o god_n our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 3_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v thanks_n always_o to_o god_n for_o you_o brethren_n so_o as_o meet_v be_v because_o your_o faith_n increase_v exceed_o and_o the_o charity_n of_o every_o one_o of_o you_o abound_v towards_o each_o other_o â_o verse_n 4_o so_o that_o we_o ourselves_o also_o glory_n in_o you_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o your_o patience_n and_o faith_n in_o all_o your_o persecution_n and_o tribulation_n which_o you_o sustain_v â_o verse_n 5_o for_o a_o example_n of_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o merit_n you_o may_v be_v ãâã_d count_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o the_o which_o also_o you_o suffer_v â_o verse_n 6_o if_o yet_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o repay_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o vex_v you_o â_o verse_n 7_o and_o to_o you_o that_o be_v vex_v rest_n with_o we_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n from_o heaven_n with_o the_o angel_n of_o his_o power_n 16._o â_o verse_n 8_o in_o flame_n of_o fire_n give_v revenge_n to_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n &_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n â_o verse_n 9_o who_o shall_v suffer_v eternal_a pain_n in_o destruction_n from_o the_o face_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n â_o verse_n 10_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v same_o glorify_v in_o his_o saint_n and_o to_o be_v make_v marvellous_a in_o all_o they_o that_o have_v believe_v because_o our_o testimony_n concern_v you_o be_v credit_v in_o that_o day_n â_o verse_n 11_o wherein_o also_o we_o pray_v always_o for_o you_o that_o our_o god_n ãâã_d make_v you_o worthy_a of_o his_o vocation_n and_o accomplish_v all_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o goodness_n &_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n in_o power_n â_o verse_n 12_o that_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o you_o and_o you_o in_o he_o according_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o god_n and_o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n chap._n ii_o he_o require_v they_o in_o no_o case_n to_o think_v that_o domesday_n be_v at_o hand_n â_o repeat_n unto_o they_o that_o there_o must_v before_o come_v first_o a_o revolt_n second_o the_o revelation_n also_o of_o antichrist_n himself_o in_o person_n and_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o permit_v any_o god_n to_o be_v worship_v but_o only_o himself_o that_o also_o with_o his_o lie_v wonder_v he_o shall_v win_v to_o he_o the_o incredulous_a jew_n but_o christ_n shall_v come_v then_o immediate_o in_o majesty_n and_o destroy_v he_o and_o he_o 13_o therefore_o he_o thank_v god_n for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o 15_o and_o bid_v they_o stick_v to_o hiâ_n tradition_n both_o write_v and_o unwrite_v &_o pray_v god_n to_o confirm_v they_o verse_n 1_o and_o we_o desire_v you_o advent_a brethren_z by_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o our_o congregation_n into_o he_o â_o verse_n two_o that_o you_o be_v not_o easy_o move_v from_o your_o sense_n nor_o be_v terrify_v neither_o by_o spirit_n nor_o by_o word_n nor_o by_o epistle_n as_o send_v by_o we_o â³_o as_o though_o the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v at_o hand_n â_o verse_n 3_o let_v no_o man_n seduce_v you_o by_o any_o mean_n for_o â³_o unless_o there_o come_v ãâã_d a_o revolt_n first_o and_z â³_o
chaste_a not_o detract_n sober_a faithful_a in_o all_o thing_n â_o verse_n 12_o let_v deacons_n be_v the_o husband_n of_o one_o wife_n which_o rule_n well_o their_o child_n &_o their_o house_n â_o verse_n 13_o for_o they_o that_o have_v minister_v well_o shall_v purchase_v to_o themselves_o a_o good_a degree_n and_o much_o confidence_n in_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 14_o these_o thing_n i_o write_v to_o thou_o hope_v that_o i_o shall_v come_v to_o thou_o quick_o â_o verse_n 15_o but_o if_o i_o tarry_v long_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o converse_v â³_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n â³_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o manifest_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sacrament_n of_o piety_n which_o be_v manifest_v in_o flesh_n be_v justify_v in_o spirit_n appear_v to_o angel_n have_v be_v preach_v to_o gentiles_n be_v believe_v in_o the_o world_n be_v assumpt_v in_o glory_n annotation_n chap._n iii_o 1._o a_o good_a work_n function_n nothing_o say_v s._n augustine_n in_o this_o life_n and_o special_o in_o this_o time_n be_v easy_a pleasant_a or_o more_o acceptable_a to_o man_n than_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n priest_n or_o deacon_n if_o the_o thing_n be_v do_v only_o for_o fashion_n sake_n and_o âââââringly_o but_o nothing_o before_o god_n more_o miserable_a more_o lamentable_a more_o damnable_a again_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o life_n and_o special_o at_o this_o time_n hard_a more_o laborious_a or_o more_o dangerous_a than_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n priest_n or_o deacon_n but_o before_o god_n nothing_o more_o bless_v if_o they_o war_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o our_o captain_n command_v august_n ep_v 148._o 2._o a_o bishop_n also_o that_o which_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o a_o bishop_n because_o the_o word_n bishop_n &_o priest_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v often_o take_v indifferent_o for_o both_o or_o either_o of_o the_o twain_o as_o be_v note_v in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o same_o be_v mean_v of_o every_o priest_n also_o though_o the_o quality_n here_o require_v aught_o to_o be_v more_o singular_a in_o the_o bishop_n then_o in_o the_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o their_o degree_n dignity_n and_o calling_n â_o of_o one_o wife_n certain_a bishop_n of_o vigilantius_n sect_n whether_o upon_o false_a construction_n of_o this_o text_n or_o through_o the_o filthiness_n of_o their_o fleshly_a lust_n will_v take_v none_o to_o the_o clergy_n except_o they_o will_v be_v marry_v first_o marriage_n not_o believe_v say_v s._n hierom_n advers_o vigilant_a c._n 1._o that_o any_o single_a man_n live_v chaste_o show_v how_o holy_o they_o live_v themselves_o that_o suspect_v ill_a of_o every_o man_n and_o will_v not_o give_v the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n to_o the_o clergy_n unless_o they_o see_v their_o wife_n have_v great_a belly_n and_o child_n wall_v at_o their_o mother_n breast_n our_o protestant_n though_o they_o be_v of_o vigilantius_n sect_n yet_o they_o be_v scarce_o come_v so_o far_o to_o command_v every_o priest_n to_o be_v marry_v nevertheless_o they_o mislike_v they_o that_o will_v not_o marry_v so_o much_o the_o worse_o and_o they_o suspect_v ill_a of_o every_o single_a person_n in_o the_o church_n think_v the_o gift_n of_o chastitle_v to_o be_v very_o rare_a among_o they_o &_o they_o do_v not_o only_o make_v the_o state_n of_o marriage_n equal_a to_o chaste_a single_a life_n with_o the_o heretic_n jovinian_a but_o they_o be_v bold_a to_o say_v sometime_o that_o the_o bishop_n or_o priest_n may_v do_v his_o duty_n and_o charge_n better_o marry_v 7._o then_o single_a express_o against_o s._n paul_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o unmarried_a think_v of_o the_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o god_n and_o that_o the_o marry_v be_v diverse_o distract_v and_o entangle_v with_o the_o world_n the_o apostle_n then_o by_o this_o place_n we_o now_o treat_v of_o neither_o command_v nor_o counsele_v order_n nor_o wish_v nor_o will_v have_v bishop_n or_o priest_n to_o marry_v or_o such_o only_a to_o be_v receive_v as_o have_v be_v marry_v but_o that_o such_o a_o one_o as_o have_v be_v marry_v so_o it_o be_v but_o once_o and_o that_o to_o a_o virgin_n may_v be_v make_v bishop_n or_o priest_n which_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o inhibition_n that_o none_o have_v be_v twice_o marry_v or_o be_v bigamus_fw-la shall_v be_v admit_v to_o that_o holy_a order_n and_o this_o exposition_n only_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o definition_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o father_n without_o exception_n and_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n which_o sense_n s._n chrysostom_n whole_o follow_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n though_o here_o he_o follow_v not_o whole_o the_o same_o sense_n ho._n 2_o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la tit._n s._n ambrose_n also_o upon_o this_o place_n and_o most_o plain_o and_o large_o in_o his_o 82_o epistle_n post_v med_n give_v the_o cause_n why_o bigamus_fw-la can_v not_o be_v make_v bishop_n or_o priest_n in_o fine_a affirm_v not_o only_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o nice_a to_o have_v take_v order_n that_o none_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o clergy_n that_o be_v twice_o marry_v s._n hierom_n ep._n 83._o ad_fw-la oceanum_n c._n 2._o &_o ep_v â_o c._n 18._o ep_n 11._o â_o 2_o express_o write_v that_o the_o clergy_n be_v make_v of_o such_o as_o have_v have_v but_o one_o wife_n at_o least_o after_o baptism_n for_o he_o think_v that_o if_o one_o be_v often_o marry_v when_o he_o be_v yet_o no_o christian_a he_o may_v notwithstanding_o be_v order_v bishop_n or_o priest_n but_o s._n ambrose_n ep_v 82._o s._n augustine_n de_fw-mi bono_fw-mi coniug_n c._n 18._o s._n innocentius_n the_o first_o ep_n 2._o c._n 5._o â_o to_o 1._o council_n s._n leo_n ep_v 87â_n 25._o s._n gregory_n &_o after_o they_o the_o whole_a church_n exclude_v those_o also_o which_o have_v be_v twice_o marry_v when_o so_o ever_o whereof_o s._n augustine_n give_v goodly_a reason_n and_o example_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v s._n leo_n ep_n 87_o add_v further_a &_o prove_v that_o the_o man_n be_v count_v bigamus_fw-la bigami_fw-la &_o not_o the_o husband_n of_o one_o wife_n in_o respect_n of_o holy_a order_n not_o only_o if_o he_o have_v have_v two_o wife_n but_o if_o his_o one_o wife_n be_v not_o a_o virgin_n which_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o old_a la_o 21._o must_v needs_o be_v much_o rather_o keep_v now_o see_v also_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr ecclesiasticis_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la c._n 72_o in_o s._n augustine_n work_n and_o by_o these_o few_o you_o may_v see_v how_o shameful_o the_o state_n of_o the_o new_a heretical_a clergy_n of_o our_o time_n be_v fall_v from_o the_o apostolic_a and_o all_o the_o father_n practice_n and_o doctrine_n herein_o wife_n who_o do_v not_o only_o take_v man_n once_o or_o twice_o marry_v before_o but_o which_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o in_o any_o person_n or_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o marry_v after_o they_o be_v bishop_n or_o priest_n once_o twice_o and_o as_o often_o as_o their_o lust_n require_v whereas_o it_o be_v never_o lawful_a in_o god_n church_n to_o marry_v after_o holy_a order_n neither_o be_v there_o one_o authentical_a example_n thereof_o in_o the_o world_n order_n for_o those_o of_o who_o nice_a council_n speak_v be_v marry_v before_o &_o be_v but_o tolerate_v only_o to_o use_v their_o wife_n the_o father_n in_o the_o same_o council_n provide_v express_o at_o the_o same_o time_n 8._o that_o none_o from_o thence_o forth_o shall_v marry_v after_o they_o come_v to_o holy_a order_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o socrates_n and_o sozomenus_n declare_v in_o most_o plain_a word_n wife_n see_v suidas_n in_o the_o word_n paphnutius_fw-la â2_n and_o in_o what_o country_n so_o ever_o they_o have_v be_v permit_v to_o have_v carnal_a deal_n even_o with_o their_o wife_n who_o they_o have_v before_o it_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o exact_a rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o church_n tradition_n by_o which_o all_o that_o be_v in_o holy_a order_n shall_v whole_o abstain_v not_o only_o from_o marry_v but_o even_o from_o their_o wife_n before_o marry_v whereof_o thus_o write_v s._n epiphanius_n hare_n 59_o cânt_n cathares_n epiphanius_n the_o holy_a preach_n of_o god_n receive_v not_o after_o christ_n they_o that_o marry_v again_o after_o their_o wife_n departure_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a dignity_n and_o honour_n of_o priesthood_n and_o this_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n observe_v with_o all_o sincerity_n yea_o she_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o once_o marry_a person_n that_o yet_o
to_o principal_a person_n both_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n be_v godly_a and_o consonant_a to_o priestly_a vocation_n as_o also_o serve_v of_o prince_n and_o commonweal_v in_o civil_a cause_n and_o matter_n of_o state_n in_o make_v peace_n and_o quietness_n among_o the_o people_n by_o decide_v or_o compound_v their_o controversy_n and_o all_o such_o like_a affair_n tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o good_a of_o man_n and_o to_o the_o uphold_v of_o true_a religion_n when_o they_o may_v be_v do_v without_o notorious_a damage_n or_o hindrance_n of_o their_o spiritual_a charge_n or_o when_o the_o hurt_n thereof_o be_v abundant_o recompense_v by_o the_o necessary_a duty_n do_v for_o the_o general_a good_a of_o kingdom_n or_o country_n bern._n all_o such_o thing_n i_o say_v be_v lawful_a and_o often_o very_o requisite_a and_o s._n augustine_n s._n ambrose_n s._n bernard_n and_o other_o holy_a bishop_n of_o old_a be_v much_o occupy_v therein_o as_o we_o see_v in_o s._n augustine_n book_n de_fw-la opere_fw-la monachorum_fw-la c._n 29._o &_o possid_n in_o vit_fw-fr c._n 19_o 15._o right_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n or_o challenge_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v common_a to_o catholic_n and_o heretic_n but_o all_o be_v in_o the_o handle_n of_o they_o these_o late_a handle_v they_o guileful_o adulter_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 4._o as_o *_o else_o where_o the_o apostle_n speak_v the_o other_o sincere_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o doctor_n of_o god_n church_n which_o the_o greek_a express_v by_o a_o significant_a word_n of_o cut_v a_o thing_n straight_o by_o a_o line_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 17._o their_o speech_n avoid_v the_o speech_n preach_n and_o write_n of_o heretic_n be_v pestiferous_a contagious_a and_o creep_v like_o a_o canker_n therefore_o christian_a man_n must_v never_o hear_v their_o sermon_n nor_o read_v their_o book_n for_o such_o man_n have_v a_o popular_a way_n of_o talk_n whereby_o the_o unlearned_a and_o special_o woman_n load_v with_o sin_n be_v easy_o beguile_v nothing_o be_v so_o easy_a say_v s._n hierom_n as_o with_o voluble_a and_o roll_a tongue_n to_o deceive_v the_o rude_a people_n which_o admire_v whatsoever_o they_o understand_v not_o ep._n 2._o ad_fw-la nepot_n c._n 10._o 20._o in_o a_o great_a house_n he_n mean_v not_o that_o hymenaeus_n and_o philétus_n of_o whon_n he_o speak_v immediate_o before_o or_o other_o heretic_n be_v proper_o within_o the_o church_n as_o catholic_a man_n be_v it_o though_o grevous_a sinner_n but_o that_o evil_a man_n who_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o their_o sin_n become_v heretic_n be_v before_o they_o fall_v from_o their_o faith_n as_o vessel_n of_o contumely_n within_o the_o church_n yea_o and_o often_o also_o after_o they_o be_v sever_v in_o hart_n and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n so_o long_o as_o they_o stand_v in_o external_a profession_n and_o use_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o in_o the_o outward_a fellowship_n of_o catholic_n not_o yet_o either_o separate_v of_o themselves_o nor_o cast_v out_o by_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n so_o long_o we_o say_v they_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n in_o the_o church_n though_o proper_o and_o in_o deed_n they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o compass_n of_o god_n house_n marry_o of_o those_o that_o be_v open_o sever_v in_o sacrament_n service_n and_o communion_n there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n 21._o cleanse_v himself_o will_v man_n then_o have_v free_a will_v to_o make_v himself_o a_o vessel_n of_o salvation_n or_o damnation_n though_o salvation_n be_v attribute_v to_o god_n mercy_n principal_o the_o other_o to_o his_o just_a judgement_n neither_o of_o both_o be_v repugnant_a to_o our_o free_a will_v but_o work_v with_o and_o by_o the_o same_o all_o such_o effect_n in_o we_o as_o to_o his_o providence_n and_o our_o desert_n be_v agreeable_a chap._n iii_o he_o prophesi_v of_o heretic_n to_o come_v 6_o and_o note_v certain_a then_o also_o for_o such_o bid_v he_o to_o avoid_v they_o 10_o and_z whatsoever_o persecution_n befall_v for_o it_o to_o continue_v constant_a in_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n both_o because_o of_o his_o master_n s._n paul_n himself_o 15_o and_o also_o because_o of_o his_o own_o knowledge_n in_o the_o scripture_n verse_n 1_o and_o this_o know_v thou_o 1._o that_o *_o in_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v approache_v perilous_a time_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o â³_o man_n shall_v be_v lover_n of_o themselves_o covetous_a haughty_a proud_a blasphemous_a not_o obedient_a to_o their_o parent_n unkind_a wicked_a â_o verse_n 3_o without_o affection_n without_o peace_n accuser_n incontinent_a unmerciful_a without_o benignity_n â_o verse_n 4_o traitor_n stubborn_a puff_v up_o and_o lover_n of_o voluptuousness_n more_o than_o of_o god_n â_o verse_n 5_o have_v a_o appearance_n in_o deed_n of_o piety_n but_o deny_v the_o virtue_n thereof_o and_o these_o avoid_v â_o verse_n 6_o for_o of_o these_o be_v they_o that_o crafty_o enter_v into_o house_n and_o lead_v captive_a âeely_o â³_o woman_n load_v with_o sin_n which_o be_v lead_v with_o diverse_a desireâ_n â_o verse_n 7_o always_o learning_n and_o never_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o as_o like_a jannes_n &_o mambres_n *_o resist_v moses_n so_o these_o also_o resist_v the_o truth_n 7._o man_n corrupt_v in_o mind_n reprobate_a concern_v the_o faith_n â_o verse_n 9_o but_o they_o shall_v prosper_v no_o further_o for_o their_o â³_o folly_n shall_v be_v manifest_a to_o all_o as_o they_o also_o be_v â_o verse_n 10_o but_o thou_o have_v attain_v to_o my_o doctrine_n institution_n purpose_n faith_n longanimitie_n love_n patience_n â_o verse_n 11_o persecution_n passion_n what_o manner_n of_o thing_n be_v do_v to_o i_o at_o antioch_n at_o iconium_n at_o lystra_n what_o manner_n of_o persecution_n i_o sustain_v and_o out_o of_o all_o our_o lord_n deliver_v i_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o â³_o all_o that_o will_v live_v godly_a in_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v suffer_v persecution_n â_o verse_n 13_o but_o evil_a man_n and_o seducer_n shall_v prosper_v to_o the_o worse_o err_v and_o drive_v into_o error_n â_o verse_n 14_o but_o thou_o 1._o continue_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o thou_o have_v learn_v and_o be_v commit_v to_o thou_o know_v of_o who_o thou_o have_v learn_v â_o verse_n 15_o and_o because_o from_o thy_o infancy_n thou_o have_v know_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o can_v instruct_v thou_o to_o salvation_n by_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n â_o verse_n 16_o â³_o *_o all_o scripture_n inspire_v of_o god_n 21._o be_v profitable_a to_o teach_v to_o argue_v to_o correct_v to_o instruct_v in_o justice_n â_o verse_n 17_o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a instruct_v to_o every_o good_a work_n annotation_n chap._n iii_o 2._o man_n shall_v be_v all_o these_o word_n s._n cyprian_n expound_v of_o such_o as_o by_o pride_n and_o disobedience_n resist_v god_n priest_n let_v no_o faithful_a man_n say_v he_o that_o keep_v in_o mind_n our_o lord_n and_o the_o apostle_n admonition_n marvel_v if_o he_o see_v in_o the_o late_a time_n some_o proud_a and_o stubborn_a fellow_n and_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n priest_n go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n or_o impugn_v the_o same_o when_o both_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o apostle_n foretell_v we_o that_o such_o shall_v be_v cypr._n ep_v 55._o nu_fw-la 3._o 6._o woman_n load_v heresy_n woman_n load_v with_o sin_n be_v for_o such_o their_o deserve_n and_o through_o the_o frailty_n of_o their_o sex_n more_o subject_a to_o the_o heretic_n deceit_n than_o man_n the_o enemy_n attempt_v as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n by_o they_o to_o overthrow_v man_n see_v s._n hierem_fw-la upon_o the_o 3_o chapter_n of_o jeremie_n where_o he_o add_v that_o every_o heresy_n be_v first_o broach_v propter_fw-la gulam_fw-la &_o ventrem_fw-la for_o gluttony_n and_o belly-cheer_n 9_o folly_n manifest_a appear_v all_o heretic_n in_o the_o beginning_n seem_v to_o have_v some_o show_n of_o truth_n god_n for_o just_a punishment_n of_o man_n sin_n permit_v they_o for_o some_o while_n in_o some_o person_n and_o place_n to_o prevail_v but_o in_o short_a time_n god_n detect_v they_o and_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o man_n to_o see_v their_o decei_fw-mi tes_fw-fr in_o so_o much_o that_o after_o the_o first_o brunt_n they_o be_v maintain_v by_o force_n only_o all_o wise_a man_n in_o manner_n see_v their_o falsehood_n though_o for_o trouble_v the_o state_n of_o such_o common_a weal_n where_o unlucke_o they_o have_v be_v receive_v they_o can_v not_o be_v so_o sudden_o extirp_v 12._o all_o that_o will_v live_v persecution_n all_o holy_a man_n suffer_v one_o kind_n of_o persecution_n or_o other_o be_v greeve_v and_o molest_v by_o the_o wicked_a one_o way_n or_o a_o
father_n in_o the_o prophet_n day_n â_o verse_n 2_o last_o of_o all_o in_o these_o day_n have_v speak_v to_o we_o in_o his_o son_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v heir_n of_o all_o by_o who_o he_o make_v also_o the_o world_n 26._o â_o verse_n 3_o *_o who_o be_v the_o ãâã_d brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o â³_o the_o ãâã_d figure_n of_o his_o substance_n &_o carry_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o his_o power_n angel_n make_v purgation_n of_o sin_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n in_o the_o high_a place_n â_o verse_n 4_o be_v make_v so_o much_o better_a than_o angel_n as_o he_o have_v inherit_v a_o more_o excellent_a name_n above_o they_o â_o verse_n 5_o for_o to_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n have_v he_o say_v at_o any_o time_n 14._o thou_o be_v my_o son_n to_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o and_o again_o i_o will_v be_v to_o he_o a_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v to_o i_o a_o son_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o when_o again_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o first_o beget_v into_o the_o world_n he_o say_v 8._o and_o â_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n adore_v he_o â_o verse_n 7_o and_o to_o the_o angel_n true_o he_o say_v 4._o he_o that_o make_v his_o angel_n spirit_n and_o his_o minister_n 7._o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o to_o the_o son_n thy_o throne_n o_o god_n for_o ever_o &_o ever_o a_o rod_n of_o equity_n the_o rod_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n â_o verse_n 9_o thou_o have_v love_v justice_n and_o hate_a iniquity_n therefore_o thou_o god_n thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o exultation_n above_o thy_o fellow_n 26._o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o thou_o in_o the_o begin_n o_o lord_n do_v find_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n be_v the_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 11_o they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o shall_v continue_v and_o they_o shall_v all_o wax_v old_a as_o a_o garment_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o as_o a_o vesture_n shall_v thou_o change_v they_o &_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v but_o thou_o be_v the_o self_n same_o and_o thy_o year_n shall_v not_o fail_v â¢_o â_o verse_n 13_o but_o to_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n say_v he_o at_o any_o time_n 1_o sit_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n 25._o until_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n the_o footstool_n of_o thy_o foot_n â_o verse_n 14_o be_v they_o not_o all_o 31._o minister_a spirit_n send_v to_o minister_v for_o they_o which_o shall_v receive_v the_o inheritance_n of_o salvation_n annotation_n chap._n i._n 3._o the_o figure_n ãâã_d to_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o his_o substance_n signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v in_o other_o word_n to_o the_o phillippian_o c._n 2._o five_o 6._o that_o he_o be_v the_o form_n and_o most_o express_a resemblance_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n so_o s._n ambrose_n and_o other_o expound_v it_o and_o the_o greek_a word_n character_n be_v very_o significant_a to_o that_o purpose_n body_n note_v also_o by_o this_o place_n that_o the_o son_n though_o he_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o âathers_n substance_n be_v notwithstanding_o of_o the_o same_o substance_n so_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o his_o mystical_a death_n and_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o same_o though_o call_v a_o figure_n image_n or_o representation_n of_o christ_n visible_a body_n and_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n yet_o may_v be_v and_o be_v the_o self_n same_o in_o substance_n 6._o let_v all_o the_o angel_n adore_v the_o heretic_n marvel_v that_o we_o adore_v christ_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n when_o they_o may_v learn_v by_o this_o place_n sacrament_n that_o wheresoever_o his_o person_n be_v there_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v adore_v both_o of_o man_n and_o angel_n and_o where_o they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o make_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o institute_v to_o be_v adore_v we_o answer_n that_o no_o more_o be_v he_o incarnate_a purposely_o to_o be_v adore_v but_o yet_o straight_o upon_o his_o descend_v from_o heaven_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n both_o of_o angel_n and_o all_o other_o creature_n to_o adore_v he_o chap._n ii_o he_o infer_v of_o the_o foresay_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v incomparable_o more_o damnable_a for_o they_o to_o neglect_v the_o new_a testament_n than_o the_o old_a 3_o consider_v the_o irrefragable_a authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o 5_o then_o he_o prosecute_v the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n above_o the_o angel_n 9_o who_o nevertheless_o be_v make_v lesser_a than_o angel_n to_o suffer_v and_o die_v for_o man_n to_o destroy_v the_o dominion_n of_o the_o devil_n 15_o to_o deliver_v man_n from_o fear_n of_o death_n 17_o and_o to_o be_v a_o fit_n priest_n for_o man_n verse_n 1_o therefore_o more_o abundant_o ought_v we_o to_o observe_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v lose_v ãâã_d lest_o perhaps_o we_o run_v out_o â_o verse_n 2_o for_o if_o the_o word_n that_o be_v speak_v by_o angel_n become_v sure_o and_o all_o prevarication_n and_o disobedience_n have_v receive_v a_o just_a retribution_n of_o reward_n â_o verse_n 3_o how_o shall_v we_o escape_v if_o we_o neglect_v so_o great_a salvation_n which_o when_o it_o be_v begin_v to_o be_v declare_v by_o our_o lord_n of_o they_o that_o hear_v be_v confirm_v on_o we_o 20._o â_o verse_n 4_o *_o god_n withal_n testify_v by_o sign_n &_o wonder_v and_o diverse_a miracle_n &_o distribution_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o his_o will_v â_o verse_n 5_o for_o not_o to_o angel_n have_v god_n make_v subject_n the_o world_n to_o come_v whereof_o we_o speak_v â_o verse_n 6_o but_o one_o have_v testify_v in_o a_o certain_a place_n say_v what_o be_v man_n that_o thou_o be_v mindful_a of_o he_o 5._o or_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o thou_o visite_a he_o â_o verse_n 7_o thou_o do_v minish_v he_o little_o less_o than_o angel_n with_o glory_n and_o honour_n thou_o have_v crown_v he_o 1._o and_o constitute_v he_o over_o the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n â_o verse_n 8_o all_o thing_n have_v thou_o make_v subject_a under_o his_o foot_n for_o in_o that_o he_o subject_v all_o thing_n to_o he_o he_o leave_v nothing_o not_o subject_a to_o he_o but_o now_o we_o see_v not_o as_o yet_o all_o thing_n subject_v to_o he_o 8._o â_o verse_n 9_o but_o *_o he_o that_o be_v a_o little_a lessen_v under_o the_o angel_n we_o see_v jesus_n 1579._o because_o of_o the_o passion_n of_o death_n crown_v with_o glory_n and_o honour_n that_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o may_v taste_v death_n for_o al._n â_o verse_n 10_o for_o it_o become_v he_o for_o who_o all_o thing_n and_o by_o who_o all_o thing_n that_o have_v bring_v many_o child_n into_o glory_n to_o consummate_v the_o author_n of_o their_o salvation_n by_o his_o passion_n â_o verse_n 11_o for_o he_o that_o sanctifi_v and_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v all_o of_o one_o for_o the_o which_o cause_n he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o call_v they_o brethren_n â_o verse_n 12_o saying_n i_o will_v declare_v thy_o name_n to_o my_o brethren_n 23_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o church_n will_v i_o verse_n 13_o praise_v thou_o 3._o and_o again_o iwil_n have_v affiance_n in_o he_o and_o again_o behold_v here_o be_o i_o and_o my_o child_n 18._o who_o god_n have_v give_v i_o â_o verse_n 14_o therefore_o because_o the_o child_n have_v communicate_v with_o flesh_n &_o blood_n himself_o also_o in_o like_a manner_n have_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o that_o *_o by_o death_n he_o may_v destroy_v he_o that_o have_v the_o empire_n of_o death_n 54._o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o devil_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o may_v deliver_v they_o that_o by_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n through_o all_o their_o life_n be_v subject_a to_o servitude_n â_o verse_n 16_o for_o no_o where_o do_v he_o take_v angel_n but_o angel_n the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n he_o take_v â_o verse_n 17_o whereupon_o he_o ought_v in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v like_a unto_o his_o brethren_n that_o he_o may_v become_v a_o merciful_a and_o faithful_a high_a priest_n before_o god_n that_o he_o may_v repropitiate_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n â_o verse_n 18_o for_o in_o that_o wherein_o himself_o suffer_v and_o be_v tempt_v he_o be_v able_a to_o help_v they_o also_o that_o be_v tempt_v chap._n iii_o by_o example_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v incomparable_o more_o excellent_a than_o moses_n also_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o be_v faithful_a unto_o god_n 7_o their_o reward_n shall_v be_v to_o enter_v into_o everlasting_a rest_n if_o they_o persevere_v as_o contrariwise_o to_o be_v exclude_v as_o be_v shadow_v in_o their_o forefather_n in_o the_o wilderness_n if_o they_o sin_n and_o become_v incredulous_a verse_n 1_o wherefore_o holy_a brethren_n partaker_n of_o the_o heavenly_a vocation_n
priesthood_n and_o our_o lord_n have_v this_o excellent_a double_a dignity_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o discourse_n of_o s._n paul_n 109._o and_o his_o allegation_n here_o out_o of_o the_o psalm_n at_o the_o very_a first_o moment_n of_o his_o conception_n or_o incarnation_n god_n for_o you_o must_v beware_v of_o the_o wicked_a heresy_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o caluinist_n except_o in_o these_o late_a it_o be_v rather_o a_o error_n procede_v of_o ignorance_n that_o stick_v not_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n or_o do_v sacrifice_v according_a to_o his_o godhead_n which_o be_v to_o make_v christ_n god_n the_o father_n priest_n and_o not_o his_o son_n and_o to_o do_v sacrifice_n and_o homage_n to_o he_o as_o his_o lord_n and_o not_o as_o his_o equal_a in_o dignity_n and_o nature_n therefore_o s._n augustine_n say_v in_o psal_n 109._o that_o as_o he_o be_v man_n he_o be_v priest_n as_o god_n he_o be_v not_o priest_n and_o theodorete_n in_o psal_n 109._o as_o man_n he_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n but_o as_o god_n he_o do_v receive_v sacrifice_n and_o again_o christ_n touch_v his_o humanity_n be_v call_v a_o priest_n and_o he_o offer_v no_o other_o host_n but_o his_o own_o body_n etc._n etc._n 89._o dialog_n 1_o circa_fw-la med_a some_o of_o our_o new_a master_n not_o know_v so_o much_o do_v let_v fall_v out_o of_o their_o pen_n the_o contrary_a and_o be_v admonish_v of_o the_o error_n and_o that_o it_o be_v very_a arianism_n yet_o they_o persist_v in_o it_o of_o mere_a ignorance_n in_o the_o ground_n of_o divinity_n 7._o with_o a_o strong_a cry_n priesthood_n though_o our_o saviour_n make_v intercession_n for_o we_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n continual_o in_o heaven_n also_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o in_o any_o external_a creature_n make_v sacrifice_n nor_o use_v the_o prayer_n sacrificall_a by_o which_o our_o redemption_n be_v achieve_v as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o mortal_a life_n and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o most_o principal_o when_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n and_o with_o this_o prayer_n in_o manus_fw-la tuas_fw-la commend_v spiritum_fw-la meum_fw-la 46._o he_o voluntary_o depose_v his_o soul_n yield_v it_o in_o most_o proper_a sort_n for_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o in_o that_o last_o point_n of_o his_o death_n consist_v special_o his_o high_a priestly_a office_n and_o the_o very_a work_n and_o consummation_n of_o our_o redemption_n observe_v more_o over_o effectual_a that_o though_o common_o every_o faithful_a person_n pray_v both_o for_o himself_o and_o other_o and_o offer_v his_o prayer_n to_o god_n yet_o none_o offer_v by_o office_n and_o special_a deputation_n and_o appointment_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o people_n save_v the_o priest_n who_o prayer_n therefore_o be_v more_o effectual_a in_o themselves_o for_o that_o they_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o all_o faithful_a man_n together_o make_v by_o he_o that_o be_v appoint_v and_o receive_v of_o god_n for_o the_o people_n legate_n action_n and_o of_o this_o kind_n be_v all_o christ_n prayer_n in_o all_o his_o life_n and_o death_n as_o all_o his_o other_o action_n be_v his_o fast_v watch_v preach_v institute_a minister_a or_o receive_v sacrament_n every_o one_o be_v do_v as_o priestly_a action_n 7._o for_o his_o reverence_n blasphemy_n these_o word_n have_v our_o english_a translator_n pernicious_o and_o most_o presumptuous_o corrupt_v turn_v they_o thus_o in_o that_o which_o he_o fear_v contrary_a to_o the_o version_n and_o sense_n of_o all_o antiquity_n place_n and_o to_o erasmus_n also_o and_o contrary_a to_o the_o ordinary_a use_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n as_o beza_n himself_o define_v it_o luc._n 2_o v._n 25_o and_o contrary_a to_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o greek_a phrase_n as_o not_o only_o the_o catholic_n but_o *_o the_o best_a learned_a lutheran_n do_v show_v and_o prove_v by_o many_o example_n they_o follow_v herein_o the_o singular_a presumption_n of_o caluin_n who_o be_v the_o first_o as_o his_o fellow_n beza_n confess_v that_o ever_o find_v out_o this_o interpretation_n which_o neither_o s._n chrysostom_n nor_o any_o other_o as_o perfect_a grecian_n as_o they_o be_v can_v ever_o espy_v where_o only_o to_o have_v make_v choice_n of_o that_o impious_a and_o arrogant_a sectary_n sense_n before_o the_o say_a father_n and_o all_o the_o church_n beside_o have_v be_v shameful_a enough_o but_o to_o set_v the_o same_o down_o for_o very_a scripture_n of_o god_n bless_a word_n that_o be_v intolerable_a and_o pass_v all_o impiety_n and_o we_o see_v plain_o that_o they_o have_v no_o conscience_n indifferency_n nor_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o make_v the_o poor_a reader_n believe_v that_o their_o opinion_n be_v god_n own_o word_n and_o to_o draw_v the_o scripture_n to_o sound_v after_o the_o fantasy_n of_o their_o heresy_n but_o if_o the_o good_a reader_n know_v for_o what_o point_n of_o doctrine_n they_o have_v thus_o frame_v their_o translation_n they_o will_v abhor_v they_o to_o the_o depth_n of_o hel._n insufficient_a forsooth_o it_o be_v thus_o they_o will_v have_v this_o scripture_n mean_a that_o christ_n be_v in_o horrible_a fear_n of_o damnation_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o in_o pain_n corporal_a upon_o the_o cross_n which_o they_o hold_v not_o to_o have_v be_v sufficient_a for_o man_n redemption_n but_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o very_a sorrow_n &_o distress_n of_o the_o damn_a without_o any_o difference_n but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o everlasting_a as_o they_o be_v for_o this_o horrible_a blasphemy_n which_o be_v their_o interpretation_n of_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n god_n holy_a word_n must_v be_v corrupt_v and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n whereof_o they_o talk_v so_o presumptuous_o must_v noâ_n be_v enough_o for_o our_o redemption_n except_o he_o be_v damn_v for_o we_o also_o to_o the_o pain_n of_o hel._n woe_n be_v to_o our_o poor_a country_n that_o must_v have_v such_o book_n and_o read_v such_o translation_n see_v caluin_n and_o beza_n in_o their_o commentary_n and_o annotation_n upon_o this_o place_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v that_o for_o defence_n of_o the_o say_a blasphemy_n they_o have_v thus_o translate_v this_o text_n see_v the_o annotation_n before_o redemption_n act._n 2_o 27_o and_o mat._n 27_o 46._o 9_o consummate_v the_o full_a work_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n by_o which_o we_o be_v redeem_v be_v whole_o consummate_v and_o accomplish_a at_o the_o yield_v up_o of_o his_o spirit_n to_o god_n the_o father_n when_o he_o say_v consummatum_fw-la est_fw-la 30_o though_o for_o to_o make_v the_o same_o effectual_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o particular_a man_n he_o he_o self_n do_v diverse_a thing_n and_o now_o do_v in_o heaven_n and_o ourselves_o also_o must_v use_v many_o mean_n for_o the_o application_n thereof_o to_o our_o particular_a necessity_n see_v the_o next_o annotation_n 9_o be_v make_v to_o all_o the_o protestant_n upon_o pretence_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o his_o only_a redemption_n command_v oppose_v themselves_o guileful_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o simple_a against_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o their_o intercession_n and_o help_v of_o we_o against_o our_o penitential_a work_n or_o suffer_v for_o our_o own_o sin_n either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o the_o next_o against_o the_o merit_n of_o fast_v pray_v alm_n and_o other_o thing_n commend_v to_o we_o in_o holy_a write_v and_o against_o most_o thing_n do_v in_o the_o church_n in_o sacrifice_n sacrament_n and_o ceremony_n but_o this_o place_n and_o many_o other_o show_v that_o christ_n passion_n though_o it_o be_v of_o itself_o far_o more_o sufficient_a and_o forcible_a than_o the_o protestant_n in_o their_o baseness_n of_o understanding_n can_v consider_v yet_o profit_v none_o but_o such_o as_o both_o do_v his_o commandment_n and_o use_v such_o remedy_n and_o mean_n to_o apply_v the_o benefit_n thereof_o to_o themselves_o as_o he_o appoint_v in_o his_o word_n or_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o his_o church_n and_o the_o heretic_n that_o say_v faith_n only_o be_v the_o thing_n require_v to_o apply_v christ_n benefit_n unto_o we_o be_v hereby_o also_o easy_o refute_v for_o we_o do_v not_o obey_v he_o only_o by_o believe_v but_o by_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o command_v last_o we_o note_v in_o the_o same_o word_n that_o christ_n appoint_v not_o by_o his_o absolute_a and_o eternal_a election_n man_n so_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o redemption_n without_o any_o condition_n or_o respect_n of_o their_o own_o work_n obedience_n or_o free_a will_v but_o with_o this_o condition_n always_o if_o man_n will_v obey_v he_o and_o do_v that_o which_o he_o appoint_v see_v s._n augustine_n or_o prosper_n to_o 7_o respon_n prosperi_n li._n 2._o ârâiculo_fw-la 1_o ad_fw-la obiectiones_fw-la vincentij_fw-la where_o he_o say_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o christ_n
christ_n in_o so_o easy_a and_o perfect_a penance_n and_o cleanse_n of_o sin_n as_o that_o first_o sacrament_n of_o generation_n do_v yield_v which_o apply_v christ_n death_n in_o such_o ample_a manner_n to_o the_o receiver_n that_o it_o take_v away_o all_o pain_n due_a for_o sin_n before_o commit_v and_o therefore_o require_v no_o further_a penance_n afterward_o for_o the_o sin_n before_o commit_v all_o be_v wash_v away_o by_o the_o force_n of_o that_o sacrament_n due_o take_v s._n augustine_n call_v the_o remission_n in_o baptism_n magnam_fw-la indulgentiam_fw-la a_o great_a pardon_n enchirid._n c._n 64._o the_o apostle_n therefore_o warn_v they_o whatsoever_o that_o if_o they_o fall_v from_o their_o faith_n and_o from_o christ_n grace_n and_o la_o which_o they_o once_o receive_v in_o their_o baptism_n they_o may_v not_o look_v to_o have_v any_o more_o that_o first_o great_a and_o large_a remedy_n apply_v unto_o they_o nor_o no_o man_n else_o that_o sin_v after_o baptism_n 6._o though_o the_o other_o penance_n which_o be_v call_v the_o second_o table_n after_o shipwreck_n which_o be_v a_o more_o painful_a medicine_n for_o sin_n then_o baptism_n require_v much_o fast_n pray_v and_o other_o affliction_n corporal_a be_v open_v not_o only_o to_o other_o sinner_n but_o to_o all_o once_o baptize_v heretic_n or_o oppugner_n of_o the_o truth_n malicious_o and_o of_o purpose_n or_o what_o way_n so_o ever_o during_o this_o life_n see_v s._n cypriah_n ep_v 52._o s._n ambrose_n upon_o this_o place_n s._n augustine_n cont_n ep_v parm._n li._n 2._o c._n 13._o and_o ep_v 50._o s._n damascene_fw-la li._n 4._o c._n 10._o 10._o god_n be_v not_o unjust_a work_n it_o be_v a_o world_n to_o see_v what_o wring_v &_o writhe_v the_o protestant_n make_v to_o shift_v themselves_o from_o the_o evidence_n of_o these_o word_n which_o make_v it_o most_o clear_a to_o all_o not_o blind_v in_o pride_n and_o contention_n that_o good_a work_n be_v moritorious_a and_o the_o very_a cause_n of_o salvation_n so_o far_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v unjust_a if_o he_o render_v not_o heaven_n for_o the_o same_o revera_fw-la grandis_fw-la iniustitia_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v s._n hierom_n si_fw-la tantùm_fw-la peocata_fw-la puniret_fw-la &_o bona_fw-la opera_fw-la non_fw-la susciperet_fw-la that_o be_v in_o deed_n great_a be_v god_n injustice_n â_o if_o he_o will_v only_o punish_v sin_n and_o will_v not_o receive_v good_a work_n li._n 2._o cont_n jovin_n c._n 2._o chap._n vii_o to_o prove_v the_o priesthood_n of_o christ_n incomparable_o to_o excel_v the_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n and_o therefore_o that_o levitical_a priesthood_n now_o to_o cease_v and_o that_o la_o also_o with_o it_o he_o scan_v every_o word_n of_o the_o verse_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o psalm_n our_o lord_n have_v swear_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n verse_n 1_o for_o this_o â³_o melchisedec_n the_o king_n of_o salem_n priest_n of_o the_o god_n most_o high_a 18._o *_o who_o meet_v abraham_n return_v from_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o king_n and_o bless_v he_o â_o verse_n 2_o to_o who_o also_o abraham_n divide_v tithe_n of_o all_o first_o in_o deed_n by_o interpretation_n see_v the_o king_n of_o justice_n &_o then_o also_o king_n of_o salem_n which_o be_v to_o say_v king_n of_o peace_n â_o verse_n 3_o â³_o without_o father_n without_o mother_n without_o genealogy_n have_v neither_o beginning_n of_o day_n nor_o end_n of_o life_n but_o liken_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n continue_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o â³_o behold_v how_o great_a this_o man_n be_v to_o who_o also_o abraham_n the_o patriarch_n give_v â³_o tithe_n of_o the_o principal_a thing_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o certes_o *_o they_o of_o the_o son_n of_o levi_n that_o take_v the_o priesthood_n 4._o have_v commandment_n to_o take_v tithe_n of_o the_o people_n according_a to_o the_o law_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o their_o brethren_n albeit_o themselves_o also_o issue_v out_o of_o the_o loin_n of_o abraham_n â_o verse_n 6_o but_o he_o who_o generation_n be_v not_o number_v among_o they_o take_v tithe_n of_o abraham_n and_o bless_v he_o that_o have_v the_o promise_n â_o verse_n 7_o but_o without_o all_o contradiction_n that_o which_o be_v less_o â³_o be_v bless_a of_o the_o better_a â_o verse_n 8_o and_o here_o in_o deed_n ever_o man_n that_o die_v receive_v tithe_n but_o there_o he_o have_v witness_v that_o he_o live_v â_o verse_n 9_o and_o that_o it_o may_v so_o be_v say_v by_o abraham_n levi_n also_o which_o receive_v tithe_n be_v tithe_v â_o verse_n 10_o for_o as_o yet_o he_o be_v in_o his_o father_n loin_n when_o melchisedec_n meet_v he_o â_o verse_n 11_o if_o then_o consummation_n be_v by_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n for_o under_o it_o the_o people_n receive_v the_o law_n â³_o what_o necessity_n be_v there_o yet_o a_o other_o priest_n to_o rise_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n and_o not_o to_o be_v call_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n â_o verse_n 12_o for_o the_o priesthood_n be_v â³_o translate_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o translation_n of_o the_o law_n also_o be_v make_v â_o verse_n 13_o for_o he_o on_o who_o these_o thing_n be_v say_v be_v of_o a_o other_o tribe_n of_o the_o which_o none_o attend_v on_o the_o altar_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o our_o lord_n spring_v of_o juda_n in_o the_o which_o tribe_n moses_n speak_v nothing_o of_o priesthood_n priest_n '_o â_o verse_n 15_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v much_o more_o evident_a if_o according_a to_o the_o similitude_n of_o melchisedec_n there_o arise_v a_o other_o priest_n â_o verse_n 16_o which_o be_v not_o make_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o carnal_a commandment_n but_o according_a to_o the_o power_n of_o life_n indissoluble_a â_o verse_n 17_o for_o he_o witness_v that_o thou_o be_v â³_o a_o priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n 4._o â_o verse_n 18_o reprobation_n certes_o be_v make_v â³_o of_o the_o former_a commandment_n because_o of_o the_o weakness_n and_o unprofitablenesse_n thereof_o â_o verse_n 19_o for_o the_o law_n bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n but_o a_o introduction_n of_o a_o better_a hope_n by_o the_o which_o we_o approach_v to_o god_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v not_o without_o a_o oath_n the_o other_o true_o without_o a_o oath_n be_v make_v priest_n 4._o â_o verse_n 21_o but_o this_o â³_o with_o a_o oath_n by_o he_o that_o say_v unto_o he_o our_o lord_n have_v swear_v and_o it_o shall_v not_o repent_v he_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o â_o verse_n 22_o by_o so_o much_o be_v jesus_n make_v a_o surety_n of_o a_o better_a testament_n â_o verse_n 23_o and_o the_o other_o in_o deed_n be_v make_v priest_n bishop_n â³_o be_v many_o because_o that_o by_o death_n they_o be_v prohibit_v to_o continue_v â_o verse_n 24_o but_o this_o for_o that_o he_o continue_v for_o ever_o have_v a_o everlasting_a priesthood_n â_o verse_n 25_o whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o save_v also_o for_o ever_o go_v go_v '_o by_o himself_o to_o god_n father_n always_o live_v to_o make_v intercession_n for_o us._n â_o verse_n 26_o for_o it_o be_v seemly_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v such_o a_o high_a priest_n holy_a innocent_a impolluted_a separate_v from_o sinner_n and_o make_v high_a than_o the_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 27_o which_o have_v not_o necessity_n daily_o as_o the_o priest_n first_o *_o for_o his_o own_o sin_n to_o offer_v host_n 6._o then_o for_o the_o people_n for_o â³_o this_o he_o do_v once_o in_o offer_v himself_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 28_o for_o the_o law_n appoint_v priest_n they_o that_o have_v infirmity_n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n which_o be_v after_o the_o law_n the_o son_n for_o ever_o perfect_v annotation_n chap._n vii_o 1._o melchisedeâ_n the_o excellency_n of_o this_o person_n be_v so_o great_a that_o some_o of_o the_o antiquity_n take_v he_o to_o be_v a_o angel_n and_o some_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o opinion_n not_o only_o the_o hebrews_n that_o avouch_v he_o to_o be_v sem_fw-mi the_o son_n of_o noë_n but_o also_o the_o chief_a father_n of_o the_o christian_n do_v condemn_v not_o doubt_v but_o he_o be_v a_o mere_a man_n and_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o king_n whosoever_o he_o be_v for_o else_o he_o can_v not_o in_o office_n and_o order_n and_o sacrifice_n have_v be_v so_o perfect_a a_o type_n and_o resemblance_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o in_o this_o chapter_n and_o other_o be_v show_v 3._o without_o father_n point_n not_o that_o he_o be_v without_o father_n and_o mother_n say_v s._n hierom_n ep_v 126_o for_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o without_o father_n according_a to_o his_o divinity_n not_o without_o mother_n in_o
he_o have_v now_o give_v and_o of_o the_o blood_n which_o he_o have_v shed_v in_o illis_fw-la praenuntiabarut_fw-fr occidendus_fw-la in_fw-la hoc_fw-la annuntiatur_fw-la occisus_fw-la in_o they_o he_o be_v forshew_v as_o to_o be_v kill_v in_o these_o he_o be_v show_v as_o kill_v and_o s._n gregory_n naziaââââ_n say_v oral_n in_o morbum_fw-la that_o the_o priest_n in_o this_o sacrifice_n immiscet_fw-la se_fw-la magnis_fw-la chrisi_n passionibus_fw-la s._n ambrose_n li._n 1._o offic._n c._n 48._o offertur_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o imagine_v quasi_fw-la recipiens_fw-la passionem_fw-la alexander_n the_o first_o ep_v ãâã_d orthodox_n nu_fw-la 4._o ãâã_d 1._o conc._n cvius_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la conficitur_fw-la passio_fw-la etiam_fw-la celebratur_fw-la s._n gregory_n ho._n 37_o in_o euang._n so_o often_o as_o we_o offer_v the_o host_n of_o his_o passion_n so_o often_o we_o remowe_v his_o passion_n and_o he_o suffete_v for_o we_o again_o in_o mystery_n and_o isychius_n li._n 26._o â_o in_o levit._fw-la post_fw-la mâd_fw-la by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o onely-begotten_a many_o thing_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o to_o wit_n the_o remission_n or_o pardon_v of_o all_o mankind_n and_o the_o singular_a introduction_n or_o bring_v in_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o say_a father_n and_o other_o altar_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n and_o oblation_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o on_o the_o cross_n hebr._n call_v this_o the_o unblouddy_a sacrifice_n as_o *_o caluin_n himself_o confess_v but_o answer_v they_o in_o the_o pride_n of_o heretical_a spirit_n with_o these_o word_n nihil_fw-la moror_fw-la quòd_fw-la siâ_n loquantur_fw-la uttusti_fw-la scriptores_fw-la that_o be_v i_o pass_v not_o for_o it_o that_o the_o ancient_a writer_n do_v so_o speak_v call_v the_o distinction_n of_o bloody_a and_o unblouddy_a sacrifice_n father_n scholastical_a and_o frivolous_a and_o diabolicum_fw-la commentââm_fw-la a_o devilish_a devise_n with_o such_o ignorant_a and_o blasphemous_a man_n we_o have_v to_o do_v that_o think_v they_o understand_v the_o scripture_n better_o than_o all_o the_o father_n chap._n x._o because_o in_o the_o yearly_a feast_n of_o expiation_n be_v only_o a_o commoration_n of_o sin_n therefore_o in_o place_n of_o all_o those_o old_a sacrifice_n the_o psalm_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o oblation_n of_o christ_n body_n 10_o which_o he_o offer_v blouddy_o but_o once_o the_o levitical_a priest_n offer_v so_o every_o day_n because_o that_o once_o be_v sufficient_a for_o ever_o 15_o in_o that_o it_o purchase_v as_o the_o prophet_n also_o witness_v remission_n of_o sin_n 19_o after_o all_o this_o he_o prosecute_v and_o exhort_v they_o unto_o persevirance_n partly_o with_o the_o open_n of_o heaven_n by_o our_o highpriest_n 26_o partly_o with_o the_o terror_n of_o damnation_n if_o they_o fall_v again_o 32_o bid_v they_o remember_v how_o much_o they_o have_v suffer_v already_o and_o not_o lose_v their_o reward_n verse_n 1_o for_o the_o la_o have_v â³_o a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v 14._o not_o the_o very_a image_n of_o the_o thing_n every_o year_n with_o the_o self_n same_o host_n which_o they_o offer_v incessant_o can_v never_o make_v the_o comer_n thereto_o perfect_a â_o verse_n 2_o otherwise_o â³_o they_o shall_v have_v cease_v to_o be_v offer_v because_o the_o worshipper_n once_o cleanse_v shall_v have_v no_o conscience_n of_o sin_n any_o long_o â_o verse_n 3_o but_o in_o they_o there_o be_v make_v a_o commemotation_n of_o sin_n every_o year_n â_o verse_n 4_o for_o it_o be_v â³_o impossible_a that_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o ox_n and_o goat_n sin_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o 7._o â_o verse_n 5_o therefore_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o say_v â³_o host_n and_o oblation_n thou_o will_v not_o â³_o but_o a_o body_n thou_o have_v fit_v to_o i_o â_o verse_n 6_o holocaustes_n and_o 2d_o for_o sin_n do_v not_o please_v thou_o â_o verse_n 7_o then_o say_v i_o behold_v i_o come_v in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o book_n it_o be_v write_v of_o i_o that_o i_o may_v do_v thy_o will_v o_o god_n â_o verse_n 8_o say_v before_o because_o host_n and_o oblation_n &_o holocauste_n &_o for_o sin_n thou_o will_v not_o â³_o neither_o do_v they_o please_v thou_o which_o be_v offer_v according_a to_o the_o la_o â_o verse_n 9_o then_o say_v i_o behold_v i_o come_v that_o i_o may_v do_v thy_o will_v o_o god_n he_o take_v away_o the_o first_o that_o he_o may_v establish_v that_o that_o follow_v â_o verse_n 10_o in_o the_o which_o will_v we_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o â_o verse_n 11_o and_o every_o priest_n in_o deed_n be_v ready_a daily_a minister_a and_o â³_o often_o offer_v the_o same_o host_n 109._o which_o can_v never_o take_v away_o sin_n â_o verse_n 12_o but_o this_o man_n offer_v one_o host_n for_o sin_n 25._o for_o ever_o *_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 13_o hence_o forth_o expect_v until_o his_o enemy_n be_v put_v the_o footstool_n of_o his_o foot_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o by_o one_o oblation_n have_v he_o consummate_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v â_o verse_n 15_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o do_v testify_v to_o us._n for_o after_o that_o he_o say_v 34._o â_o verse_n 16_o and_o this_o be_v the_o testament_n which_o i_o will_v make_v to_o they_o after_o those_o day_n 8._o say_v our_o lord_n give_v law_n heaven_n in_o their_o heart_n &_o in_o their_o mind_n will_v i_o superscribe_v they_o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o their_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n i_o will_v now_o remember_v no_o more_o â_o verse_n 18_o but_o where_o there_o be_v remission_n of_o these_o â³_o now_o there_o be_v not_o a_o oblation_n for_o sin_n â_o verse_n 19_o have_v therefore_o brethren_n confidence_n in_o the_o enter_v of_o he_o holies_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n â_o verse_n 20_o which_o he_o have_v dedicate_v to_o we_o a_o new_a and_o live_a way_n by_o the_o vele_n that_o be_v his_o flesh_n ãâã_d heaven_n â_o verse_n 21_o and_o a_o high_a priest_n over_o the_o house_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 22_o let_v we_o approach_v with_o a_o true_a hart_n in_o fullness_n of_o faith_n have_v our_o heart_n sprinkle_v from_o evil_a consciencel_n and_o our_o body_n wash_v with_o clean_a water_n â_o verse_n 23_o let_v we_o hold_v the_o confession_n of_o our_o hope_n undecline_v for_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v â_o verse_n 24_o and_o let_v we_o consider_v one_o a_o other_o unto_o the_o provocation_n of_o charity_n and_o of_o good_a work_n â_o verse_n 25_o not_o forsake_v our_o assembly_n as_o some_o be_v accustom_v but_o comfort_v and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o you_o see_v the_o day_n approach_v 4_o â_o verse_n 26_o *_o for_o â³_o if_o we_o sin_v willing_o after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n receive_v now_o there_o be_v not_o leave_v a_o host_n for_o sin_n â_o verse_n 27_o but_o a_o certain_a terrible_a expectation_n of_o judgement_n and_o rage_n of_o fire_n which_o shall_v consume_v the_o adversary_n â_o verse_n 28_o a_o man_n make_v the_o la_o of_o moses_n frustrate_a 17._o without_o any_o mercy_n *_o die_v under_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n â_o verse_n 29_o death_n how_o much_o more_o think_v you_o do_v he_o deserve_v worse_a punishement_n which_o have_v tread_v the_o son_n of_o god_n under_o foot_n and_o esteem_v â³_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o testament_n pollute_v wherein_o he_o be_v sanctify_v and_o have_v do_v contumely_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n â_o verse_n 30_o for_o we_o know_v he_o that_o say_v 19_o revenge_n to_o i_o i_o will_v repay_v and_o again_o that_o our_o lord_n will_v judge_v his_o people_n â_o verse_n 31_o â³_o it_o be_v horrible_a to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_a god_n 14._o â_o verse_n 32_o but_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o old_a day_n martyr_n wherein_o be_v illuminate_v you_o sustain_v a_o great_a fight_n of_o passion_n â_o verse_n 33_o and_o on_o the_o one_o part_n certes_o by_o reproach_n and_o tribulation_n make_v a_o spectacle_n and_o on_o the_o other_o part_n make_v companion_n of_o they_o that_o converse_v in_o such_o sort_n â_o verse_n 34_o for_o â³_o you_o both_o have_v compassion_n on_o they_o that_o be_v in_o bond_n and_o the_o spoil_n of_o your_o own_o good_n you_o take_v â³_o with_o joy_n know_v that_o you_o have_v a_o better_a and_o a_o permanent_a substance_n â_o verse_n 35_o do_v not_o therefore_o lose_v your_o reward_n confidence_n which_o have_v a_o great_a remuneration_n â_o verse_n 36_o for_o patience_n be_v necessary_a for_o you_o 12._o that_o do_v the_o will_v of_o god_n you_o may_v receive_v the_o promise_n â_o verse_n 37_o for_o *_o yet_o a_o little_a and_o a_o very_a little_a
hide_v three_o month_n by_o his_o parent_n because_o they_o see_v he_o a_o proper_a infant_n and_o they_o fear_v not_o *_o the_o king_n edict_n 16._o â_o verse_n 24_o *_o by_o faith_n 11_o moses_n be_v make_v great_a deny_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o pharaos_n daughter_n â_o verse_n 25_o rather_o choose_v to_o be_v afflict_v with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n then_o to_o have_v the_o pleasure_n of_o temporal_a sin_n â_o verse_n 26_o esteem_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n great_a riches_n than_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o egyptian_n for_o confute_v he_o look_v unto_o the_o remuneration_n 37._o â_o verse_n 27_o *_o by_o faith_n he_o leave_v egypt_n not_o fear_v the_o fierceness_n of_o the_o king_n for_o he_o that_o be_v invisible_a he_o sustain_v as_o if_o he_o have_v see_v he_o â_o verse_n 28_o by_o faith_n he_o celebrate_v the_o pasche_n &_o the_o shed_n of_o the_o blood_n that_o he_o which_o destroy_v the_o firstborn_a 22._o may_v not_o touch_v they_o â_o verse_n 29_o *_o by_o faith_n they_o pass_v the_o red_a sea_n as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o dry_a land_n which_o the_o egyptian_n assay_v be_v devour_v â_o verse_n 30_o *_o by_o faith_n the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n fall_v down_o 10_o by_o the_o circute_n of_o seven_o day_n â_o verse_n 31_o *_o by_o faith_n 3._o rahab_n the_o harlot_n perish_v not_o with_o the_o incredulous_a receive_v the_o spy_n with_o peace_n â_o verse_n 32_o and_o what_o shall_v i_o yet_o say_v for_o the_o time_n will_v fail_v i_o tell_v of_o gedeon_n barac_n samson_n jephtè_n david_n samuël_n &_o the_o prophet_n martyr_n â_o verse_n 33_o who_o by_o faith_n overcome_v kingdom_n â³_o wrought_v justice_n obtain_v promise_n stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o lion_n â_o verse_n 34_o extinguish_v the_o force_n of_o fire_n repel_v the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword_n recover_v of_o their_o infirmity_n be_v make_v strong_a in_o battle_n turn_v away_o the_o camp_n of_o forainer_n â_o verse_n 35_o woman_n receive_v of_o resurrection_n their_o dead_a and_o other_o be_v rack_v not_o accept_v redemption_n that_o they_o may_v find_v a_o better_a resurrection_n â_o verse_n 36_o and_o other_o have_v trial_n of_o mockery_n and_o stripe_n moreover_o also_o of_o band_n &_o prison_n â_o verse_n 37_o they_o be_v stone_v they_o be_v hew_v they_o be_v tempt_v they_o die_v in_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o sword_n they_o go_v about_o in_o sheep-skinne_n in_o goat_n skin_n needy_a in_o distress_n afflict_v â_o verse_n 38_o of_o who_o the_o world_n be_v not_o worthy_a wander_v in_o desert_n in_o mountain_n and_o den_n and_o in_o cave_n of_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 39_o and_o all_o these_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o faith_n â¢_o receive_v not_o the_o promise_n â_o verse_n 40_o god_n for_o we_o provide_v some_o better_a thing_n that_o they_o without_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v consummate_a annotation_n chap._n xi_o 1._o faith_n be_v by_o this_o description_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o all_o the_o commendation_n thereof_o through_o the_o whole_a chapter_n faith_n you_o may_v well_o perceive_v that_o the_o apostle_n know_v not_o the_o forge_a special_a faith_n of_o the_o protestant_n whereby_o every_o one_o of_o these_o new_a sectmaster_n &_o their_o follower_n believe_v their_o sin_n be_v remit_v and_o that_o themselves_o shall_v be_v save_v though_o their_o sect_n be_v clean_o contrary_a one_o to_o a_o other_o â_o not_o appear_v this_n be_v the_o praise_n of_o faith_n say_v s._n augustine_n if_o that_o which_o be_v believe_v be_v not_o see_v sacrament_n for_o what_o great_a thing_n be_v it_o if_o that_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v see_v according_a to_o that_o sentence_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o he_o rebuke_v his_o disciple_n say_v because_o than_o have_v see_v i_o thomas_n thou_o have_v believe_v bless_v be_v they_o that_o have_v not_o see_v and_o have_v believe_v aug._n in_o evang_v io._n tract_n 79._o which_o may_v be_v a_o rebuke_n also_o and_o a_o check_n to_o all_o those_o faithless_a speech_n i_o will_v see_v he_o taste_v he_o touch_v he_o and_o feel_v his_o very_a flesh_n in_o the_o sacrament_n otherwise_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v 6._o he_o that_o come_v faith_n faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o ground_n of_o all_o other_o virtue_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v please_v god_n therefore_o if_o one_o be_v a_o jew_n a_o heathen_a or_o a_o heretic_n that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v without_o the_o catholic_a faith_n all_o his_o work_n shall_v profit_v he_o no_o whit_n to_o salvation_n 21._o adore_v the_o top_n of_o his_o rod._n septuaginta_fw-la the_o learned_a may_v see_v here_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o tie_v himself_o to_o the_o hebrew_n in_o the_o place_n of_o genesis_n whence_o it_o be_v allege_v 31._o but_o follow_v the_o septuaginta_fw-la though_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o hebrew_n as_o also_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o our_o saviour_n himself_o do_v neither_o be_v they_o curious_a as_o man_n now_o a_o day_n to_o examine_v all_o by_o the_o hebrew_n only_a because_o they_o writing_n and_o speak_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n know_v very_o well_o that_o this_o translation_n 14._o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o and_o as_o true_a and_o as_o direct_o intend_v as_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o also_o that_o translation_n continue_v always_o authentical_a in_o the_o greek_a church_n notwithstanding_o the_o diversity_n thereof_o from_o the_o hebrew_n translation_n even_o so_o we_o that_o be_v catholic_n follow_v with_o all_o the_o latin_a father_n the_o authentical_a latin_a translation_n though_o it_o be_v not_o always_o agreeable_a to_o the_o hebrew_n or_o greek_n that_o now_o be_v but_o caluin_n be_v not_o only_o very_o saucy_a but_o very_o ignorant_a when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la be_v deceive_v rod._n and_o yet_o that_o the_o apostle_n without_o curiosity_n be_v content_a to_o follow_v they_o because_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o ãâã_d the_o hebrew_n be_v they_o without_o point_n bed_n may_v be_v translate_v the_o one_o way_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o which_o they_o understand_v so_o well_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o deceive_v that_o within_o three_o line_n after_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o chapter_n they_o translate_v the_o same_o word_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o in_o this_o place_n again_o observe_v in_o those_o word_n he_o adore_v the_o top_n of_o his_o rod_n that_o adoration_n as_o the_o scripture_n use_v this_o word_n may_v be_v do_v to_o creature_n thing_n or_o to_o god_n at_o and_o before_o a_o creature_n as_o at_o or_o 6._o before_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o testament_n in_o old_a time_n now_o at_o or_o before_o the_o crucifix_n relic_n image_n and_o in_o the_o psalm_n 93._o 131._o adore_v you_o his_o footstool_n adore_v you_o towards_o his_o holy_a mount_n we_o will_v adore_v towards_o the_o place_n where_o his_o foot_n stand_v or_o which_o by_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n be_v all_o one_o adore_v you_o his_o holy_a mount_n we_o will_v adore_v the_o place_n where_o his_o foot_n stand_v as_o also_o collect_v the_o greek_a father_n s_n damascene_fw-la li._n 1_o de_fw-la imaginibus_fw-la and_o leontius_n cite_v of_o he_o yea_o s._n chrysostom_n also_o do_v handle_v these_o place_n and_o namely_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n which_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o interpret_n the_o greek_a as_o our_o latin_a have_v and_o as_o we_o do_v he_o adore_v the_o rod_n or_o the_o top_n of_o his_o rod_n that_o be_v the_o sceptre_n of_o joseph_n now_o prince_n of_o egypt_n so_o fulfil_v joseph_n dream_n which_o foretell_v the_o same_o gen._n 37_o and_o withal_o signify_v as_o it_o be_v by_o this_o prophetical_a fact_n 12._o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n or_o of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n that_o be_v to_o come_v of_o joseph_n by_o ephraim_n his_o young_a son_n in_o the_o first_o king_n jeroboam_fw-la thus_o the_o greek_a father_n where_o unto_o may_v be_v add_v that_o all_o this_o be_v do_v in_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o christ_n sceptre_n and_o kingdom_n who_o he_o adore_v by_o and_o in_o his_o cross_n as_o he_o do_v joseph_n by_o or_o in_o his_o rod_n and_o sceptre_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o do_v it_o by_o faith_n dulia_n as_o have_v respect_n towards_o thing_n to_o come_v by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o it_o be_v false_a which_o the_o caluânists_n teach_v that_o we_o may_v not_o adore_v image_n crucifix_n or_o any_o visible_a creature_n that_o be_v we_o may_v not_o adore_v god_n at_o or_o by_o such_o creature_n nor_o kneel_v before_o they_o and_o therefore_o their_o corrupt_a translation_n of_o this_o place_n for_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v intolerable_a say_v thus_o lean_v upon_o his_o staff_n he_o adore_v god_n add_v no_o less_o than_o
in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o be_v chastise_v for_o their_o fault_n in_o the_o next_o life_n be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n descend_v thither_o and_o not_o they_o only_a but_o all_o other_o in_o the_o like_a condition_n for_o the_o apostle_n give_v these_o of_o noes_n time_n but_o for_o a_o example_n 21._o of_o the_o like_a form_n the_o water_n bear_v up_o the_o ark_n from_o sink_v and_o the_o person_n in_o it_o from_o drown_v baptism_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o baptism_n that_o likewise_o save_v the_o worthy_a receiver_n from_o everlasting_a perish_v as_o ne_n say_v s._n augustine_n with_o he_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o water_n and_o the_o wood_n so_o the_o family_n of_o christ_n by_o baptism_n sign_v with_o christ_n passion_n on_o the_o cross_n li._n 12._o cont._n faustum_n c._n 14._o 17._o again_o he_o say_v that_o as_o the_o water_n save_v none_o out_o of_o the_o ark_n but_o be_v rather_o their_o destruction_n so_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n receive_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n at_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n hand_n though_o it_o be_v the_o same_o water_n and_o sacrament_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v not_o yet_o profit_v none_o to_o salvation_n but_o rather_o work_v their_o perdition_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o mean_v in_o case_n of_o extreme_a necessity_n when_o the_o party_n shall_v die_v without_o the_o say_a sacrament_n except_o he_o take_v it_o at_o a_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n hand_n neither_o be_v it_o mean_v in_o the_o case_n of_o infant_n to_o who_o the_o sacrament_n be_v cause_n of_o salvation_n they_o be_v in_o no_o fault_n for_o receive_v it_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o unfaithful_a though_o their_o parent_n and_o friend_n that_o offer_v they_o unto_o such_o to_o be_v baptize_v be_v in_o no_o small_a fault_n s._n hierom_n to_o damasus_n pope_n of_o rome_n compare_v that_o see_v to_o the_o ark_n &_o they_o that_o communicate_v with_o it_o 57_o to_o they_o that_o be_v save_v in_o the_o ark_n all_o other_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n to_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v drown_v 21._o the_o examination_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n etc._n the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o allude_v here_o to_o the_o very_a form_n of_o catholic_a baptism_n concein_v certain_a interrogatory_n and_o solemn_a promise_n make_v of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o of_o good_a life_n and_o of_o renounce_v satan_n and_o all_o his_o pomp_n and_o work_n which_o no_o doubt_n howsoever_o the_o caluinists_n esteem_n of_o they_o be_v the_o very_a apostolic_a ceremony_n use_v in_o the_o ministration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n see_v s._n denys_n in_o fine_a ec._n hierarchia_fw-la s._n cyril_n li._n 12_o in_o ãâã_d c._n 64._o s._n augustine_n ep_v 23._o s._n basil_n de_fw-fr sp._n sancto_fw-la c._n 12_o and_o 15._o s._n ambrose_n de_fw-fr ijs_fw-la qui_fw-la mysterijs_fw-la initiantur_fw-la 6._o 2._o 3._o 4._o chap._n four_o that_o they_o arm_v themselves_o to_o sin_n no_o more_o after_o baptism_n against_o the_o tentation_n of_o the_o heathen_a consider_v that_o the_o general_a and_o now_o approach_v 8_o special_o towards_o their_o even-christians_a to_o show_v their_o charity_n hospitality_n and_o grace_n do_v all_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 1â_n and_o as_o for_o be_v persecute_v because_o they_o be_v christian_n to_o rejoice_v consider_v the_o reward_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v with_o christ_n and_o damnation_n that_o they_o avoid_v thereby_o verse_n 1_o christ_n therefore_o have_v suffer_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v you_o also_o arm_v with_o the_o same_o cogitation_n because_o he_o that_o have_v suffer_v in_o the_o flesh_n have_v cease_v from_o sin_n â_o verse_n two_o that_o now_o not_o after_o the_o desire_n of_o man_n but_o according_a to_o the_o will_v of_o god_n he_o live_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n in_o the_o flesh_n â_o verse_n 3_o for_o the_o time_n past_a suffice_v to_o accomplish_v the_o will_v of_o the_o gentile_n they_o that_o have_v walk_v in_o riotousness_n desire_n excess_n of_o wine_n banketing_n poration_n and_o unlawful_a service_n of_o idol_n â_o verse_n 4_o wherein_o they_o marvel_v blaspheme_v you_o not_o concur_v into_o the_o same_o confusion_n of_o riotousness_n â_o verse_n 5_o who_o shall_v render_v account_n to_o he_o which_o be_v ready_a to_o judge_v the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a â_o verse_n 6_o for_o for_o this_o cause_n also_o be_v place_n it_o evangelize_v to_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v judge_v in_o deed_n according_a to_o man_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o may_v live_v according_a to_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o the_o end_n of_o all_o hand_n âshal_n approach_v '_o â_o be_v wise_a therefore_o and_o watch_n in_o prayer_n ascension_n â_o verse_n 8_o but_o before_o all_o thing_n 10_o have_v mutual_a charity_n continual_a among_o yourselves_o because_o *_o â_o charity_n cover_v the_o multitude_n of_o sin_n 12_o â_o verse_n 9_o *_o use_v hospitality_n one_o towards_o a_o other_o without_o murmur_v 13._o â_o verse_n 10_o *_o every_o one_o as_o he_o have_v receive_v grace_n 6._o minister_a the_o same_o one_o towards_o a_o other_o as_o good_a dispenser_n of_o the_o manifold_a grace_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 11_o if_o any_o man_n speak_v as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o any_o man_n minister_v as_o of_o the_o power_n which_o god_n administer_v that_o in_o all_o thing_n god_n may_v be_v honour_v by_o jesus_n christ_n â¢_o to_o who_o be_v glory_n and_o empire_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n â_o verse_n 12_o my_o dear_a think_v it_o not_o strange_a in_o the_o fervour_n which_o be_v to_o you_o for_o a_o tentation_n as_o though_o some_o new_a thing_n happen_v to_o you_o martyr_n â_o verse_n 13_o but_o communicate_v with_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v glad_a that_o in_o the_o revelation_n also_o of_o his_o glory_n you_o may_v be_v glad_a rejoice_v 11._o â_o verse_n 14_o *_o if_o you_o be_v revile_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n you_o shall_v be_v bless_v because_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o honour_n glory_n and_o virtue_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v he_o shall_v rest_v upon_o you_o â_o verse_n 15_o but_o let_v none_o of_o you_o suffer_v as_o a_o murderer_n or_o a_o thief_n or_o a_o railer_n or_o a_o coveter_n of_o other_o man_n thing_n â_o verse_n 16_o but_o if_o as_o a_o christian_a let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a but_o let_v he_o glorify_v god_n in_o this_o name_n 29._o â_o verse_n 17_o for_o *_o the_n time_n be_v â_o that_o judgement_n begin_v of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o if_o first_o of_o we_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o *_o â_o if_o the_o just_a man_n shall_v scarce_o be_v save_v 31._o where_o shall_v the_o impious_a and_o sinner_n appear_v â_o verse_n 19_o therefore_o they_o also_o that_o suffer_v according_a to_o the_o will_v of_o god_n let_v they_o commend_v their_o soul_n to_o the_o faithful_a creator_n in_o good_a deed_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n four_o 9_o charity_n cover_v i'faith_o only_o can_v justify_v faith_n see_v that_o charity_n also_o do_v cause_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o say_v charity_n he_o mean_v love_n and_o charitable_a work_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n mercy_n unto_o which_o work_n of_o mercy_n the_o scripture_n do_v special_o attribute_v the_o force_n to_o extinguish_v all_o sin_n see_v s._n augustine_n c._n 69_o eâchiridij_fw-la and_o tract_n 1._o in_o ep_n 1._o io._n â_o 1._o and_o venerable_a bede_n upon_o this_o place_n and_o in_o the_o like_a sense_n the_o holy_a scripture_n common_o commend_v unto_o we_o alm_n and_o deed_n of_o mercy_n for_o redemption_n of_o our_o sin_n proverb_n c._n 10._o ecclesiastici_fw-la 12._o v._n 2._o danielis_fw-la â_o 4._o v._n 24._o 17._o that_o judgement_n begin_v in_o this_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n life_n the_o faithful_a and_o all_o those_o that_o mean_v to_o live_v godly_a special_o of_o the_o clergy_n must_v first_o and_o principal_o be_v subject_a to_o god_n chastisement_n and_o temporal_a affliction_n which_o be_v here_o call_v judgement_n which_o the_o apostle_n record_v for_o the_o comfort_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o catholic_a christian_n who_o be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o writing_n hereof_o exceed_o persecute_v by_o the_o heathen_a prince_n &_o people_n 18._o if_o the_o just_a not_o that_o a_o man_n die_v just_a and_o in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n save_v can_v afterward_o be_v in_o doubt_n of_o his_o salvation_n or_o may_v be_v reject_v of_o god_n but_o that_o the_o just_a be_v both_o in_o this_o life_n subject_a to_o assault_n tentation_n trouble_n and_z danger_n of_o fall_v from_o god_n and_o lose_v their_o state_n of_o justice_n &_o also_o oftentimes_o to_o make_v a_o straight_a count_n &_o to_o
my_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o have_v please_v myself_o hear_v he_o â_o verse_n 18_o and_o this_o voice_n we_o hear_v bring_v from_o heaven_n when_o we_o be_v with_o he_o in_o the_o 33._o holy_a mount_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o we_o have_v the_o prophetical_a word_n more_o sure_a which_o you_o do_v well_o attend_v unto_o as_o to_o a_o candle_n shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n until_o the_o day_n dawn_n and_o the_o day_n star_n arise_v in_o your_o heart_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 20_o understanding_n this_o first_o that_o no_o prophecy_n of_o scripture_n be_v make_v by_o â_o private_a interpretation_n 17._o â_o verse_n 21_o for_o *_o not_o by_o man_n will_v be_v prophesy_v bring_v at_o any_o time_n but_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v inspire_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n annotation_n chap._n i._n 10._o by_o good_a work_n here_o we_o see_v that_o god_n eternal_a predestination_n and_o election_n consist_v with_o good_a work_n thereof_o yea_o that_o the_o certainty_n and_o effect_n thereof_o be_v procure_v by_o man_n free_a will_n and_o good_a work_n and_o that_o our_o well_o do_v be_v a_o mean_a for_o we_o to_o attain_v to_o the_o effect_n of_o god_n predestination_n that_o be_v to_o life_n everlasting_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o desperate_a folly_n and_o a_o great_a sign_n of_o reprobate_a person_n to_o say_v if_o i_o be_v predestinate_a do_v what_o i_o will_v i_o shall_v be_v save_v nay_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o thou_o hope_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o predestinate_a for_o know_v it_o thou_o can_v not_o do_v well_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v the_o more_o assure_v to_o attain_v to_o that_o thou_o hope_v or_o make_v it_o sure_a by_o good_a work_n the_o protestant_n in_o such_o case_n not_o much_o like_n these_o word_n by_o good_a work_n ãâã_d though_o the_o latin_a have_v it_o universal_o and_o some_o greek_a copy_n also_o as_o beza_n confess_v leave_v they_o out_o in_o their_o translation_n by_o their_o wont_a policy_n 15._o after_o my_o decease_n also_o these_o word_n though_o they_o may_v be_v easy_o alter_v by_o construction_n into_o diverse_a sense_n not_o untrue_a yet_o the_o correspondence_n of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n go_v before_o and_o follow_a translation_n give_v most_o plain_a this_o meaning_n that_o as_o during_o his_o life_n he_o will_v not_o omit_v to_o put_v they_o in_o memory_n of_o the_o thing_n he_o teach_v they_o so_o after_o his_o death_n which_o he_o know_v shall_v be_v short_o he_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o endeavour_n that_o they_o may_v be_v mindful_a of_o the_o same_o signify_v that_o his_o care_n over_o they_o shall_v not_o cease_v by_o death_n &_o that_o by_o his_o intercession_n before_o god_n after_o his_o departure_n he_o will_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n for_o they_o that_o he_o do_v before_o in_o his_o life_n by_o teach_v and_o preach_v gagn._n this_o be_v the_o sense_n that_o the_o *_o greek_a scholies_n speak_v of_o and_o this_o be_v most_o proper_a to_o the_o text_n and_o consonant_a to_o the_o old_a use_n of_o this_o apostle_n and_o other_o apostolic_a saint_n and_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n s._n clement_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o s._n james_n our_o lord_n brother_n witness_v that_o s._n peter_n encourage_v he_o to_o take_v after_o his_o decease_n the_o charge_n of_o the_o apostolic_a roman_a see_n death_n promise_v that_o after_o his_o departure_n he_o will_v not_o cease_v to_o pray_v for_o he_o &_o his_o flock_n thereby_o to_o ease_v he_o of_o his_o pastoral_a burden_n to._n 1_o council_n ep_v 1._o s._n clem._n in_o initio_fw-la and_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a one_o of_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o say_v see_v often_o attribute_v the_o good_a administration_n and_o government_n thereof_o to_o s._n peter_n prayer_n and_o assistance_n namely_o in_o these_o goodly_a work_n ser_n 3_o in_o anniver_n ãâã_d assumpt_n ad_fw-la pontif._n we_o be_v much_o bind_v say_v he_o to_o give_v thanks_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o redeemer_n jesus_n christ_n that_o have_v give_v so_o great_a power_n to_o he_o who_o he_o make_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o if_o in_o our_o time_n also_o any_o thing_n be_v do_v well_o &_o be_v right_o order_v by_o we_o it_o be_v to_o be_v impute_v to_o his_o work_n and_o his_o gevernement_n 21._o to_o who_o it_o be_v say_v and_o thou_o be_v convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n and_o to_o who_o our_o lord_n after_o his_o resurrection_n say_v thrice_o leede_v my_o sheep_n which_o now_o also_o without_o doubt_n the_o godly_a pastor_n do_v execute_v confirm_v we_o with_o his_o exhortation_n and_o not_o cease_v to_o pray_v for_o we_o that_o we_o be_v evercome_v with_o no_o tentation_n etc._n etc._n yea_o it_o be_v a_o common_a thing_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n among_o the_o ancient_a christian_n live_n and_o always_o since_o among_o the_o faithful_a to_o make_v covenant_n in_o their_o life_n time_n that_o whether_o of_o they_o go_v to_o heaven_n before_o the_o other_o he_o shall_v pray_v for_o his_o friend_n and_o fellow_n yet_o alive_a see_v the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o the_o holy_a virgin_n and_o martyr_n potamiaena_fw-la promise_v at_o the_o hour_n of_o her_o martyrdom_n that_o after_o her_o death_n she_o will_v procure_v mercy_n of_o god_n to_o basilides_n one_o of_o the_o soldier_n that_o lead_v she_o to_o execution_n and_o so_o she_o do_v euseb_n li._n 6._o c._n 4._o also_o s._n cyprian_n ep_v 57_o in_o fine_a let_v we_o say_v he_o pray_v mutual_o one_o for_o a_o other_o and_o whether_o of_o we_o two_o shall_v by_o god_n clemency_n be_v first_o call_v for_o let_v his_o love_n continue_v and_o his_o prayer_n not_o cease_v for_o his_o brethren_n and_o sister_n in_o the_o world_n so_o say_v this_o holy_a martyr_n at_o that_o time_n when_o christian_n be_v so_o far_o from_o caluinisme_n which_o abhor_v the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n &_o pray_v to_o they_o that_o to_o be_v sure_a they_o bargain_v before_o hand_n to_o have_v the_o martyr_n &_o other_o saint_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o the_o same_o s._n cyprian_n also_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr disciplina_fw-la &_o habitu_fw-la virginum_fw-la in_o fine_a after_o a_o godly_a exhortation_n make_v to_o the_o holy_a virgin_n or_o nonnes_n in_o his_o time_n speak_v thus_o unto_o they_o tantum_n tunc_fw-la mementote_fw-la nostri_fw-la cùm_fw-la incipiet_fw-la in_o vobis_fw-la virginitas_fw-la honorari_fw-la that_o be_v only_o then_o have_v we_o in_o remembrance_n when_o your_o virginity_n shall_v begin_v to_o be_v honour_v that_o be_v after_o their_o departure_n where_o he_o insinuate_v the_o use_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o keep_v the_o festival_n day_n and_o other_o duty_n towards_o the_o holy_a virgin_n in_o heaven_n virgin_n s._n hierom_n also_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n speak_v to_o heliodorus_n say_v that_o when_o he_o be_v once_o in_o heaven_n than_o he_o will_v pray_v for_o he_o that_o exhort_v and_o incite_v he_o to_o the_o bless_a state_n of_o the_o monastical_a life_n ep._n 1._o c._n 2._o and_o so_o do_v he_o speak_v to_o the_o virtuous_a matron_n paula_n after_o her_o death_n desire_v she_o to_o pray_v for_o he_o in_o his_o old_a age_n saint_n affirm_v that_o she_o shall_v the_o more_o easy_o obtain_v the_o neere_n she_o be_v now_o join_v to_o christ_n in_o heaven_n in_o epitaph_n paul_n in_o fine_a it_o be_v to_o long_o to_o report_v how_o s._n augustine_n desire_v to_o be_v holpen_v by_o s._n cyprian_n prayer_n then_o and_o long_o before_o a_o saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o truth_n concern_v the_o peace_n and_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n li._n 5_o de_fw-fr bapt._n cont_n donatistas_n c._n 17._o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o same_o holy_a doctor_n allege_v the_o say_a s._n cyprian_n say_v that_o great_a number_n of_o our_o parent_n brethren_n child_n friend_n and_o other_o expect_v we_o in_o great_a solicitude_n and_o carefulness_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v sure_a of_o their_o own_o li._n 1_o de_fw-la praedest_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la c._n 14._o s._n gregory_n nazianzene_n in_o his_o oration_n of_o the_o praise_n of_o s._n cyprian_n in_o fine_a and_o of_o s._n basil_n also_o in_o fine_a declare_v how_o they_o pray_v for_o the_o people_n which_o two_o saint_n he_o there_o invocate_v as_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v both_o general_o all_o saint_n and_o as_o occasion_n serve_v particular_o their_o special_a patroness_n among_o the_o rest_n see_v how_o holy_a ephrem_n in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr laud._n s._n deipara_n pray_v to_o our_o b._n lady_n with_o the_o same_o term_n of_o aduocatt_n hope_n reconciliatrix_fw-la that_o the_o faithful_a yet_o use_v and_o the_o protestant_n can_v not_o abide_v s._n basil_n ho._n the_o 40_o martyribus_fw-la in_o fine_a s._n athanasius_n ser._n in_o euang._n de_fw-fr
be_v here_o commend_v in_o they_o three_o wisdom_n &_o diligence_n in_o trial_n of_o false_a apostle_n and_o preacher_n come_v in_o sheepskin_n where_o be_v signify_v the_o watchful_a providence_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o they_o that_o heretic_n enter_v not_o into_o their_o flock_n 5._o will_v move_v country_n note_v that_o the_o cause_n why_o god_n take_v the_o truth_n from_o certain_a country_n and_o remove_v their_o bishop_n or_o church_n into_o captivity_n or_o desolation_n be_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o people_n and_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n no_o doubt_n that_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o our_o golden_a candlestick_n that_o be_v our_o church_n in_o england_n god_n grant_v we_o to_o remember_v our_o fall_n to_o do_v penance_n and_o the_o former_a work_n of_o charity_n which_o our_o first_o bishop_n and_o church_n be_v notable_a and_o renown_v for_o 6._o because_o thou_o hate_v heretic_n we_o see_v here_o that_o of_o all_o thing_n christian_a people_n special_o bishop_n shall_v have_v great_a zeal_n against_o heretic_n and_o hate_v they_o that_o be_v their_o wicked_a doctrine_n and_o condition_n even_o as_o god_n hate_v they_o for_o which_o only_a zeal_n our_o lord_n say_v here_o that_o he_o bear_v with_o some_o church_n and_o prelate_n and_o save_v they_o from_o perish_v 6._o of_o the_o nicolaites_n calling_n heretic_n have_v their_o calling_n of_o certain_a person_n as_o be_v note_v at_o large_a act._n 11_o 26._o these_o have_v their_o name_n of_o nicolas_n one_o of_o the_o 7_o first_o deacon_n that_o be_v choose_v act._n 6._o who_o be_v think_v to_o have_v teach_v community_n of_o woman_n or_o wife_n and_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o eat_v of_o meat_n offer_v to_o idol_n which_o late_a point_n be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o receive_v the_o bread_n or_o wine_n of_o the_o new_a communion_n which_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o idolothytae_n that_o be_v idolatrous_a meat_n for_o though_o such_o creature_n be_v good_a by_o creation_n yet_o they_o be_v make_v execrable_a by_o profane_a blessing_n of_o heretic_n or_o idolater_n and_o concern_v the_o name_n of_o nicolaites_n give_v here_o by_o our_o lord_n himself_o to_o those_o heretic_n it_o be_v a_o very_a pattern_n and_o mark_n unto_o the_o faithful_a for_o ever_o what_o kind_n of_o man_n they_o shall_v be_v heretic_n that_o shall_v be_v call_v after_o the_o like_a sort_n arian_n macedonian_n nestorian_n lutheran_n zwinglians_n etc._n etc._n see_v s._n hierom_n cont_n lucifer_n in_o fine_a 14._o to_o cast_v a_o scandal_n 6._o josephus_n write_v that_o when_o balaam_n can_v not_o curse_v god_n people_n nor_o otherwise_o annoy_v they_o he_o teach_v balaca_n way_n how_o to_o overthrow_v they_o to_o wit_n by_o present_v unto_o they_o their_o heathen_a woman_n very_o beautiful_a and_o delicate_a dish_n of_o meat_n offer_v to_o bel-phegoâ_a that_o so_o be_v tempt_v they_o may_v fall_v to_o heathenish_a manner_n and_o displease_v god_n 11._o to_o which_o crafty_a counsel_n of_o balaam_n the_o apostle_n resemble_v heretic_n fraud_n who_o by_o offer_v of_o liberty_n of_o meat_n woman_n church_n good_n breach_n of_o vow_n and_o such_o other_o licentious_a allurement_n cause_v many_o more_o to_o fall_v then_o by_o their_o preach_n 20._o the_o woman_n jezabel_n he_o warn_v bishop_n to_o be_v zealous_a and_o stout_a against_o false_a prophet_n and_o heretic_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o heretic_n by_o allude_v covert_o to_o the_o example_n of_o holy_a elias_n that_o in_o zeal_n kill_v 450_o false_a prophet_n of_o jezabel_n 18._o and_o spare_v not_o achab_n nor_o jezabel_n themselves_o but_o tell_v they_o to_o their_o face_n that_o they_o trouble_v israel_n that_o be_v the_o faithful_a people_n of_o god_n and_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o great_a woman_n then_o jezabel_n a_o furtherer_n and_o promotour_n of_o the_o nicolaites_n who_o the_o prophet_n shall_v here_o mean_v it_o be_v hard_o to_o say_v 21._o she_o will_v not_o repent_v see_v free_a will_v here_o most_o plain_o and_o that_o god_n be_v not_o the_o proper_a cause_n of_o obduration_n or_o impenitence_n evil_a but_o man_n himself_o only_o our_o lord_n give_v sinner_n so_o long_a life_n special_o to_o expect_v their_o amendment_n but_o jezabel_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n here_o allude_v will_v never_o repent_v 22._o they_o that_o commit_v advoutrie_n with_o she_o they_o such_o as_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n shall_v be_v damn_v alas_o with_o they_o for_o not_o only_o such_o as_o be_v in_o their_o heart_n of_o jezabels_n religion_n or_o inward_o believe_v in_o baal_n but_o such_o as_o external_o for_o fear_v worship_v he_o which_o the_o scripture_n call_v bow_v of_o their_o knee_n to_o baal_n be_v culpable_a 11._o as_o now_o many_o bow_n their_o knee_n to_o the_o communion_n that_o bow_v not_o their_o heart_n 26._o i_o will_v give_v he_o power_n observe_v that_o not_o only_a angel_n have_v power_n and_o regiment_n over_o country_n under_o god_n angel_n but_o now_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n and_o for_o his_o ministry_n in_o the_o world_n the_o saint_n decease_a also_o be_v in_o heaven_n have_v government_n over_o man_n and_o province_n and_o therefore_o have_v to_o do_v with_o our_o affair_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v against_o the_o heretic_n of_o these_o day_n that_o to_o take_v away_o our_o prayer_n to_o saint_n will_v spoil_v they_o of_o many_o sovereign_a dignity_n wherein_o the_o scripture_n make_v they_o equal_a with_o angel_n chap._n iii_o he_o be_v command_v to_o write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o sardis_n philadelphia_n and_o laodicia_n recall_v they_o that_o err_v to_o penance_n by_o threaten_v but_o praise_v the_o rest_n and_o promise_a reward_n to_o he_o that_o overcom_v 15_o detest_a also_o the_o cold_a indifferent_a christian_a 20_o he_o say_v that_o god_n knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o man_n heart_n by_o offer_v his_o grace_n for_o to_o enter_v in_o to_o he_o that_o will_v open_v unto_o he_o by_o consent_n of_o free_a will_v verse_n 1_o and_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o sardis_n write_v thus_o say_v he_o that_o have_v the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o seven_o star_n i_o know_v thy_o work_n that_o thou_o have_v the_o name_n that_o thou_o live_v and_o thou_o be_v dead_a â_o verse_n 2_o be_v vigilant_a and_o confirm_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o die_v for_o i_o find_v not_o thy_o work_n full_a before_o my_o god_n â_o verse_n 3_o have_v in_o mind_n therefore_o in_o what_o manner_n thou_o have_v receive_v and_o hear_v and_o keep_v and_o do_v penance_n if_o therefore_o thou_o watch_n not_o *_o i_o will_v come_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o thief_n 10._o &_o thou_o shall_v not_o know_v what_o hour_n i_o will_v come_v to_o thou_o 15._o â_o verse_n 4_o but_o thou_o have_v a_o few_o name_n in_o sardis_n baptism_n which_o have_v not_o defile_v their_o garment_n and_o they_o shall_v walk_v with_o i_o in_o white_n because_o they_o salvation_n be_v worthy_a â_o verse_n 5_o â³_o he_o that_o shall_v overcome_v shall_v thus_o be_v vest_v in_o white_a garment_n and_o i_o will_v not_o put_v his_o name_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o i_o will_v confess_v his_o name_n before_o my_o father_n and_o before_o his_o angel_n â_o verse_n 6_o he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n let_v he_o hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n say_v to_o the_o church_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n write_v thus_o say_v the_o holy_a one_o and_o the_o true_a one_o he_o that_o have_v the_o *_o key_n of_o david_n 22._o he_o that_o open_v and_o no_o man_n shut_v shut_v and_o no_o man_n open_v â_o verse_n 8_o i_o know_v thy_o work_n behold_v i_o have_v give_v before_o thou_o a_o door_n open_v which_o no_o man_n can_v shut_v because_o thou_o have_v a_o little_a power_n and_o have_v keep_v my_o word_n and_o have_v not_o deny_v my_o name_n â_o verse_n 9_o behold_v i_o will_v give_v of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n which_o say_v they_o be_v jew_n and_o be_v not_o but_o do_v lie_v behold_v i_o will_v make_v they_o come_v and_o â³_o adore_v before_o thy_o foot_n and_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o have_v love_v thou_o â_o verse_n 10_o because_o thou_o have_v keep_v the_o word_n of_o my_o patience_n and_o i_o will_v keep_v thou_o from_o the_o hour_n of_o tentation_n which_o shall_v come_v upon_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o tempt_v the_o inhabitant_n on_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 11_o behold_v i_o come_v quick_o hold_v that_o which_o thou_o have_v â³_o that_o no_o man_n take_v thy_o crown_n â_o verse_n 12_o he_o that_o shall_v overcome_v i_o will_v make_v he_o a_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o my_o god_n and_o he_o
the_o church_n militant_a may_v join_v with_o the_o triumphant_a and_o with_o all_o the_o order_n of_o angel_n who_o also_o be_v present_a at_o the_o consecration_n and_o do_v service_n there_o to_o our_o common_a lord_n and_o master_n as_o s._n chrysostom_n write_v li._n 6_o the_o sacerdotie_n and_o hâ_n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n esa_n to_o 1._o the_o greek_n call_v it_o the_o hymn_n trisagy_n that_o be_v thrice_o holy_a chap._n v._n 4._o s._n john_n weep_v because_o no_o man_n can_v open_v the_o book_n seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n â_o the_o lamb_n that_o be_v slay_v open_v it_o which_o be_v do_v 8_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o four_o and_o twenty_o senior_n with_o a_o innumerable_a multitude_n of_o angel_n &_o all_o creature_n do_v glorify_v he_o exceed_o verse_n 1_o and_o i_o see_v in_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n vision_z a_o 42._o book_n write_v within_o and_o without_o seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o i_o see_v a_o strong_a angel_n preach_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n who_o be_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o book_n &_o to_o loose_v the_o seal_v thereof_o â_o verse_n 3_o and_o no_o man_n be_v able_a neither_o in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o earth_n nor_o purgatory_n under_o the_o earth_n to_o open_v the_o book_n nor_o look_v on_o it_o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o i_o weep_v much_o because_o no_o man_n be_v find_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o book_n nor_o to_o see_v it_o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o one_o of_o the_o senior_n say_v to_o i_o weep_v not_o behold_v he_o the_o *_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n the_o root_n of_o david_n have_v win_v 9_o to_o open_v the_o book_n and_o to_o loose_v the_o seven_o seal_n thereof_o â_o verse_n 6_o eve_n and_o i_o see_v and_o behold_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o throne_n and_o of_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o senior_n sin_n a_o lamb_n stand_v as_o it_o be_v slay_v have_v seven_o horn_n &_o seven_o eye_n which_o be_v the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n send_v into_o all_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o he_o come_v and_o receive_v the_o book_n out_o of_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o throne_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o book_n the_o four_o beast_n and_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o senior_n fall_v before_o the_o lamb_n have_v every_o one_o harp_n and_o golden_a vial_n full_a of_o odour_n which_o be_v â³_o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o they_o sing_v a_o new_a canticle_n say_v thou_o be_v worthy_a o_o lord_n to_o take_v the_o book_n and_o to_o open_v the_o seal_v thereof_o 9_o because_o thou_o be_v slay_v and_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n in_o thy_o blood_n out_o of_o every_o tribe_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n 2._o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o *_o haste_n make_v we_o to_o our_o god_n â³_o king_n a_o kingdom_n '_o and_o priest_n and_o we_o shall_v reign_v upon_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o i_o look_v and_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o many_o angel_n round_o about_o the_o throne_n angel_n and_o of_o the_o beast_n &_o of_o the_o senior_n and_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v *_o thousand_o of_o thousand_o 10._o â_o verse_n 12_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n the_o lamb_n that_o be_v slay_v be_v worthy_a to_o receive_v power_n and_o riches_n divinity_n '_o and_o wisdom_n &_o strength_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o benediction_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 13_o and_o â³_o every_o creature_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o upon_o the_o earth_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o sea_n and_o that_o be_v therein_o all_o do_v i_o hear_v say_v *_o to_o he_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o throne_n &_o do_v to_o the_o lamb_n 11._o benediction_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o power_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o â_o verse_n 14_o and_o the_o four_o beast_n say_v amen_o and_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o senior_n fall_v on_o their_o face_n and_o adore_v he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o â¢_o annotation_n chap._n v._n 8._o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n god_n hereby_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n offer_v up_o the_o prayer_n of_o faithful_a and_o holy_a person_n in_o earth_n call_v here_o saint_n and_o in_o scripture_n often_o unto_o christ_n and_o among_o so_o many_o divine_a &_o unsearchable_a mystery_n set_v down_o without_o exposition_n it_o please_v god_n yet_o that_o the_o apostle_n himself_o shall_v open_v this_o one_o point_n unto_o we_o that_o these_o odour_n be_v the_o laudes_fw-la and_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a ascend_v and_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n as_o incense_v by_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n that_o so_o the_o protestant_n may_v have_v no_o excuse_n of_o their_o error_n that_o the_o saint_n have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o our_o affair_n or_o desire_n 10._o a_o kingdom_n and_o priest_n priest_n to_o serve_v god_n and_o subdue_v vice_n and_o sin_n be_v to_o reign_v or_o to_o be_v a_o king_n spiritual_o likewise_o to_o offer_v unto_o he_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o good_a work_n be_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n after_o a_o sort_n though_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o in_o proper_a speech_n see_v the_o annotation_n before_o chap._n 1._o v._n 6._o 13._o every_o creature_n purgatory_n he_o mean_v the_o creature_n in_o heaven_n as_o angel_n and_o saint_n the_o holy_a person_n in_o earth_n and_o those_o that_o be_v in_o limbo_n or_o be_v in_o purgatory_n for_o of_o the_o damn_a in_o hell_n he_o can_v not_o speak_v in_o this_o case_n last_o of_o the_o people_n in_o land_n here_o call_v the_o sea_n which_o the_o prophet_n use_v often_o to_o name_n several_o when_o they_o foretell_v the_o spread_a of_o christ_n glory_n through_o the_o world_n as_o esa_n c._n 49._o hear_v you_o ââandes_n and_o you_o people_n a_o far_o of_o etc._n etc._n chap._n vi_o 1_o four_o seal_n of_o the_o seven_o be_v open_v there_o follow_v diverse_a effect_n against_o the_o earth_n 9_o when_o the_o five_o seal_n be_v open_v the_o soul_n of_o martyr_n desire_v that_o the_o judgement_n may_v be_v hasten_v 12_o and_o at_o the_o open_n of_o the_o sixth_o there_o be_v sign_n show_v of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v verse_n 1_o and_o i_o see_v that_o the_o lamb_n have_v open_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o seal_n and_o i_o hear_v one_o of_o the_o four_o beast_n say_v as_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o thunder_n come_v and_o see_v â_o verse_n 2_o and_o i_o see_v and_o behold_v a_o white_a horse_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o he_o have_v a_o bow_n and_o there_o be_v a_o crown_n give_v he_o and_o he_o go_v forth_o conquer_a that_o he_o may_v conquer_v â_o verse_n 3_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o second_o seal_n i_o hear_v the_o second_o beast_n say_v come_v &_o see_v â_o verse_n 4_o and_o there_o go_v forth_o a_o other_o horse_n red_a and_o he_o that_o sit_v thereon_o to_o he_o it_o be_v give_v that_o he_o shall_v take_v peace_n from_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v kill_v one_o a_o other_o and_o a_o great_a sword_n be_v give_v to_o he_o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o three_o seal_n i_o hear_v the_o three_o beast_n say_v come_v and_o see_v and_o behold_v a_o black_a horse_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o he_o have_v a_o balance_n in_o his_o hand_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o i_o hear_v as_o it_o be_v a_o voice_n in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n say_v two_o pound_n of_o wheat_n for_o a_o penny_n and_o thrice_o two_o pound_n of_o barley_n for_o a_o penny_n and_o wine_n and_o oil_n hurt_v thou_o not_o â_o verse_n 7_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o four_o seal_n i_o hear_v a_o voice_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n say_v come_v &_o see_v â_o verse_n 8_o and_o behold_v a_o pale_a horse_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o he_o his_o name_n be_v death_n and_o hell_n follow_v he_o and_o power_n be_v give_v to_o he_o over_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o kill_v with_o sword_n with_o famine_n and_o with_o death_n and_o with_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o five_o seal_n i_o see_v â³_o under_o the_o altar_n the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v slay_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o testimony_n which_o they_o have_v â_o verse_n 10_o â³_o and_o they_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n say_v how_o long_a lord_n holy_a &_o true_a iudge_v thou_o not_o and_o â³_o reveng_a thou_o not_o our_o blood_n of_o they_o that_o dwell_n on_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o white_a stole_n be_v give_v to_o
and_o the_o four_o angel_n sound_v with_o the_o trumpet_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v smite_v and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o star_n so_o that_o the_o three_o part_n of_o they_o be_v darken_v and_o of_o the_o day_n there_o shine_v not_o the_o three_o part_n and_o of_o the_o night_n in_o like_a manner_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o i_o look_v and_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o one_o eagle_z fly_v through_o the_o mid_n of_o heaven_n say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n woe_n wo_n wo_n to_o the_o inhabiter_n on_o the_o earth_n because_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o three_o angel_n which_o be_v to_o sound_v with_o the_o trumpet_n chap._n ix_o the_o five_o angel_n sound_v the_o trumpet_n a_o star_n fall_v 3_o the_o issue_v forth_o of_o locust_n from_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o deep_a pit_n to_o vexâ_n man_n 7_o and_o the_o description_n of_o they_o 13_o the_o sixth_o angel_n sound_v four_o angel_n be_v let_v loose_a 18_o which_o with_o a_o great_a troop_n of_o horseman_n do_v murder_v the_o three_o part_n of_o man_n verse_n 1_o and_o the_o five_o angel_n sound_v with_o the_o trumpet_n heretic_n and_o i_o see_v depth_n a_o star_n to_o have_v fall_v from_o heaven_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o there_o be_v give_v to_o he_o the_o key_n of_o the_o pit_n of_o bottomless_a depth_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o he_o open_v the_o pit_n of_o the_o bottomless_a depth_n and_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o pit_n ascend_v as_o the_o smoke_n of_o a_o great_a furnace_n and_o the_o sun_n be_v darken_v &_o the_o air_n with_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o pit_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o from_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o pit_n there_o issue_v forth_o pit_n locust_n into_o the_o earth_n and_o power_n be_v give_v to_o they_o as_o the_o scorpion_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v power_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o it_o be_v command_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o hurt_v the_o grass_n of_o the_o earth_n â_o not_o any_o green_a thing_n nor_o any_o tree_n but_o only_a man_n which_o have_v not_o the_o sign_n of_o god_n in_o their_o forehead_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o kill_v they_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v torment_v five_o month_n and_o their_o torment_n as_o the_o torment_n of_o a_o scorpion_n when_o he_o strike_v a_o man_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o *_o in_o those_o day_n man_n shall_v seek_v for_o death_n 16._o and_o shall_v not_o find_v it_o and_o they_o shall_v desire_v to_o die_v &_o death_n shall_v flee_v from_o they_o â_o verse_n 7_o and_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o locust_n like_v to_o horse_n â³_o prepare_v into_o battle_n and_o upon_o their_o head_n as_o it_o be_v crown_n like_a to_o gold_n &_o their_o face_n as_o the_o face_n of_o man_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o they_o have_v hear_v as_o the_o hear_v of_o woman_n &_o their_o tooth_n be_v as_o of_o lion_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o they_o have_v habbergion_n as_o habbergion_n of_o iron_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o their_o wing_n as_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o chariote_n of_o many_o horse_n run_v into_o battle_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o they_o have_v tail_n like_o to_o scorpion_n and_o sting_n be_v in_o their_o tail_n and_o their_o power_n be_v to_o hurt_v man_n five_o month_n heretic_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o they_o have_v over_o they_o a_o king_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a depth_n who_o name_n in_o hebrew_n be_v abaddon_n destroyer_n and_o in_o greek_a apollyon_n in_o latin_a have_v the_o name_n exterminans_fw-la â_o verse_n 12_o one_o woe_n be_v go_v &_o behold_v two_o woe_n come_v yet_o after_o these_o â_o verse_n 13_o and_o the_o sixth_o angel_n sound_v with_o the_o trumpet_n and_o i_o hear_v one_o voice_n from_o the_o four_o horn_n of_o the_o golden_a altar_n which_o be_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 14_o say_v to_o the_o sixth_o angel_n which_o have_v the_o trumpet_n loose_v the_o four_o angel_n which_o be_v bind_v in_o the_o great_a river_n euphrates_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o the_o four_o angel_n be_v loose_v who_o be_v prepare_v for_o a_o hour_n and_o a_o day_n and_o a_o month_n and_o a_o year_n that_o they_o may_v kill_v the_o three_o part_n of_o man_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o army_n of_o horseman_n be_v twenty_o thousand_o time_n ten_o thousand_o and_o i_o hear_v the_o number_n of_o they_o â_o verse_n 17_o and_o so_o i_o see_v the_o horse_n in_o the_o vision_n &_o they_o that_o sit_v upon_o they_o have_v habbergion_n of_o fire_n and_o of_o hyacinth_n and_o brimstone_n &_o the_o head_n of_o the_o horse_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o head_n of_o lion_n &_o from_o their_o mouth_n procee_v fire_n &_o smoke_n and_o brimstone_n â_o verse_n 18_o and_o by_o these_o three_o plague_n be_v slay_v the_o three_o part_n of_o man_n of_o the_o fire_n and_o of_o the_o smoke_n and_o of_o the_o brimstone_n which_o procee_v from_o their_o mouth_n â_o verse_n 19_o for_o the_o power_n of_o the_o horse_n be_v in_o their_o mouth_n and_o in_o their_o tail_n for_o their_o tail_n be_v like_a to_o serpent_n have_v head_n and_o in_o these_o they_o hurt_v â_o verse_n 20_o also_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o man_n which_o be_v not_o slay_v with_o these_o plague_n neither_o 22._o have_v do_v penance_n from_o the_o work_n of_o their_o hand_n not_o to_o adore_v devil_n and_o â³_o idol_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o brass_n and_o stone_n and_o wood_n which_o neither_o can_v see_v not_o hear_v nor_o walk_v â_o verse_n 21_o &_o have_v not_o do_v penance_n from_o their_o murder_n nor_o from_o their_o sorcery_n nor_o from_o their_o fornication_n nor_o from_o their_o theft_n annotation_n chap._n ix_o 4._o nor_o any_o green_a thing_n the_o heretic_n never_o hurt_v or_o seduce_v the_o green_a tree_n that_o be_v such_o as_o have_v a_o live_a faith_n work_v by_o charity_n heretic_n but_o common_o they_o corrupt_v he_o in_o faith_n who_o shall_v otherwise_o have_v perish_v for_o ill_a life_n and_o he_o that_o be_v reprobate_a that_o have_v neither_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v god_n mark_n in_o the_o forehead_n of_o his_o body_n nor_o the_o note_n of_o election_n in_o his_o soul_n 7._o prepare_a into_o battle_n heretic_n be_v ever_o ready_a to_o contend_v do_v pretend_v victory_n and_o counterfeit_a gold_n heretic_n in_o shape_n as_o man_n as_o smooth_a and_o delicate_a as_o woman_n their_o tongue_n and_o pen_n full_a of_o gall_n and_o venom_n their_o heart_n obdurate_a full_o of_o noise_n and_o shuffle_n their_o doctrine_n as_o pestiserous_a and_o full_o of_o poison_n as_o the_o tail_n and_o sting_n of_o a_o scorpion_n but_o they_o endure_v for_o a_o little_a season_n 20._o idol_n of_o gold_n here_o again_o the_o new_a translatour_n abuse_v the_o people_n for_o idol_n say_v image_n translation_n the_o place_n be_v plain_o against_o the_o pourtiate_n of_o the_o heathen_a god_n which_o be_v here_o and_o in_o the_o psalm_n 95_o call_v damenia_fw-la devil_n chap._n x._o an_o other_o strong_a angel_n cry_v out_o 3_o seven_o thunder_n do_v speak_v 6_o the_o angel_n swear_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v time_n no_o more_o but_o at_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n the_o mystery_n shall_v be_v full_o accomplish_v 9_o he_o give_v john_n a_o book_n to_o devour_v verse_n 1_o and_o i_o see_v a_o other_o angel_n describe_v strong_a descend_v from_o heaven_n clothe_v with_o a_o cloud_n and_o a_o rainbow_a on_o his_o head_n and_o his_o face_n be_v as_o the_o sun_n and_o his_o foot_n as_o pillar_n a_o pillar_n '_o of_o fire_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o little_a book_n open_v and_o he_o put_v his_o right_a foot_n upon_o the_o sea_n and_o his_o left_a upon_o the_o land_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n as_o when_o a_o lion_n roar_v and_o when_o he_o have_v cry_v the_o seven_o thunder_n speak_v their_o voice_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o when_o the_o seven_o thunder_n have_v speak_v their_o voice_n i_o be_v about_o to_o write_v and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v to_o i_o sign_n the_o thing_n which_o the_o seven_o thunder_n have_v speak_v and_o scripture_n write_v they_o not_o â_o verse_n 5_o and_o *_o the_o angel_n which_o i_o see_v stand_v upon_o the_o sea_n and_o upon_o the_o land_n 7._o 32._o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o he_o swear_v by_o he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o that_o create_v heaven_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o it_o and_o the_o earth_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o it_o and_o the_o sea_n and_o
where_o he_o be_v call_v name_n the_o man_n of_o sin_n again_o he_o must_v be_v one_o particular_a person_n &_o not_o a_o number_n a_o succession_n or_o whole_a order_n of_o any_o degree_n of_o man_n because_o his_o proper_a name_n and_o the_o particular_a number_n and_o the_o character_n thereof_o be_v though_o obscure_o insinuate_v which_o reprove_v the_o wicked_a vanity_n of_o heretic_n that_o will_v have_v christ_n own_o vicar_n the_o successor_n of_o his_o cheese_n apostle_n yea_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o they_o for_o many_o age_n together_o to_o be_v this_o antichrist_n who_o by_o his_o description_n here_o and_o in_o the_o say_a epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o must_v be_v one_o special_a man_n and_o of_o a_o particular_a proper_a name_n as_o our_o lord_n jesus_n be_v and_o whosoever_o he_o be_v these_o protestant_n undoubted_o be_v his_o precursor_n for_o as_o they_o make_v his_o way_n by_o rid_v away_o christ_n image_n cross_n and_o name_n so_o they_o exceed_o promote_v the_o matter_n by_o take_v away_o christ_n chief_a minister_n that_o all_o may_v be_v plain_a for_o antichrist_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v antichrist_n antichrist_n and_o have_v be_v reveal_v now_o a_o good_a many_o year_n sithence_o as_o these_o fellow_n say_v he_o be_v to_o they_o than_o the_o number_n of_o this_o name_n will_v agree_v to_o he_o and_o the_o prophecy_n be_v now_o fulfil_v it_o will_v evident_o appear_v that_o he_o bear_v the_o name_n and_o number_n here_o note_v for_o no_o doubt_n when_o lie_n come_v this_o count_n of_o the_o letter_n or_o number_n of_o his_o name_n which_o before_o be_v so_o hard_a to_o know_v will_v be_v easy_a for_o he_o will_v set_v up_o his_o name_n in_o every_o place_n even_o as_o we_o faithful_a man_n do_v now_o advance_v jesus_n and_o what_o name_n proper_a or_o appellative_a of_o all_o or_o any_o of_o the_o pope_n do_v they_o find_v to_o agree_v with_o this_o number_n notwithstanding_o they_o boast_v that_o they_o have_v find_v the_o whole_a order_n and_o every_o of_o they_o these_o thousand_o year_n to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o the_o rest_n before_o even_o from_o s._n peter_n foreworker_n towards_o his_o kingdom_n 1â_n the_o number_n 666._o forasmuch_o as_o the_o ancient_a expositor_n and_o other_o do_v think_v for_o certain_a knowledge_n thereof_o no_o mortal_a man_n can_v have_v without_o a_o express_a revelation_n that_o his_o name_n consist_v of_o so_o many_o uncertain_a &_o such_o letter_n in_o greek_a as_o according_a to_o their_o manner_n of_o number_v by_o the_o alphabete_n make_v 666_o and_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o letter_n make_v that_o number_n may_v be_v find_v in_o diverse_a name_n both_o proper_a &_o common_a fine_a as_o s._n irenaeus_n find_v they_o in_o latino_n and_o teitan_n hippolytus_n in_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d aretas_n in_o lampetis_n &_o some_o of_o this_o age_n in_o ludérus_n which_o be_v luther_n name_n in_o the_o alman_n tongue_n therefore_o we_o see_v there_o can_v be_v no_o certainty_n and_o every_o one_o frame_v and_o apply_v the_o letter_n to_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o most_o absurd_a folly_n it_o be_v of_o the_o heretic_n to_o apply_v the_o word_n latino_n to_o the_o pope_n neither_o the_o whole_a order_n in_o common_a nor_o ever_o any_o particular_a pope_n be_v so_o call_v and_o s._n irenaeus_n the_o first_o that_o observe_v it_o in_o that_o word_n apply_v it_o to_o the_o empire_n and_o state_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n which_o then_o be_v heathen_a and_o not_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o his_o day_n or_o after_o he_o and_o yet_o prefer_v the_o word_n teitan_n as_o more_o agreeable_a with_o this_o admonition_n that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a perilous_a and_o presumptuous_a thing_n to_o define_v any_o certainty_n before_o hand_n of_o that_o number_n and_o name_n and_o true_o whatsoever_o the_o protestant_n presume_v herein_o of_o the_o pope_n we_o may_v bold_o discharge_v luther_n of_o that_o dignity_n he_o be_v undoubted_o one_o of_o antichrist_n precursor_n but_o not_o antichrist_n himself_o chap._n xiiii_o 2_o virgin_n follow_v the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o sing_v a_o new_a canticle_n 6._o one_o angel_n euangelize_v the_o gospel_n 8_o a_o other_o angel_n tell_v the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n 9_o the_o three_o declare_v their_o tormant_n that_o have_v adore_v the_o beast_n moreover_o two_o have_v sickle_n 15_o one_o of_o they_o be_v command_v to_o reap_v down_o the_o corn_n 18_o the_o other_o to_o gather_v the_o grape_n as_o in_o vintage_n which_o be_v tread_v in_o the_o lake_n of_o god_n wrath_n verse_n 1_o and_o i_o look_v christmas_n &_o behold_v 7._o a_o lamb_n stand_v upon_o mount_n zion_n and_o with_o he_o a_o hundred_o forty_o four_o thousand_o have_v his_o name_n and_o the_o name_n of_o his_o father_n write_v in_o their_o forehead_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n as_o the_o voice_n of_o many_o water_n and_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o great_a thunder_n and_o the_o voice_n which_o i_o hear_v as_o of_o harper_n harp_v on_o their_o harp_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o they_o sing_v as_o it_o be_v a_o new_a song_n before_o the_o seat_n and_o before_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o the_o senior_n and_o no_o man_n can_v ãâã_d say_v '_o the_o song_n but_o those_o hundred_o forty_o four_o thousand_o that_o be_v buy_v from_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 4_o these_o be_v they_o which_o be_v not_o defile_v with_o woman_n for_o they_o be_v etc._n virgin_n these_o follow_n the_o lamb_n whithersoever_o he_o shall_v go_v these_o be_v buy_v from_o among_o man_n christ_n the_o first_o fruit_n to_o god_n and_o the_o lamb_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o in_o their_o mouth_n there_o be_v find_v no_o lie_n for_o they_o be_v without_o spot_n before_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 6_o and_o i_o see_v a_o other_o angel_n fly_v through_o the_o mid_n of_o heaven_n have_v the_o eternal_a gospel_n to_o evamgelize_v unto_o they_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o earth_n and_o upon_o every_o nation_n and_o tribe_n &_o tongue_n &_o people_n â_o verse_n 7_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n fear_v our_o lord_n and_o give_v he_o honour_n because_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o judgement_n be_v come_v 145._o and_o adore_v you_o he_o *_o that_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o sea_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o they_o 14._o and_o the_o fountain_n of_o water_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o a_o other_o angel_n follow_v 21._o say_v *_o fall_v fall_v be_v that_o great_a world_n babylon_n 51._o which_o of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o her_o fornication_n make_v all_o nation_n to_o drink_v 18._o â_o verse_n 9_o and_o the_o three_o angel_n follow_v they_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n if_o any_o man_n adore_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o receive_v the_o character_n in_o his_o forehead_n or_o in_o his_o hand_n â_o verse_n 10_o image_n he_o also_o shall_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n which_o be_v mingle_v with_o pure_a wine_n in_o the_o cup_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o shall_v be_v torment_v with_o fire_n &_o brimstone_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o before_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lamb_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o the_o smoke_n of_o their_o torment_n shall_v ascend_v for_o ever_o &_o ever_o neither_o have_v they_o rest_v day_n and_o night_n which_o have_v adore_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o if_o any_o man_n take_v the_o character_n of_o his_o name_n â_o verse_n 12_o here_o be_v the_o patience_n of_o saint_n which_o commandment_n keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n â_o verse_n 13_o dead_a and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v to_o i_o write_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o our_o lord._n â³_o from_o hence_o forth_o now_o say_v the_o spirit_n that_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n for_o their_o work_n follow_v they_o â_o verse_n 14_o and_o i_o see_v and_o behold_v a_o white_a cloud_n and_o upon_o the_o cloud_n one_o sit_v like_a to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v on_o his_o head_n a_o crown_n of_o gold_n and_o in_o his_o hand_n a_o sharp_a sickle_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o a_o other_o angel_n come_v forth_o from_o the_o temple_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o cloud_n 3_o *_o thrust_v in_o thy_o sickle_n 13._o and_o reap_v because_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v to_o reap_v for_o the_o harvest_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v dry_a â_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o cloud_n thrust_v his_o sickle_n into_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v reap_v â_o verse_n 17_o and_o a_o other_o angel_n come_v forth_o from_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n himself_o also_o have_v a_o sharp_a sickle_n
constantine_n reign_v and_o yield_v up_o the_o city_n to_o the_o pope_n who_o hold_v not_o the_o kingdom_n or_o empire_n ovet_fw-la the_o world_n as_o the_o heathen_a do_v but_o the_o fatherhod_n and_o spiritual_a rule_n of_o the_o church_n howbeit_o the_o more_o probable_a sense_n be_v the_o other_o of_o the_o city_n of_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o authâr_n of_o the_o homily_n upon_o the_o apocalypse_n in_o s._n augustine_n declare_v chap._n xviii_o the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n her_o judgement_n plague_n and_o revenge_n for_o the_o which_o 9_o the_o king_n 16_o and_o merchant_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o sometime_o do_v cleave_v unto_o she_o shall_v mourn_v bitter_o 20_o but_o heaven_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n shall_v rejoice_v verse_n 1_o and_o after_o these_o thing_n i_o see_v a_o other_o angel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n have_v great_a power_n &_o the_o earth_n be_v illuminate_v of_o his_o glory_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o he_o cry_v out_o in_o force_n 8._o say_v *_o fall_v fall_v be_v babylon_n the_o great_a and_o it_o be_v become_v the_o habitation_n of_o devil_n and_o ãâã_d the_o custody_n of_o every_o unclean_a spirit_n and_o the_o custody_n of_o every_o unclean_a and_o hateful_a bird_n â_o verse_n 3_o because_o all_o nation_n have_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o her_o fornication_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v fornicate_v with_o she_o and_o the_o merchant_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v make_v scotfree_a by_o the_o virtue_n of_o her_o delicacy_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o i_o hear_v a_o other_o voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v go_v out_o from_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n â_o verse_n 5_o because_o her_o sin_n be_v come_v even_o to_o heaven_n and_o god_n have_v remember_v her_o iniquity_n â_o verse_n 6_o render_v to_o she_o as_o she_o also_o have_v render_v to_o you_o &_o double_v you_o double_v according_a to_o her_o work_n in_o the_o cup_n wherein_o she_o have_v mingle_v mingle_v you_o double_a unto_o she_o â_o verse_n 7_o as_o much_o as_o she_o have_v glorify_v herself_o &_o have_v be_v in_o delicacy_n riot_n so_o much_o give_v her_o torment_n and_o mourning_n because_o she_o say_v in_o her_o hart_n 8_o *_o i_o sit_v a_o queen_n &_o widow_n i_o be_o not_o and_z mourning_z i_o shall_v not_o see_v â_o verse_n 8_o therefore_o in_o one_o day_n shall_v her_o plague_n come_v death_n and_o mourning_n and_o famine_n and_o with_o fire_n she_o shall_v be_v burn_v because_o god_n be_v strong_a that_o shall_v judge_v she_o â_o verse_n 9_o and_o late_a the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o have_v fornicate_v with_o she_o &_o have_v live_v in_o delicacy_n shall_v weep_v &_o bewail_v themselves_o upon_o she_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o smoke_n of_o her_o burn_a â_o verse_n 10_o stand_v far_o of_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o her_o torment_n say_v woe_n wo_n that_o great_a city_n babylon_n that_o strong_a city_n because_o in_o one_o hour_n be_v thy_o judgement_n come_v â_o verse_n 11_o and_o the_o merchant_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v weep_v &_o mourn_v upon_o she_o because_o no_o man_n shall_v buy_v their_o merchandise_n any_o more_o â_o verse_n 12_o merchandise_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o of_o pearl_n and_o fine_a linen_n and_o purple_a and_o silk_n &_o scarlet_a and_o all_o thy_o wood_n and_o all_o vessel_n of_o ivory_n and_o all_o vessel_n of_o precious_a stone_n and_o of_o brass_n and_o iron_n and_o marble_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o cinnamon_n and_o of_o odour_n and_o ointment_n and_o frankeincense_n and_o wine_n and_o oil_n and_o flower_n &_o wheat_v and_o beast_n &_o sheep_n and_o horse_n and_o chariote_n &_o slave_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n â_o verse_n 14_o and_o the_o apple_n of_o the_o desire_n of_o thy_o soul_n be_v depart_v from_o thou_o &_o all_o fat_a and_o goodly_a thing_n be_v perish_v from_o thou_o and_o they_o shall_v no_o more_o find_v they_o â_o verse_n 15_o the_o merchant_n of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v make_v scotfree_a shall_v stand_v far_o from_o she_o for_o fear_v of_o her_o torment_n weep_v and_o mourn_v â_o verse_n 16_o &_o say_v woe_n wo_n that_o great_a city_n which_o be_v clothe_v with_o silk_n and_o purple_a and_o scarlet_a and_o be_v gilt_v with_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n &_o pearl_n â_o verse_n 17_o because_o in_o one_o hour_n be_v so_o great_a riches_n make_v desolate_a and_o every_o governor_n and_o every_o one_o that_o sail_v into_o the_o lake_n and_o the_o shipman_n and_o they_o that_o work_n in_o the_o sea_n stand_v a_o far_o of_o â_o verse_n 18_o and_o cry_v see_v the_o place_n of_o her_o burn_a say_v what_o other_o be_v like_a to_o this_o great_a city_n â_o verse_n 19_o and_o they_o throw_v dust_n upon_o their_o head_n and_o cry_v weep_v and_o mourn_v say_v wo_n wo_n that_o great_a city_n in_o the_o which_o all_o be_v make_v scotfree_a that_o have_v ship_n in_o the_o sea_n of_o her_o price_n because_o in_o one_o hour_n she_o be_v desolate_a â_o verse_n 20_o 6._o rejoice_v over_o she_o heaven_n and_o you_o holy_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n because_o god_n have_v judge_v your_o judgement_n of_o she_o â_o verse_n 21_o and_o one_o strong_a angel_n take_v up_o as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a millstone_n and_o throw_v it_o into_o the_o sea_n 63._o say_v *_o with_o this_o violence_n shall_v 52._o babylon_n that_o great_a city_n be_v throw_v and_o shall_v now_o be_v find_v no_o more_o â_o verse_n 22_o and_o the_o voice_n of_o harper_n &_o of_o musician_n and_o of_o they_o that_o sing_v on_o shawm_n and_o trumpet_n shall_v no_o more_o be_v hear_v in_o thou_o &_o every_o artificer_n of_o every_o art_n shall_v be_v find_v no_o more_o in_o thou_o and_o the_o noise_n of_o the_o mill_n shall_v no_o more_o be_v hear_v in_o thou_o â_o verse_n 23_o and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o lamp_n shall_v no_o more_o shine_v in_o thou_o and_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n and_o the_o bride_n shall_v no_o more_o be_v hear_v in_o thou_o because_o thy_o merchant_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n because_o all_o nation_n have_v err_v in_o thy_o inchauntment_n â_o verse_n 24_o and_o in_o she_o be_v find_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o saint_n and_o of_o all_o that_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o earth_n chap._n xix_o â_o the_o saint_n glorify_v god_n for_o the_o judgement_n pronounce_v upon_o the_o harlât_n 7_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v prepare_v 10_o the_o angel_n refuse_v to_o be_v adore_v of_o s._n john_n 1â_n there_o appear_v one_o who_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n sit_v on_o a_o horse_n with_o a_o great_a army_n and_o fight_v against_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o their_o army_n 17_o the_o âirdes_n of_o the_o air_n be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n call_v to_o devour_v their_o flesh_n verse_n 1_o after_o thesis_n thing_n i_o hear_v as_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o many_o multitude_n in_o heaven_n say_v martyr_n allelu-ia_a allelvia_n praise_v and_o glory_n and_o power_n be_v to_o our_o god_n â_o verse_n two_o because_o true_a &_o just_a be_v his_o judgement_n which_o have_v judge_v of_o the_o great_a harlot_n that_o have_v corrupt_v the_o earth_n in_o her_o whoredom_n and_o have_v revenge_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o servant_n of_o her_o hand_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o service_n again_o they_o say_v allelu-ia_a and_o her_o smoke_n ascend_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o senior_n fall_v down_o and_o the_o four_o beast_n &_o adore_a god_n sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n say_v â_o â³_o amen_n allelu-ia_a â_o verse_n 5_o and_o a_o voice_n come_v out_o from_o the_o throne_n say_v say_v praise_n to_o our_o god_n all_o you_o his_o servant_n and_o you_o that_o fear_v he_o little_a and_o great_a â_o verse_n 6_o and_o i_o hear_v as_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o great_a multitude_n and_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o many_o water_n &_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o great_a thunder_n say_v allelu-ia_a because_o our_o lord_n god_n the_o omnipotent_a have_v reign_v â_o verse_n 7_o let_v we_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v and_o give_v glory_n to_o he_o because_o inseparable_a the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v come_v and_o his_o wife_n have_v prepare_v herself_o â_o verse_n 8_o and_o it_o be_v give_v to_o she_o that_o she_o clothe_v herself_o with_o silk_n glitter_v and_o white_a for_o the_o silk_n be_v â_o the_o iustification_n of_o saint_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o he_o say_v to_o i_o 14_o write_v *_o bless_a be_v they_o that_o be_v
our_o lord_n the_o prophet_n of_o god_n the_o gospel_n scripture_n the_o name_n of_o jesus_n such_o like_a which_o be_v by_o use_n signification_n or_o sanctification_n make_v holy_a be_v not_o âow_o to_o be_v reverence_v and_o they_o shall_v find_v all_o these_o thing_n to_o have_v be_v reverence_v of_o all_o the_o faithful_a adoration_n without_o any_o dishonour_n of_o god_n and_o much_o to_o his_o honour_n second_o that_o this_o reverence_n be_v name_v adoration_n in_o the_o seripture_n these_o speech_n do_v prove_v ps_n 93._o adore_v you_o his_o footstool_n because_o it_o be_v holy_a and_o hebr._n 11._o he_o adore_v the_o top_n of_o his_o rod._n three_o that_o the_o scripture_n also_o warrant_v we_o as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n adoration_n give_v in_o all_o three_o tongue_n to_o bow_v down_o our_o body_n adore_v to_o fall_v flat_a on_o the_o ground_n at_o the_o presence_n of_o such_o thing_n and_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o holy_a person_n special_o angel_n as_o john_n do_v here_o these_o example_n prove_v 18._o abraham_n adore_v the_o angel_n that_o appear_v to_o he_o moses_n also_o the_o angel_n that_o show_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o bush_n 3._o who_o be_v creature_n though_o they_o represent_v god_n person_n as_o this_o angel_n here_o do_v that_o speak_v to_o s._n john_n balaam_n adore_v the_o angel_n that_o stand_v before_o he_o with_o a_o sword_n draw_v 5._o num._n 22._o angel_n josuè_fw-fr adore_a fall_v flat_o down_o before_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o angel_n call_v he_o his_o lord_n know_v by_o the_o angel_n own_o testimony_n that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o angel_n who_o refuse_v it_o not_o but_o require_v yet_o more_o reverence_n command_v he_o to_o pluck_v of_o his_o shoe_n because_o the_o ground_n be_v holy_a no_o doubt_n so_o make_v by_o the_o presence_n only_o of_o the_o angel_n yea_o not_o only_o to_o angel_n person_n but_o even_o to_o great_a prophet_n this_o devotion_n be_v do_v as_o to_o daniel_n by_o nabuchodonosor_n 2._o who_o fall_v flat_a upon_o his_o face_n before_o he_o and_o do_v other_o great_a office_n of_o religion_n which_o the_o prophet_n refuse_v not_o because_o they_o be_v do_v to_o god_n rather_o than_o to_o he_o as_o s._n hierom_n defend_v the_o same_o against_o porphyry_n who_o charge_v daniel_n with_o intolerable_a pride_n therein_o and_o the_o say_v holy_a doctor_n allege_v the_o fact_n of_o alexander_n the_o great_a that_o do_v the_o like_a to_o jaddus_n joiadas_n the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o âewes_n howsoever_o that_o be_v for_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n there_o mention_v there_o may_v be_v some_o doubt_n which_o the_o church_n do_v always_o immediate_o to_o god_n and_o to_o no_o creature_n the_o fact_n of_o the_o prophet_n 4_o reg._n 2_o to_o elizeus_fw-la be_v plain_a where_o they_o perceive_v that_o the_o double_a grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o elias_n be_v give_v to_o he_o 13._o fall_v flat_o down_o at_o his_o foot_n and_o adore_a so_o do_v *_o the_o sunamite_n to_o omit_v that_o achior_n adore_v judith_n fall_v at_o her_o foot_n as_o a_o woman_n bless_v of_o god_n and_o infinite_a other_o place_n all_o which_o thing_n by_o compare_v the_o scripture_n our_o adversary_n shall_v have_v find_v to_o be_v lawful_o do_v to_o man_n and_o angel_n and_o sovereign_a holy_a creature_n whereby_o they_o may_v convince_v themselves_o &_o perceive_v that_o that_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v forbid_v s._n john_n to_o do_v to_o the_o angel_n which_o they_o pretend_v though_o the_o angel_n for_o cause_n may_v refuse_v even_o that_o which_o s._n john_n do_v lawful_o unto_o he_o as_o s._n peter_n do_v refuse_v the_o honour_n give_v he_o by_o cornelius_n according_a to_o s._n chrysostoms_n opinion_n he_o 23_o in_o c_o 10_o act._n yea_o even_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n if_o our_o adversary_n will_v look_v no_o further_o they_o may_v see_v where_o this_o augel_n prophesi_v &_o promise_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v fall_v down_o before_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o philadelphia_n and_o adore_v see_v the_o annot_n there_o chap._n xx._n a_o angel_n cast_v the_o dragon_n or_o devil_n bind_v into_o the_o depth_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o which_o the_o soul_n of_o martye_n in_o the_o first_o resurrection_n shall_v reign_v with_o christ_n 7_o after_o which_o year_n satan_n be_v let_v loose_a shall_v raise_v gog_n and_o magog_n a_o innumerable_a army_n against_o the_o belove_a city_n 9_o but_o a_o fire_n from_o heaven_n shall_v destroy_v they_o 12_o then_o book_n be_v open_v and_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n judge_v all_o the_o dead_a according_a to_o their_o work_n verse_n 1_o and_o i_o see_v a_o angel_n descend_v from_o heaven_n chapter_n have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a depth_n and_o a_o great_a chain_n in_o his_o hand_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o he_o apprehend_v the_o dragon_n the_o old_a serpent_n which_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n and_o â_o bind_v he_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o throw_v he_o into_o the_o depth_n and_o shut_v he_o up_o and_o seal_v over_o he_o that_o he_o seduce_v no_o more_o the_o nation_n till_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v consummate_v and_o after_o these_o thing_n he_o must_v be_v loose_v a_o little_a time_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o â_o i_o see_v seat_n and_o they_o sit_v upon_o they_o &_o judgement_n be_v give_v they_o â_o and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o behead_v for_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n and_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o adore_v not_o the_o beast_n not_o his_o image_n nor_o receive_v his_o character_n in_o their_o forehead_n or_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o have_v live_v and_o reign_v with_o christ_n 1._o a_o thousand_o year_n â_o verse_n 5_o â_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o dead_a live_v not_o till_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v consummate_v â³_o this_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n â_o verse_n 6_o bless_v and_o holy_a be_v he_o that_o have_v part_n in_o the_o first_o resurrection_n in_o these_o the_o second_o death_n have_v not_o power_n but_o â_o they_o shall_v be_v priest_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n and_o shall_v reign_v with_o he_o a_o thousand_o year_n â_o verse_n 7_o and_o when_o the_o thousand_o year_n shall_v be_v consummate_a â_o satan_n shall_v be_v loose_v out_o of_o his_o prison_n and_o shall_v go_v forth_o and_o seduce_v 11._o the_o nation_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n 2._o *_o gog_n and_o magog_n and_o shall_v gather_v they_o into_o battle_n the_o number_n of_o who_o be_v as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o they_o ascend_v upon_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v â_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o belove_a city_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o â_o there_o come_v down_o fire_n from_o god_n out_o of_o heaven_n and_o devour_v they_o â_o verse_n 10_o and_o the_o devil_n which_o seduce_v they_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o pool_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n 11._o where_o both_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o false-prophet_n shall_v be_v torment_v day_n and_o night_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o vision_z â_o verse_n 11_o and_o i_o see_v a_o great_a white_a throne_n and_o one_o sit_v upon_o it_o from_o who_o sight_n 14._o earth_n and_o heaven_n flee_v and_o there_o be_v no_o place_n find_v for_o they_o â_o verse_n 12_o and_o i_o see_v the_o dead_a great_a and_o little_a stand_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o throne_n and_o be_v book_n be_v open_v 27._o and_o *_o â_o a_o other_o book_n be_v open_v which_o be_v of_o life_n and_o the_o dead_a be_v judge_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n according_a to_o their_o work_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o the_o sea_n give_v the_o dead_a that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o death_n and_o hell_n give_v their_o dead_a that_o be_v in_o they_o and_o it_o be_v judge_v of_o every_o one_o according_a to_o their_o work_n â_o verse_n 14_o and_o hell_n and_o death_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o pool_n of_o fire_n this_o be_v the_o second_o death_n â_o verse_n 15_o and_o life_n he_o that_o be_v not_o find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o pool_n of_o fire_n annotation_n chap._n xx._n 2._o bind_v he_o christ_n by_o his_o passion_n have_v abridge_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n until_o antichrist_n time_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v loose_v again_o that_o be_v be_v permit_v to_o deceive_v the_o world_n but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n only_o to_o wit_n three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a 4_o i_o see_v seat_n s._n augustine_n li._n 20_o de_fw-fr civit._n dei_fw-la c._n 9_o take_v this_o to_o be_v speak_v not_o
71._o 124._o nu_fw-la 14._o pag._n 558._o mediator_n â_o see_v saint_n how_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a mediator_n 568._o merit_n and_o meritorious_a 72_o mark_fw-mi it_o have_v correspondence_n and_o relation_n to_o merces_fw-la hire_n or_o reward_n 13._o 16._o 112_o mark_fw-mi 430._o 719_o mar_v 744_o mark_fw-mi 543_o mark_fw-mi both_o the_o meaning_n and_o word_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n 197_o m._n 198._o 430._o 639_o m._n 537_o m._n 705_o m._n 553_o m._n whence_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n rise_v 72_o mark_fw-mi 402._o 411._o 430._o 594._o 470._o difference_n of_o merit_n 58._o 37._o 486._o 430._o 193_o m._n we_o merit_v not_o our_o first_o justification_n see_v justification_n to_o be_v worthy_a &_o to_o merit_n be_v all_o one_o 198._o 197_o m._n 705._o mark_fw-mi 537_o mark_fw-mi 553_o mar_v the_o time_n of_o merit_v be_v in_o this_o life_n only_o 245_o m._n see_v work_n the_o protestant_n avoid_v the_o word_n merit_n 639._o the_o caluinist_n deny_v christ_n own_o merit_n 529._o 708_o m._n miracle_n â_o necessary_a to_o cofirme_v new_a doctrine_n 27._o nu_fw-la 1._o p._n 263._o nu_fw-la 24._o p._n 298._o nu_fw-la 82._o p._n 492._o nu_fw-la 12._o true_a miracle_n only_o in_o the_o cath._n church_n 50._o nu_fw-la 19_o 20._o p._n 124._o nu_fw-la 22._o when_o heretic_n may_v work_v true_a miracle_n p._n 112._o nu_fw-la 38._o forge_v or_o lie_a miracle_n 7â_n nu_fw-la 84._o p._n 559._o nu_fw-la 9_o p._n 722_o mark_fw-mi miracle_n wrought_v by_o application_n of_o creature_n by_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o other_o holy_a man_n by_o saint_n and_o their_o relic_n s._n peter_n shadow_n s._n paul_n napkin_n 112._o 104._o nu_fw-la 13_o 231._o 261_o 298._o 304._o 312._o 326._o 350._o 372._o by_o touch_v christ_n and_o whatsoever_o belong_v to_o he_o 93_o mark_fw-mi 106._o 108._o miracle_n in_o one_o place_n and_o at_o one_o time_n more_o than_o in_o other_o 147._o 231._o 456_o mark_fw-mi peculiar_a to_o certain_a country_n 370_o m._n 372._o the_o protestant_n as_o faithless_a to_o believe_v such_o miracle_n as_o the_o old_a pagan_n 261._o they_o attribute_v they_o to_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o heathen_a do_v p._n 24_o in_o mark_fw-mi they_o pretend_v pharisaical_o god_n honour_n in_o derogate_a from_o the_o miracle_n of_o saint_n 246_o mark_fw-mi the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n in_o the_o church_n for_o edification_n 132._o christ_n miracle_n significative_a 247_o m._n monk_n &_o monastical_a life_n whether_o they_o shall_v work_v with_o their_o hand_n 561._o 562._o they_o be_v shave_v în_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o nun_n clip_v of_o their_o hair_n 562._o see_v exemites_n religious_a n_o have_v of_o christian_n 323._o of_o the_o author_n of_o sect_n ibid._n of_o the_o first_o instituter_n of_o several_a religious_a order_n ibidem_fw-la neuter_n 33._o 706._o novelty_n of_o word_n &_o phrase_n 584._o not_o all_o new_a that_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n ibid._n how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v try_v novelty_n of_o word_n ibid._n number_n mystical_a 94._o 700._o the_o protestant_n rashness_n in_o condemn_a number_n of_o prayer_n fast_n mass_n etc._n etc._n 700._o o_o original_a sin_n see_v sinne._n order_n â_o the_o three_o holy_a order_n bind_v to_o chastity_n 571._o bigami_fw-la exclude_v from_o holy_a order_n 570._o 579._o 596._o all_o seven_o order_n have_v be_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n 572._o the_o institution_n and_o office_n of_o deacon_n 305._o holy_a order_n be_v a_o sacrament_n 577._o institute_v by_o christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n 204._o 452._o give_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n 330._o 332._o 577._o 586_o mark_fw-mi by_o a_o bishop_n not_o by_o the_o people_n voice_n 332._o it_o give_v grace_n 586_o mark_fw-mi none_o to_o be_v admit_v without_o good_a examination_n 579_o mark_fw-mi prayer_n and_o fast_v at_o the_o time_n of_o give_v holy_a order_n 154._o 332._o mark_fw-mi see_v imber_n day_n oath_n that_o be_v unlawful_a must_v not_o be_v keep_v pag._n 38_o mark_fw-mi 361._o p_o have_v or_o indulgence_n ground_v upon_o christ_n own_o word_n 474._o upon_o his_o example_n â_o 210._o 474._o upon_o his_o merit_n and_o the_o mutual_a satisfaction_n of_o one_o for_o a_o other_o pag._n 538._o practise_v by_o s._n paul_n 473._o 474._o by_o the_o holy_a bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 474._o a_o pardon_n be_v only_o a_o remission_n of_o temporal_a punishment_n due_a for_o sin_n 473._o 474._o 475._o why_o pardon_v more_o common_a now_o then_o in_o old_a time_n ibid._n to_o who_o this_o authority_n of_o pardon_v pertain_v 47._o nu_fw-la 19_o pag._n 473._o 474._o 475._o 538._o all_o pardon_n be_v give_v in_o the_o virtue_n and_o name_n of_o christ_n 474._o parent_n the_o duty_n towards_o they_o 142._o 106._o carnal_a parent_n &_o friend_n in_o what_o case_n less_o esteem_v 159_o mark_fw-mi 176_o mar_v 181_o mark_fw-mi duty_n towards_o our_o spiritual_a parent_n 600_o mark_fw-mi see_v priest_n penance_n be_v perfect_a repentance_n â_o that_o be_v not_o only_a amendment_n of_o life_n but_o imply_v also_o confession_n sorrowful_a contrition_n and_o painful_a satisfaction_n pag._n 8._o 30._o 167_o mark_fw-mi that_o the_o greek_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d &_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v this_o penance_n p._n â_o 30._o 171_o mark_fw-mi 177_o mark_fw-mi 716_o mark_fw-mi 492_o m._n s_o john_n baptist_n first_o than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n preach_v penance_n 7._o 8._o 88_o mark_fw-mi 143_o mark_fw-mi 295_o mark_fw-mi 352_o mark_fw-mi 366_o mark_fw-mi s._n john_n baptist_n penance_n 8._o 156_o mark_fw-mi marry_o magdalen_n penance_n 157_o mark_fw-mi the_o great_a penance_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n 475._o 492_o mark_fw-mi the_o old_a canonical_a discipline_n ib._n s._n paul_n chasten_v of_o his_o body_n by_o penance_n 444._o temporal_a pain_n remain_v due_a when_o the_o sin_n be_v remit_v 635._o satisfaction_n or_o work_n of_o penance_n pag._n 8._o nu_fw-la 8._o 143_o mark_fw-mi 195._o 314._o 454._o 473._o 482._o 630._o 645._o nu_fw-la â3_n 717_o mark_fw-mi they_o derogat_v nothing_o from_o christ_n satisfaction_n but_o be_v requisite_a because_o of_o the_o same_o 402._o 473._o 538._o 611._o the_o body_n chastise_v by_o penance_n be_v a_o grateful_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n 413._o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n handle_v at_o large_a 276._o the_o necessity_n thereof_o as_o of_o baptism_n pag._n 277._o it_o be_v secunda_fw-la tabula_fw-la post_fw-la naufragium_fw-la 277._o the_o contempt_n thereof_o a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 33._o nu_fw-la 31._o the_o part_n thereof_o contrition_n confession_n satisfaction_n 276._o what_o be_v contrition_n 483._o 294_o mark_fw-mi luther_n heresy_n of_o contrition_n 483._o it_o work_v salvation_n ibidem_fw-la we_o be_v bind_v to_o confess_v 276._o see_v confession_n all_o sin_n may_v be_v remit_v by_o this_o sacrament_n 613._o 629._o it_o be_v the_o old_a heresy_n of_o the_o novatians_n to_o deny_v that_o confession_n to_o a_o priest_n be_v necessary_a and_o his_o absolution_n 276._o 277._o see_v absolution_n priest_n god_n wonderful_a mercy_n towards_o penitent_a sinner_n 183_o mark_fw-mi penance_n before_o baptism_n 295_o mark_fw-mi perfection_n double_a one_o in_o this_o life_n a_o other_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v 532._o the_o state_n of_o perfection_n see_v monastical_a life_n religious_a permission_n of_o some_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o allow_v or_o approve_v 116._o toleration_n of_o the_o evil_a 256._o persecution_n catholic_a man_n comfort_n in_o persecution_n 26_o mark_fw-mi 154._o 163_o m._n 202_o m._n 663._o nu_fw-la 17._o pag._n 702_o m._n 723._o nu_fw-la 7._o their_o secret_a assemble_v in_o persecution_n 71._o their_o praise_n in_o who_o house_n such_o assembly_n be_v keep_v 325_o mark_fw-mi 342_o mark_fw-mi 421_o mark_fw-mi there_o shall_v be_v great_a persecution_n of_o catholic_a man_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 122._o and_o 199._o mark_fw-mi 727_o mark_fw-mi constancy_n in_o persecution_n necessary_a ibidem_fw-la mark_fw-mi 706._o high_o commend_v 702._o mark_fw-mi 723._o to_o look_v back_o upon_o their_o loss_n be_v dangerous_a 166._o to_o forsake_v all_o rather_o than_o the_o cathol_n faith_n be_v necessary_a 181_o and_o 182_o m._n the_o better_a man_n most_o afflict_v in_o this_o life_n 663._o the_o church_n persecute_v by_o heretic_n and_o contrariwise_o 505_o m._n flee_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n 325_o mark_fw-mi wise_a evasion_n to_o escape_v danger_n by_o s._n paul_n example_n 358._o nu_fw-la 25._o 359_o mar_v 341._o nu_fw-la 37._o pag._n 364_o mark_fw-mi not_o to_o forsake_v our_o pastor_n imprison_v 529_o mark_fw-mi happy_a gailer_n that_o show_v mercy_n to_o their_o catho_n prisoner_n 341_o mark_fw-mi the_o courtesy_n of_o heathen_a officer_n in_o this_o case_n 359_o m._n to_o consent_v by_o any_o mean_n to_o the_o persecution_n of_o such_o be_v a_o great_a offence_n 357_o mark_fw-mi persecution_n a_o occasion_n of_o much_o good_a 310_o mark_fw-mi the_o church_n
may_v be_v break_v and_o otherwise_o employ_v 78._o nu_fw-la 10._o pag._n 92._o nu_fw-la 25._o saint_n know_v our_o do_n &_o heart_n â_o &_o hear_v our_o prayer_n 64._o 184._o 186._o m._n 187._o 428._o 457._o m._n they_o be_v as_o angel_n 198._o they_o may_v be_v present_a with_o the_o live_n 49._o 110._o m._n at_o their_o own_o tomb_n &_o monument_n 711._o pray_v to_o saint_n &_o that_o they_o pray_v for_o us._n 380_o m._n 186._o 304._o 471._o 668_o at_o large_a 679._o 709._o 711._o 717._o 309._o m._n they_o be_v our_o mediator_n a_o advocate_n without_o any_o derogation_n to_o christ_n 471._o 568._o 678._o 679._o 714_o m._n how_o christ_n be_v our_o only_a mediator_n and_o only_a advocate_n 568._o 678._o 679._o the_o conclusion_n of_o all_o prayer_n be_v per_fw-la christum_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la 265_o mark_fw-mi the_o protestant_n argument_n answer_v 409._o 607._o 608._o 611._o nu_fw-la 9_o 568._o 678._o vigilantius_n their_o father_n &_o founder_n of_o this_o heresy_n refute_v by_o s._n hierom_n 711._o how_o s._n hierom_n say_v that_o christ_n &_o his_o saint_n be_v every_o where_o ibidem_fw-la their_o festivity_n or_o holiday_n 7._o nu_fw-la 16._o 75._o m._n 507._o at_o large_a 668._o their_o memory_n or_o commemoration_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n 332._o 454._o 726._o canonise_a of_o saint_n 7._o their_o miracle_n 33._o nu_fw-la 24._o see_v miracle_n relic_n the_o great_a honour_n of_o saint_n and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o derogation_n to_o christ_n honour_n 55._o nu_fw-la 28._o pag._n 350._o nu_fw-la 16._o pag._n 553_o mark_fw-mi 577._o 601._o 653._o 703_o mark_fw-mi 704._o 714_o mark_fw-mi 720_o mark_fw-mi 742_o mark_fw-mi they_o be_v patroness_n of_o man_n and_o country_n 404._o they_o be_v call_v saviour_n redeemer_n etc._n etc._n without_o derogation_n to_o christ_n 569._o 577._o 653._o 308_o mark_fw-mi our_o hope_n 548_o mark_fw-mi god_n and_o our_o lady_n save_o we_o &_o the_o like_a speech_n 337._o 700._o to_o believe_v in_o saint_n 409._o nu_fw-la 14._o pag._n 601._o salvation_n no_o man_n sure_a of_o his_o salvation_n but_o in_o hope_n 263._o 394._o 402._o nu_fw-la 16._o pag._n 403._o 418._o 433._o 444._o 493._o 530._o 393._o mark_fw-mi see_v f._n the_o protestant_n special_a faith_n satisfaction_n see_v penance_n satisfactory_a work_n of_o one_o for_o a_o other_o 474._o 485._o 538._o satisfaction_n enjoin_v 143_o m._n schism_n prefigure_v in_o the_o jew_v schismatical_a temple_n 166._o 227._o 228._o 448._o in_o jeroboam_n calf_n and_o altar_n 448._o in_o corè_fw-la darhan_n abiron_n 482._o 695._o contrary_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n 456_o 501._o nu_fw-la 9_o pag._n 519._o 520._o detestable_a and_o sacrilegious_a 520._o the_o beginning_n of_o all_o schism_n 426_o mark_fw-mi in_o schism_n no_o work_n available_a to_o salvation_n 14._o nu_fw-la 24._o pag._n 180._o 263._o nu_fw-la 4._o pag._n 457._o num_fw-la 1._o see_v church_n schismatic_n schismatical_a service_n &_o sermon_n to_o be_v avoid_v 94._o 482._o 590._o 225_o mark_fw-mi special_o the_o communion_n 442._o 447._o 448._o see_v heretic_n and_o heresy_n scandal_n 112_o mark_fw-mi 356._o 386_o mark_fw-mi scripture_n canonical_a and_o not_o canonical_a discern_v and_o judge_v by_o the_o church_n 499._o 500_o see_v pag._n 2_o after_o the_o preface_n s._n augustine_n sentence_n cite_v at_o large_a the_o scripture_n and_o church_n whether_o be_v elder_a and_o of_o more_o authority_n 500_o the_o protestant_n deny_v many_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o they_o be_v repugnant_a to_o their_o heresy_n see_v heretic_n they_o many_o way_n corrupt_v the_o scripture_n see_v heretic_n private_a fantastical_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n 669._o 672._o all_o heretic_n and_o the_o devil_n himself_o allege_v scripture_n but_o false_o p._n 5._o nu_fw-la 25._o p._n 11._o nu_fw-la 6._o p._n 34._o 145_o m._n 162._o nu_fw-la 20._o p._n 261._o 402._o 14._o nu_fw-la 35._o 39_o pa._n 613._o 645._o 651._o nu_fw-la 12._o p._n 646._o nu_fw-la 21._o p._n 682._o 711._o 740._o woman_n great_a tatler_n &_o talker_n of_o scripture_n 568._o not_o the_o great_a talker_n and_o hearer_n thereof_o but_o the_o doer_n be_v bless_v 698_o m._n the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o profound_a sense_n 232._o 508._o hard_a to_o understand_v 151_o mark_fw-mi 311_o mark_fw-mi 558._o nu_fw-la 6._o pag._n 613._o nu_fw-la 4._o pag._n 672._o 673._o 661._o nu_fw-la 19_o p._n 662_o mark_fw-mi 740._o s._n paul_n epistle_n hard_a about_o justification_n by_o faith_n and_o therefore_o misconstrue_v of_o old_a and_o new_a heretic_n 389._o 646._o 672._o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n hear_v concern_v predestination_n 404_o mark_fw-mi the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n 699._o the_o protestant_n count_v all_o scripture_n easy_a for_o every_o man_n to_o understand_v by_o his_o private_a spirit_n &_o therefore_o they_o reject_v the_o doctor_n exposition_n &_o admit_v nothing_o but_o scripture_n 672._o their_o foolish_a distinction_n that_o s._n paul_n epistle_n be_v not_o hard_o but_o the_o matter_n he_o write_v of_o ibid._n the_o self_n same_o scripture_n allege_v by_o the_o old_a heretic_n and_o the_o protestant_n and_o answer_v by_o the_o father_n long_a ago_o 444._o nu_fw-la 5._o pag._n 575._o 646._o 711._o 712._o the_o scripture_n consist_v in_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o which_o be_v only_o in_o the_o cath._n church_n 477._o nu_fw-la 6._o p._n 669._o nu_fw-la 20._o the_o bare_a letter_n kill_v both_o jew_n &_o heretic_n 477._o they_o search_n not_o the_o scripture_n deep_o but_o superficial_o 232._o who_o be_v the_o little_a one_o that_o best_a understand_v the_o scripture_n 30._o nu_fw-la 25._o p._n 169._o nu_fw-la 21._o the_o ancient_a father_n humility_n in_o read_v and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n 67â_n 5â8_n 661._o nu_fw-la 19_o pag._n 699._o catholic_a doctor_n only_o be_v right_a handler_n of_o the_o scripture_n 590._o the_o curse_n for_o add_v and_o diminish_v thereof_o and_o that_o it_o pertain_v to_o heretic_n not_o to_o catholic_a expositor_n 45._o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v call_v prophecy_n 413_o mark_fw-mi when_o the_o same_o be_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n ibid._n of_o the_o translate_n and_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o they_o &_o with_o what_o humility_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v &_o of_o many_o other_o point_n concern_v the_o sacred_a scripture_n see_v the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n the_o text_n corrupt_v by_o old_a heretic_n 684._o 687._o scripture_n have_v not_o only_o a_o literal_a sense_n but_o also_o a_o mystical_a and_o allegorical_a 7._o nu_fw-la 15._o pag._n 508._o 607_o mark_fw-mi 614_o mark_fw-mi the_o protestant_n deride_v the_o mystical_a interpretation_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n 614_o mark_fw-mi the_o people_n may_v not_o judge_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o of_o their_o pastor_n exposition_n 344._o the_o comfort_n and_o profit_n of_o christian_a cathol_n man_n in_o read_v and_o hear_v the_o scripture_n 344._o 419_o mark_fw-mi 592._o what_o they_o find_v in_o search_v the_o scripture_n 230._o not_o only_o scripture_n but_o tradition_n also_o 622._o mark_fw-mi 559._o 592._o 279_o mark_fw-mi 678_o mark_fw-mi 717_o mark_fw-mi the_o apostle_n and_o church_n precept_n 336_o mark_fw-mi see_v tradition_n the_o church_n order_n in_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o her_o divine_a service_n see_v church_n sect_n take_v sometime_o in_o good_a part_n but_o now_o in_o the_o evil_a 373._o 362_o mark_fw-mi simony_n what_o and_o why_o so_o call_v 314._o what_o a_o heinous_a sin_n ibid._n nu_fw-la 22._o sin_n original_a &_o actual_a 395._o nu_fw-la 14._o 676._o nu_fw-la 7._o all_o conceive_a and_o bear_v in_o original_a sin_n christ_n except_v and_o his_o b._n mother_n 395._o no_o man_n live_v without_o sin_n 676._o nu_fw-la 8._o pag._n 16._o s._n augustine_n except_v our_o b._n lady_n ibidem_fw-la sin_n mortal_a and_o venial_a 14._o 16._o 385._o 643._o 676._o not_o god_n but_o the_o devil_n be_v author_n of_o sin_n 36_o m._n see_v god_n how_o the_o devil_n sin_v from_o the_o beginning_n 682._o concupiscence_n cause_n of_o sin_n 642_o m._n all_o sin_n procee_v of_o three_o special_a thing_n mention_v by_o s._n john_n 677_o mark_fw-mi the_o la_o do_v not_o cause_n sin_n 395._o 398_o m._n mortal_a sin_n exclude_v grace_n and_o justice_n 682._o venial_a sin_n consist_v with_o grace_n and_o true_a justice_n 676._o example_n of_o venial_a sin_n 676._o how_o they_o be_v take_v away_o without_o any_o sacrament_n 258._o they_o may_v be_v forgive_v after_o death_n 94._o all_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v by_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n 676._o many_o secundarie_n mean_n &_o instrument_n of_o remission_n by_o which_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v apply_v 676._o what_o be_v mean_v by_o sin_z cover_v and_o not_o impute_v 392._o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 33._o nu_fw-la 31._o sin_n cry_v
so_o often_o as_o chief_a of_o the_o company_n mar._n 1_o 36._o act._n 5_o 29._o luc._n 9_o 12._o mar._n 16_o 7._o 1_o cor._n 15_o 5._o 5._o see_v the_o annotation_n upon_o s._n mark_n c._n 5_o 36._o holy_a woman_n that_o follow_v christ_n 1_o cor._n 9_o 5._o 1â_n the_o brethren_n of_o christ_n hiero._n count_v heluid_fw-la c._n 9_o ibidenâ_n 8._o a_o three_o place_n after_o this_o life_n the_o gospel_n upon_o thursday_n in_o whitson_n week_n week_n to_o command_v devil_n and_o disease_n either_o of_o body_n or_o soul_n be_v by_o nature_n proper_a to_o god_n only_o but_o by_o god_n gift_n man_n also_o may_v have_v the_o same_o even_o so_o to_o forgive_v sin_n mt._n 10_o 1_o mr._n 3_o 13_o 6_o 8._o 8._o a_o great_a fault_n to_o reject_v the_o true_a preacher_n or_o not_o to_o admit_v they_o into_o house_n for_o needful_a harbour_n and_o sustenance_n mt._n 14_o 1_o mar._n 6_o 14._o mt._n 14_o 13._o mar._n 6_o 31._o io._n 6_o 5._o 5._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d here_o you_o see_v that_o he_o bless_v the_o thing_n and_o not_o only_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n see_v annot._n marci_n c._n 8_o 7._o 7._o the_o miraculous_a providence_n of_o god_n towards_o such_o as_o follow_v christ_n into_o desert_n prison_n banishment_n or_o whithersoever_o mt._n 16_o 13._o mar._n 8_o 27._o the_o transfiguration_n mt._n 17_o 1_o mr._n 9_o 1._o 2._o pet._n 1_o 17._o mt._n 17_o 14._o mar._n 9_o 17._o 17._o incredultie_n hinder_v the_o effect_n of_o exorcism_n and_o other_o miraculous_a power_n give_v to_o the_o church_n church_n desire_v of_o preeminence_n be_v a_o humane_a infirmity_n often_o even_o among_o the_o good_a against_o which_o christ_n teach_v humility_n but_o forbid_v not_o superiority_n mt._n 18_o 1_o mar._n 9_o 34._o mar._n 9_o 38._o 38._o there_o be_v some_o that_o follow_v not_o christ_n precise_o in_o life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o who_o we_o may_v make_v our_o advantage_n to_o the_o propagation_n of_o christ_n honour_n and_o religion_n when_o they_o do_v any_o thing_n for_o the_o advamcement_n thereof_o of_o what_o intention_n soever_o they_o do_v it_o philip._n 1_o 15._o 15._o they_o as_o elias_n also_o do_v mt._n 8_o 19_o 19_o this_o man_n will_v have_v follow_v he_o for_o temporal_a commodity_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o suffer_v the_o transfiguration_n io._n 4._o 9_o schismatic_n â_o re_fw-mi ãâã_d â7_n tob._n â_o desire_v of_o revenge_n act._n 5._o the_o church_n severity_n look_v back_o back_o as_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n do_v represent_v the_o high_a degree_n of_o the_o clergy_n call_v bishop_n so_o these_o seventie_o two_o bear_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n call_v priest_n beda_n the_o gospel_n upon_o s._n mark_v day_n and_o s._n luke_n 1._o tim._n 5_o 18._o 18._o difference_n of_o pain_n and_o damnation_n in_o hell_n according_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o demerit_n aug._n li._n â_o c._n 5._o cont_n julian._n julian._n true_a penance_n not_o only_o to_o lead_v a_o new_a life_n but_o to_o punish_v the_o body_n by_o such_o thing_n as_o here_o be_v record_v for_o the_o ill_a life_n past_a past_a it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o despise_v christ_n and_o to_o despise_v his_o priest_n and_o minister_n in_o the_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o refuse_v his_o doctrine_n &_o they_o the_o gospel_n upon_o 12_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n deu._n 6_o 5_o leu._n 19_o 18._o 18._o s._n augustin_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 9_o according_a to_o this_o place_n do_v supererogate_v that_o be_v do_v more_o than_o he_o need_v or_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v when_o he_o may_v have_v require_v all_o duty_n for_o preach_v the_o gospel_n but_o will_v nor_o li._n the_o ep_n monach._n c._n 5._o whereof_o it_o come_v that_o the_o work_n which_o we_o do_v more_o than_o precept_n be_v call_v work_n of_o supererogation_n &_o whereby_o it_o be_v also_o evident_a against_o the_o protestant_n that_o there_o be_v such_o work_n see_v optatus_n li._n 6._o cont_n parâân_n how_o apt_o he_o appli_v this_o parable_n to_o s._n paul_n counsel_n of_o virginity_n 1_o cor._n 7_o as_o to_o a_o work_n of_o supererogation_n supererogation_n superogaveris_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o assumption_n of_o our_o lady_n aug._n 15._o the_o humble_a unlearned_a catholic_a know_v christ_n better_o than_o the_o proud_a learned_a heretic_n the_o commandment_n possible_a to_o be_v keep_v conc._n araus_n â_o cap._n 25._o to_o 1._o the_o parable_n of_o the_o wound_a man_n explicate_v conc._n conc_fw-fr trid._n s_n 6._o c._n 1._o the_o contemplative_a or_o religious_a life_n better_a than_o the_o active_a and_o secular_a vow_n and_o votary_n mt._n 6_o 9_o the_o gospel_n in_o majoribus_fw-la âitanijs_fw-la on_o s._n mark_v day_n and_o in_o the_o rogation_n day_n and_o in_o a_o votive_a mass_n against_o the_o pagan_n the_o gospel_n in_o a_o votive_a mass_n for_o sin_n mt._n 7._o 7._o mt._n 12_o 22._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 3_o sunday_n in_o lent_n mr._n 3_o 22._o 22._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d this_o finger_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n mt._n 12_o 28._o 28._o novissima_fw-la siunt_fw-la siunt_fw-la the_o gospel_n upon_o assumption_n eve_o and_o in_o a_o votive_a of_o our_o lady_n between_o candlemas_n and_o easter_n and_o between_o pentecost_n and_o advent_a advent_a the_o say_a mother_n of_o god_n in_o that_o also_o be_v bless_v that_o she_o be_v the_o temporal_a mean_n &_o minister_n of_o the_o incarnation_n but_o much_o more_o bless_a in_o that_o she_o continue_v the_o perpetual_a keeper_n of_o his_o word_n beda_n aug._n tract_n 19_o in_o joan._n mt._n 12_o 29._o jon._n 2_o 2._o 3_o reg._n 10_o 1._o jon._n 3_o 5._o 5._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d mark_v that_o the_o great_a penance_n of_o the_o ninivites_fw-la jonae_fw-la 3_o be_v here_o express_v by_o this_o greek_a word_n see_v annot_n mat._n 3_o 2._o the_o gospel_n for_o a_o confessor_n that_o be_v bishop_n mt._n 5_o 15._o mar._n 4_o 21._o mt._n 6_o 22._o mt._n 23_o 25._o 25._o quod_fw-la superest_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o gospel_n for_o many_o martyr_n martyr_n not_o the_o build_n of_o the_o prophet_n monument_n be_v condemn_v but_o their_o imitation_n of_o their_o father_n that_o slay_v the_o prophet_n ambros_n gen._n 4_o 8_o 2._o par._n 24_o 22._o beda_n upon_o this_o place_n our_o b._n lady_n the_o sign_n of_o jonas_n ecclci_fw-la 3_o 33._o the_o force_n of_o alm_n dan._n 4_o 24_o tob._n 4_o 12_o 11._o 9_o mat._n 25._o 35_o 42._o the_o lawyer_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n mr._n 10_o 26._o mar._n 4_o 22._o 22._o the_o fear_n of_o hell_n also_o be_v profitable_a contrary_a to_o the_o protestant_n teach_v security_n of_o salvation_n and_o that_o fear_v of_o hell_n make_v man_n hypocrite_n mt._n 10_o 32._o mar._n 8_o 38._o mt._n 12_o 33._o 33._o see_v annot._n mt._n 12_o 32._o mr._n 3_o 28_o mt._n 10_o 19_o mar._n 13_o 11._o 11._o give_v it_o to_o the_o poor_a that_o shall_v thou_o do_v say_v s._n basil_n basil_n a_o goodly_a warning_n for_o all_o scotfree_a man_n mt._n 6_o 25_o 25_o he_o forbid_v not_o competent_a providence_n but_o to_o much_o carefulness_n see_v annot._n upon_o s._n matth._n c._n 6_o 25._o 25._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o gospel_n for_o s._n paulinus_n jun._n 22._o and_o for_o a_o confessor_n that_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n bishop_n it_o be_v little_a at_o the_o begin_n &_o be_v still_o in_o comparison_n of_o all_o the_o reprobate_n but_o in_o itself_o very_o great_a as_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o great_a tree_n that_o grow_v of_o the_o little_a mustard_n seed_n mt._n 13._o mt._n 6_o 20._o 20._o the_o gospel_n for_o a_o confessor_n that_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n bishop_n to_o gird_v our_o loin_n be_v to_o keep_v chastity_n and_o continency_n gregor_n ho._n ãâã_d mt._n 24_o 43._o mt._n 10_o 34._o 34._o he_o mean_v the_o naughty_a peace_n that_o be_v between_o worldling_n &_o sinner_n the_o agreement_n that_o be_v in_o infidelity_n in_o heresy_n or_o in_o any_o other_o wickedness_n he_o come_v to_o break_v this_o peace_n see_v annot._n matth._n c._n 10_o 34._o mt._n 16_o 2_o 2_o see_v annot._n mt._n 5_o 25._o mt._n 5_o 25_o open_v confession_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v every_o unlearned_a catholic_a too_o give_v sufficient_a reason_n of_o his_o faith_n the_o deal_n of_o clergy_n man_n in_o worldly_a affair_n in_o vita_fw-la c._n 19_o li._n de_fw-fr open_fw-mi monach._n c._n 29._o meritorious_a work_n alm_n alm_n or_o as_o it_o be_v utter_v in_o other_o place_n do_v penance_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o which_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n signify_v perfect_a repentance_n see_v annotation_n mat._n 3_o 2._o 11_o 21._o 21._o nisi_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la habueritis_fw-la
li._n 2._o c._n 39_o io._n 20_o 31._o hier._n in_o catal._n catal._n io._n 21_o 20._o 20._o mat._n 4._o 21._o 21._o mat._n 4._o 21._o 21._o act._n 12_o 2._o 2._o io._n 13_o 23._o 24._o etc._n etc._n 21_o 20._o 20._o io._n 13_o 23._o 24._o etc._n etc._n 21_o 20._o 20._o io._n 13_o 23._o 24._o etc._n etc._n 21_o 20._o 20._o io._n 20_o 4._o 4._o io._n 21_o 7._o the_o 1._o part_n the_o act_n of_o christ_n before_o his_o manifestation_n while_o john_n baptist_n be_v yet_o baptise_v the_o gospel_n at_o the_o three_o mass_n upon_o christmas_n day_n and_o every_o day_n at_o the_o end_n of_o mass_n mass_n nothing_o that_o be_v make_v et_fw-la verbum_fw-la caro_fw-la factum_fw-la est._n est._n he_o be_v prefer_v &_o make_v of_o more_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n than_o i_o because_o he_o be_v before_o i_o &_o all_o thing_n eternal_a god_n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 3_o sunday_n in_o advent_a mal._n 4_o 5_o deu._n 18_o 15._o 15._o by_o like_o the_o jew_n ignorant_o understand_v not_o the_o place_n in_o deuteronomie_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o they_o ask_v also_o whether_o he_o be_v the_o prophet_n there_o speak_v of_o see_v also_o c._n 7_o 40._o esa_n 40_o 3._o mt._n 3_o 11._o 11._o he_o do_v often_o here_o signify_v the_o great_a difference_n of_o his_o baptism_n &_o of_o christ_n as_o of_o his_o person_n &_o christ_n see_v annot._n mat._n 3._o mr._n 1_o 8._o lu._n 3_o 16._o the_o gospel_n on_o the_o octave_n of_o the_o epiphanie_n epiphanie_n sin_n agnus_n dei_fw-la at_o mass_n the_o gospel_n upon_o s._n andrews_n eve_o eve_o messiah_n in_o hebrew_n in_o greek_a christ_n in_o english_a anoint_v to_o wit_n with_o the_o spiritual_a oil_n of_o grace_n above_o his_o brethren_n ps_n 44._o 44._o cephas_n in_o syriake_n &_o peter_n in_o greek_a in_o english_a rock_n see_v mat._n 16_o 18._o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o votive_a mass_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n gen._n 28_o 12._o how_o god_n the_o son_n be_v call_v the_o word_n the_o platonike_v august_n de_fw-fr ciu._n dei_fw-la li._n 10_o c._n 29._o the_o word_n coeternal_a with_o the_o father_n distinct_a in_o person_n and_o of_o the_o father_n calu._n inst_z li._n 1_o c._n 13._o sect_n 23_o &_o 25._o the_o word_n true_a god_n by_o nature_n 1_o io._n c._n 5_o 20._o the_o protestant_n be_v like_o the_o wrangle_n arian_n the_o word_n not_o a_o creature_n but_o the_o creator_n freewill_a humble_a kneel_v at_o the_o solemn_a word_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n how_o mortal_a man_n see_v god_n the_o b._n trinity_n peter_n by_o his_o new_a name_n design_v to_o be_v the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n cephas_n petrus_n li._n 2_o c._n 12_o in_o joan._n the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 2_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiphanie_n epiphanie_n he_o that_o see_v water_n turn_v in_o to_o wine_n need_v not_o dispute_v or_o doubt_v how_o christ_n change_v bread_n into_o his_o body_n the_o gospel_n upon_o monday_n in_o the_o four_o week_n of_o lent_n ps_n 68_o 10._o mt._n 26._o 61._o 27_o 40._o christ_n with_o his_o presence_n honour_v and_o approve_v marriage_n cyril_n in_o 2_o io._n c._n 22._o our_o lady_n intercession_n translatour_n of_o holy_a scripture_n our_o lady_n doubt_v not_o but_o christ_n will_v grant_v her_o petition_n li._n 2_o in_o io._n c._n 23._o profaner_n of_o god_n church_n be_v to_o be_v punish_v in_o soul_n &_o body_n by_o the_o spiritual_a power_n the_o b._n sacrament_n be_v not_o to_o be_v give_v to_o novice_n or_o youngling_n in_o faith_n tract_n in_o io._n 11._o the_o gospel_n upon_o holy_a rood_n day_n maij_fw-la â_o â_o we_o follow_v rather_o s._n august_n &_o those_o ancient_a father_n which_o most_o common_o understand_v this_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o not_o of_o the_o windeâ_n although_o both_o sense_n be_v good_a nu._n 21_o 9_o the_o gospel_n upon_o monday_n in_o the_o whitsonweeke_n io._n 1_o 19_o io._n 1_o 20._o baptism_n in_o water_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n august_n haeres_fw-la 18._o baptism_n in_o two_o case_n not_o necessary_a but_o otherwise_o supply_v every_o infidel_n and_o namely_o heretic_n be_v judge_v already_o gal._n 5_o 6._o tit._n 3_o 11â_n the_o excellency_n of_o christ_n power_n and_o grace_n grace_n he_o do_v not_o baptize_v ordinary_o yet_o that_o he_o baptize_v his_o apostle_n s._n aug._n think_v it_o very_o probable_a ep_v 108._o gen._n 48_o 22._o the_o gospel_n upon_o friday_n in_o the_o â_o week_n in_o lent_n lent_n this_o woman_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n not_o yet_o justify_v but_o now_o to_o be_v justify_v aug._n tract_n 15_o in_o loan_n loan_n there_o be_v many_o other_o cause_n why_o the_o faithful_a jew_n can_v not_o abide_v the_o samaritan_n but_o their_o precise_a abstain_v from_o their_o company_n &_o conversation_n be_v their_o schismatical_a temple_n and_o service_n in_o mount_n garîzim_n garîzim_n he_o speak_v of_o his_o baptise_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n see_v io._n c._n 7_o 39_o deu._n 12_o 6._o ps_n 121_o 13._o 4_o reg._n 17_o 28_o 36._o 36._o this_o woman_n mystical_o be_v the_o church_n it_o be_v here_o signify_v that_o they_o which_o at_o the_o first_o believe_v because_o the_o church_n teach_v so_o afterward_o be_v much_o confirm_v find_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n also_o and_o by_o other_o instruction_n mt._n 4_o 12_o mr._n 1_o 14_o luc._n 4_o 14._o io._n 2_o 9_o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 20_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n io._n 2_o 11._o the_o schismatical_a temple_n contend_v against_o the_o true_a temple_n joseph_n li._n antiq_n 11._o c._n 8._o the_o true_a temple_n prevail_v joseph_n li._n 13._o antiq_fw-la c._n 6._o the_o true_a temple_n be_v prove_v by_o continual_a succession_n christian_n adoration_n throughout_o all_o nation_n in_o every_o place_n in_o spirit_n &_o verity_n that_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o service_n of_o the_o new_a law_n full_a of_o spirit_n &_o grace_n in_o the_o verity_n of_o thing_n before_o prefigure_v special_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n mal._n 1_o 11._o io._n 1_o 17._o the_o 2_o part_n the_o act_n of_o christ_n in_o jewrie_n have_v already_o begin_v his_o solemn_a manifestation_n in_o galilee_n mt._n 4_o 12_o the_o second_o pasche_n of_o his_o preach_n the_o gospel_n upon_o friday_n in_o the_o first_o week_n of_o lent_n lent_n by_o our_o latin_a text_n and_o the_o greek_a this_o miraculous_a pond_n be_v in_o or_o upon_o probatica_fw-la that_o be_v a_o place_n where_o the_o sheep_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v be_v keep_v but_o by_o other_o latin_a copy_n s._n hierom_n and_o some_o greek_a father_n probatica_fw-la be_v the_o very_a pond_n itself_o so_o call_v because_o the_o sheep_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v there_o wash_v wash_v bethesda_n bethesda_n multum_fw-la tempus_fw-la haberet_fw-la haberet_fw-la be_v pass_v the_o gospel_n upon_o alsoules_n day_n day_n not_o faith_n only_o but_o good_a and_o ill_a deed_n shall_v be_v count_v and_o according_o reward_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n io._n 1_o 19_o mt._n 3_o 17_o 17_o catholic_n search_v the_o scripture_n and_o find_v there_o peter_n &_o his_o successor_n primacy_n the_o real_a presence_n the_o priest_n power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n justification_n by_o faith_n &_o good_a work_n virginity_n prefer_v before_o matrimony_n breach_n of_o the_o vow_n of_o continency_n damnable_a voluntary_a poverty_n penance_n alm_n and_o good_a deed_n meritorious_a diverse_a reward_n i_o heaven_n accord_v to_o diverse_a merit_n &_o such_o like_a like_a he_o mean_v special_o antichrist_n how_o they_o can_v the_o pope_n be_v he_o see_v the_o jew_n receive_v he_o not_o 1_o virtue_n of_o miracle_n give_v to_o creature_n 2_o the_o same_o give_v special_o to_o sanctify_a creature_n hiero._n de_fw-fr locis_fw-la hebr._fw-la post_fw-la med_n 3_o miracle_n do_v at_o on_o time_n more_o them_z at_o a_o other_o special_o in_o great_a solemnity_n 4_o angel_n and_o saint_n patroness_n &_o worker_n in_o place_n of_o miracle_n 5_o miracle_n in_o certain_a place_n &_o wrought_v upon_o they_o that_o corporal_o visit_v the_o same_o see_v s._n augustine_n ep_v 137._o 6_o all_o reason_n in_o these_o matter_n must_v yield_v to_o god_n pleasure_n hiero._n con_v lucifer_n c._n â_o 10._o 2._o 7_o this_o water_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o baptism_n 8_o christ_n extraordinary_o heal_v and_o save_v without_o creature_n sin_n the_o cause_n of_o sickness_n and_o infirmity_n neither_o jew_n nor_o heretic_n find_v the_o truth_n because_o they_o search_v not_o the_o scripture_n deep_o but_o read_v superficial_o the_o 3._o part_n his_o act_n in_o galilaee_n &_o in_o jewrie_n about_o the_o three_o pasche_n and_o after_o the_o gospel_n upon_o midlenâ_n sunday_n mt._n 14_o 13._o mar._n 6_o 32._o lu._n 9_o 10_o mt._n 14_o 23._o mr._n 6_o 46._o 46._o these_o word_n do_v plain_o import_v that_o the_o give_v thanks_n be_v a_o
gen._n 1_o 26._o the_o epistle_n upon_o the_o 5_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiphanie_n eph._n 4_o 32._o 32._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d triumph_n and_o have_v the_o victory_n eph._n 5_o 22._o 1._o pet._n 3_o 7._o eph._n 6_o 1._o eph._n 6_o 5_o tit._n 2._o 9_o 1._o pet._n 2_o 18._o 18._o retribution_n or_o reward_n for_o good_a work_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o signify_v render_v one_o for_o a_o other_o deu._n 10_o 17._o ro._n 2_o 11._o gal._n 2_o 6._o heretical_a and_o foolish_a translation_n justice_n a_o inherent_a quality_n in_o us._n luc._n 18_o 1_o eph._n 6_o 18._o 2._o 2._o s._n paul_n ever_o much_o desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a whereby_o we_o learn_v the_o great_a efficacy_n of_o they_o thes_n 3_o 1_o eph._n 5_o 15._o phile._n 10._o 10._o he_o do_v not_o only_o pray_v but_o take_v other_o great_a pain_n to_o procure_v god_n grace_n for_o the_o colossian_n perhaps_o by_o watch_v fast_a and_o do_v other_o penance_n of_o body_n that_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o fall_v from_o their_o receive_a faith_n to_o the_o sect_n of_o simon_n magus_n or_o the_o judaize_v christian_n 2_o tim._n 4_o 10._o 11_o the_o epistle_n upon_o the_o 6_o sunday_n after_o the_o epiphanie_n epiphanie_n in_o this_o and_o the_o like_a place_n the_o heretic_n malicious_o &_o most_o false_o translate_v construe_v &_o apply_v all_o thing_n mean_v of_o the_o heathen_a idol_n to_o the_o memory_n and_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n namely_o the_o english_a bibles_n of_o the_o year_n 1562._o 1577._o see_v the_o annotation_n 1_o io._n 5_o 21._o religious_a person_n imitation_n of_o diverse_a holy_a man_n be_v the_o imitation_n of_o christ_n himself_o himself_o a_o notable_a example_n for_o catholic_a preacher_n and_o pass_v comfortable_a when_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o persecution_n and_o reproach_n they_o preach_v sincere_o to_o please_v god_n &_o not_o man_n act._n 16_o 12._o 23._o 23._o mild_n act._n 20_o 34._o 1._o cor._n 4_o 12._o 2._o thes_n 3_o 3_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d if_o the_o apostle_n without_o injury_n to_o god_n in_o right_a good_a sense_n call_v his_o scholar_n the_o thessalonians_n his_o hope_n joy_n glory_n why_o blaspheme_v the_o protestant_n the_o cath._n church_n &_o her_o child_n for_o term_v our_o b._n lady_n or_o other_o saint_n their_o hope_n for_o the_o special_a confidence_n they_o have_v in_o their_o prayer_n not_o only_o the_o write_v word_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n act._n 18_o 5._o 5._o though_o letter_n or_o epistle_n in_o absence_n give_v great_a comfort_n and_o confirmation_n in_o faith_n yet_o it_o be_v preach_v in_o presence_n by_o which_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o true_a religion_n be_v alwais_fw-fr both_a begin_v and_o accomplish_v the_o epistle_n upon_o the_o 2_o sunday_n in_o lent_n lent_n all_o catholic_a christian_n make_v one_o fraternity_n or_o brotherhod_n io._n 13_o 34_o 15_o 17._o heb_fw-mi 13_o 1_o 1_o christian_n man_n ought_v to_o proceed_v and_o profit_v continual_o in_o good_a work_n and_o justification_n the_o epistle_n in_o a_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a upon_o the_o day_n of_o the_o burial_n or_o deposition_n 1._o cor._n 15_o 23._o 23._o he_o speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v alive_a when_o our_o saviour_n return_v to_o judgement_n mt._n 24_o 31._o 1._o cor._n 13_o 52._o the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n mt._n 24_o 44._o 2_o pet._n 3_o 10_o apoc._n 3_o 3_o 16_o 15._o esa_n 59_o 17._o eph._n 6_o 17._o 17._o a_o christian_n man_v whole_a armour_n be_v not_o faith_n only_o but_o all_o the_o three_o virtue_n here_o name_v name_v the_o epistle_n upon_o the_o imber_n saturday_n in_o lent_n pro._n 17_o 13._o ro._n 12_o 1._o pet._n 3_o 9_o luc._n 18_o 1._o 1._o to_o desire_v eternal_a life_n of_o he_o that_o only_o can_v give_v it_o be_v to_o pray_v without_o intermission_n but_o because_o that_o desire_n be_v often_o by_o worldly_a care_n cool_v certain_a hour_n and_o time_n of_o vocal_a prayer_n be_v appoint_v see_v s._n aug._n ep_v 121_o ad_fw-la probam_fw-la not_o rash_o to_o credit_n every_o spirit_n spirit_n act._n 1â_n v._o 11._o 11._o c._n 2._o v._n 15._o 15._o note_v that_o by_o constant_a and_o patient_a suffering_n of_o affliction_n for_o christ_n man_n be_v make_v worthy_a so_o the_o greek_a signify_v as_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o translate_v v._o 11._o of_o the_o crown_n or_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o so_o do_v merit_n and_o deserve_v the_o same_o see_v anno._n luc._n 20_o 35._o and_o the_o apostle_n here_o say_v that_o it_o be_v god_n justice_n no_o less_o to_o repay_v glory_n to_o the_o afflict_a then_o to_o render_v punishment_n to_o they_o that_o afflict_v because_o of_o their_o contrary_a desert_n or_o merit_n merit_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 1._o thes_n 4_o 16._o 16._o christ_n shall_v be_v glorify_v in_o his_o saint_n that_o be_v by_o the_o great_a and_o unspeakable_a honour_n &_o exaltation_n of_o they_o he_o shall_v be_v honour_v as_o now_o he_o be_v the_o honour_n which_o the_o church_n do_v to_o they_o not_o diminish_v christ_n glory_n as_o the_o adversary_n foolish_o pretend_v but_o exceed_o augment_v the_o same_o same_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o epistle_n in_o the_o imber_n saturday_n of_o advent_a advent_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d how_o then_o can_v the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n as_o the_o heretic_n fond_o blaspheme_v who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v exalt_v above_o god_n that_o he_o pray_v most_o humble_o not_o only_a to_o christ_n but_o also_o to_o his_o b._n mother_n and_o all_o his_o saint_n es_fw-ge 11_o 4._o 4._o deus_fw-la miââet_fw-la say_v s._n aug._n li._n 20._o de_fw-fr ci._n c._n 19_o quia_fw-la deus_fw-la diabosum_fw-la sacere_fw-la ista_fw-la permittet_fw-la god_n will_v send_v because_o god_n will_v ãâã_d the_o devil_n to_o do_v these_o thing_n whereby_o we_o may_v take_v a_o general_a rule_n that_o god_n action_n or_o work_n in_o such_o thing_n be_v his_o permission_n see_v annot._n ro._n 1_o 24._o 24._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d this_o word_n of_o exhort_v impli_v in_o it_o comfort_n and_o consolation_n as_o 2._o cor._n 1._o v._n 4._o &_o 6._o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n uncertain_a and_o to_o be_v leave_v to_o god_n secret_n two_o special_a sign_n before_o the_o late_a day_n a_o general_a apostasy_n and_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n caluin_n in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la the_o heretic_n interpretation_n of_o this_o apostasy_n &_o their_o conden_n of_o the_o father_n there_o can_v be_v no_o apostasy_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n from_o god_n god_n dialog_n adu_fw-la lucifer_n c._n 6._o 1_o io._n 2_o v._o 18._o it_o be_v very_o like_a the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o a_o great_a apostasy_n from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o from_o most_o article_n of_o the_o catho_n faith_n li._n 2._o cont_n lit_fw-fr petil._n c._n 51._o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n in_o preserve_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n more_o than_o all_o other_o state_n notwithstanding_o manifold_a danger_n and_o scandal_n many_o antichrist_n as_o before_o runner_n of_o the_o great_a antichrist_n the_o great_a antichrist_n shall_v be_v one_o special_a and_o notorious_a man_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d gen._n 49_o 17._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d beza_n in_o hoc_fw-la cap._n the_o caluiniste_n place_n antichrist_n in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n in_o s._n paul_n day_n they_o make_v s._n leo_n &_o s._n gregory_n great_a furtherer_n of_o antichristes_n pride_n against_o d._n sanders_n rock_n pag._n 248._o &_o pag._n 278._o jewel_n antichrist_n shall_v suffer_v no_o worship_n or_o adoration_n but_o of_o himself_o only_o therefore_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o be_v antichrist_n dan._n â_o 6._o in_o what_o temple_n antichrist_n shall_v sit_v dan._n 9_o mat._n 24._o 1_o mach._n 1._o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n consist_v chief_o in_o abolish_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n how_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o church_n bezaâ_n neither_o antichrist_n nor_o his_o precursor_n be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n church_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d antichrist_n by_o interpretation_n one_o against_o christ_n why_o so_o call_v protestant_n &_o caluinist_n the_o near_a forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n s._n augustins_n humility_n in_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n be_v the_o covert_a work_n of_o heretic_n towards_o the_o manifest_a revelation_n of_o antichrist_n himself_o what_o kind_n of_o man_n shall_v follow_v antichrist_n antichrist_n see_v s._n dânyâ_n arcopag_n ec._n hier._n c._n 1._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d heretical_a translation_n tradition_n unwrite_v unwrite_v â_o cor._n 11_o 2._o thes_n 3._o their_o authority_n &_o
estimation_n &_o example_n of_o some_o peculiar_a tradition_n out_o of_o the_o father_n s._n chrysostom_n s._n basil_n s._n hierom._n s._n augustine_n s._n epiphanius_n s._n irenaeus_n tertullian_n s._n cyprian_n origen_n the_o scripture_n give_v we_o by_o tradition_n and_o the_o sense_n thereof_o the_o creed_n a_o apostolical_a tradition_n a_o invincible_a argument_n for_o the_o credit_n of_o tradition_n â_o here_o also_o ãâã_d as_o be_v note_v before_o 2_o thess_n 2._o 15._o the_o adversary_n in_o their_o translation_n avoid_v the_o word_n tradition_n be_v plain_a in_o the_o greek_a lest_o themselves_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v note_v as_o man_n walk_v inordinate_o and_o not_o according_a to_o apostolical_a tradition_n as_o all_o schismatic_n heretic_n and_o rebel_n to_o god_n church_n do_v ep._n 6_o 18._o col._n 4_o 3._o 3._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d act._n 20._o 1._o cor._n 4._o 1._o th._n 2._o 1._o cor._n 9_o 6._o gal._n 6_o 9_o the_o heretic_n cavillation_n against_o religious_a man_n that_o work_n not_o answer_v 1_o cor._n 9_o the_o spiritual_a travail_n of_o the_o clergy_n clergy_n see_v s._n cypr._n ep_v 66._o religious_a man_n work_v with_o their_o hand_n monk_n be_v shave_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o nonnes_n clip_v of_o their_o hair_n s._n augustine_n opinion_n concern_v religious_a man_n work_n or_o not_o work_v li._n the_o âp_n monach._n c._n 21._o ecclesiastical_a censure_n against_o the_o disobedient_a not_o to_o communicate_v with_o excommunicate_a person_n but_o in_o certain_a case_n 1_o timoth._n 3_o 1_o timoth._n 3_o 3_o 1_o tim._n 1._o act._n 20._o v._n 25._o 38._o col._n 2._o v._n 1._o 1._o s._n augustine_n say_v he_o that_o listen_v to_o have_v the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n let_v he_o look_v that_o he_o have_v a_o good_a conscience_n to_o have_v a_o good_a conscience_n let_v he_o believe_v &_o work_v well_o for_o that_o he_o beleve_v she_o have_v of_o faith_n that_o he_o work_v he_o have_v of_o charity_n praefat._n in_o psa_n 31._o 31._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ro._n 7_o 13_o mt._n 9_o 13._o mr._n 2_o 17._o 17._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d evil_a life_n and_o no_o good_a conscience_n be_v often_o the_o cause_n that_o man_n fall_v to_o heresy_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n again_o this_o plain_o reprove_v the_o heretic_n false_a doctrine_n say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n that_o he_o once_o true_o have_v teach_v otherwise_o then_o the_o doctrine_n receive_v be_v a_o special_a mark_n of_o heretic_n heretic_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d luther_n teach_n otherwise_o all_o heretical_a doctrine_n be_v fable_n curious_a question_v in_o religion_n charity_n the_o very_a formal_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n heretic_n great_a boaster_n but_o unlearned_a libertine_n allege_v scripture_n excommunication_n of_o heretic_n and_o the_o effect_n thereof_o the_o priest_n high_a authority_n of_o excommunication_n the_o terrible_a effect_n thereof_o thereof_o even_o for_o heathen_a king_n &_o emperor_n by_o who_o the_o church_n suffer_v persecution_n much_o more_o for_o all_o faithful_a prince_n &_o power_n and_o people_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a for_o who_o as_o member_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o therefore_o join_v in_o prayer_n &_o oblation_n with_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n the_o priest_n more_o proper_o and_o particular_o offer_v the_o holy_a sacrifice_n see_v s._n augustine_n the_o orig_n anima_fw-la li._n 1._o c._n p._n 2._o tim._n 1_o 11._o 1._o pet._n 3_o 3._o 1._o cor._n 14_o 34._o gen._n 1_o 27._o 3_o 6._o 6._o she_o the_o prayer_n &_o petition_n in_o the_o mass_n deduce_v out_o of_o the_o apostle_n word_n by_o s._n augustine_n &_o other_o father_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d pater_fw-la noster_fw-la in_o the_o mass_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d theoph._n in_o hunc_fw-la loc_fw-la prayer_n in_o the_o mass_n for_o king_n and_o other_o god_n will_v no_o man_n perdition_n but_o the_o salvation_n of_o al._n how_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n christ_n and_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v such_o a_o mediator_n mediator_n aug._n li._n 9_o de_fw-fr ciu._n cap._n 15._o de_fw-fr fid_fw-we ad_fw-la pet._n c._n 2._o the_o different_a manner_n of_o pray_v to_o christ_n and_o to_o saint_n kyrie_fw-la eleison_fw-la christ_n eleison_fw-la how_o there_o be_v many_o mediator_n as_o there_o be_v many_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n even_o in_o the_o scripture_n jud._n 3_o 9_o 2_o esd_v 9_o 27._o act._n 7_o 35._o woman_n great_a talker_n of_o scripture_n and_o promoter_n of_o heresy_n heresy_n s._n chrys_n ho._n 9_o in_o 1._o tim._n tit._n 1_o 6._o 6._o he_o say_v have_v child_n not_o get_v child_n s._n ambr._n ep._n 82._o 82._o neophytus_n be_v he_o that_o be_v late_o christen_v or_o new_o plant_v in_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n christ_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o great_a charge_n &_o great_a merit_n of_o ecclesiastical_a function_n the_o apostle_n under_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n instruct_v priest_n also_o the_o heretic_n opinion_n concern_v priest_n marriage_n 1_o cor._n 7._o s._n paul_n place_n of_o one_o wife_n exclude_v bigamos_fw-la from_o holy_a order_n order_n li._n 2_o ep_n 25._o who_o be_v count_v bigami_fw-la levit._fw-la 21._o the_o heretical_a clergy_n nothing_o regard_v the_o apostle_n prescription_n of_o one_o wife_n none_o ever_o marry_v after_o holy_a order_n socrat._n li._n 1_o c._n 8._o they_o that_o be_v make_v priest_n of_o marry_a man_n abstein_v from_o their_o wife_n sozom._n li._n 1_o c._n â2_n s._n epiphanius_n marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n eusebius_n s._n hierom._n s._n augustine_n see_v s._n leo_n ep_n 92._o c._n â_o s._n ambrose_n tertullian_n s._n cyprian_n counsel_n none_o rash_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o clergy_n heretic_n admit_v all_o sort_n without_o exception_n the_o three_o holy_a order_n only_o bind_v to_o chastity_n leo_fw-la ep_n 92._o c._n 3._o greg._n li._n 1_o ep_v 42._o the_o 4_o inferior_a order_n not_o bind_v to_o chastity_n all_o the_o seven_o order_n ancient_a even_o from_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n time_n s._n ambrose_n call_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n rector_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o heretic_n say_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n and_o can_v not_o err_v be_v prove_v by_o many_o reason_n io._n 14_o 16._o mat._n 16._o mat._n 28._o eph._n 4._o io._n 17._o luc._n 22._o psal_n 2._o eph._n 5._o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o cath._n church_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d it_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n that_o be_v the_o pillar_n or_o truth_n and_o can_v not_o err_v whence_o the_o church_n have_v this_o privilege_n never_o to_o err_v s._n augustine_n lactantius_n s._n cyprian_n s._n irenaeus_n 2_o tim._n 3_o 3_o pet._n 3._o jude_n v._n 18._o 18._o we_o see_v plain_o by_o these_o word_n such_o abstinence_n only_o to_o be_v disalow_v as_o condemn_v the_o creature_n of_o god_n to_o be_v naught_o by_o nature_n &_o creation_n 1._o tim._n 1_o 4._o tit._n 3_o 9_o 9_o some_o say_v s._n chrysost_o expound_v this_o of_o fast_v but_o they_o be_v deceived-for_a fast_v be_v a_o spiritual_a exercise_n see_v a_o goodly_a commentary_n of_o these_o word_n in_o s._n august_n li._n de_fw-fr mor._n eccl._n cath._n c._n 33._o all_o heretic_n be_v apostate_n from_o the_o faith_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d cap._n 1._o 19_o the_o old_a heresy_n against_o matrimony_n matrimony_n aug._n har_z 46._o the_o old_a heresy_n about_o abstinââe_n from_o meat_n the_o catholic_n impudent_o charge_v with_o the_o say_a old_a heresy_n abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n be_v no_o condemnation_n of_o the_o meat_n diverse_a good_a cause_n of_o abstinence_n forbid_v certain_a person_n to_o marry_v be_v no_o condemnation_n of_o matrimony_n catholic_n esteem_v matrimony_n more_o than_o the_o protestant_n do_v the_o protestant_n obiecton_n answer_v long_o ago_o by_o s._n hierom_n and_o s._n augustine_n augustine_n aug._n li._n 2_o c._n 5_o the_o nupt_a &_o câncupise_v bless_v of_o the_o table_n or_o of_o meat_n special_o by_o a_o priest_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o bless_v be_v a_o preeminence_n of_o the_o better_a person_n hebr._n 7._o no_o creature_n ill_a by_o nature_n yea_o one_o more_o sanctify_v than_o a_o other_o holy_a time_n and_o place_n &_o every_o thing_n depute_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n holy_a mat._n 23._o 2_o pet._n 1._o creature_n hallow_v by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o blessing_n of_o our_o meat_n what_o a_o virtue_n it_o have_v ãâã_d ãâã_d
the_o gentile_n to_o be_v innumerable_a innumerable_a the_o elect_a of_o the_o gentile_n gentile_n bough_n of_o the_o palm_n three_fw-mi be_v token_n of_o triumph_n and_o victory_n the_o epistle_n for_o many_o martyr_n the_o glory_n of_o martyr_n esa_n 49_o 10._o es_fw-ge 25_o 8._o apo._n 21_o 4._o the_o 4_o vision_z vision_z the_o priest_n stand_v at_o the_o altar_n pray_v &_o offer_v for_o the_o people_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o high_a mystery_n christ_n himself_o also_o be_v present_a upon_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o this_o thing_n &_o thereunto_o he_o allude_v allude_v if_o this_o be_v s._n michael_n or_o any_o angel_n and_o not_o christ_n himself_o as_o some_o take_v it_o angel_n offer_v up_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a as_o the_o 24_o elder_n do_v chap._n 5._o for_o this_o wvord_n saint_n be_v take_v here_o for_o the_o holy_a person_n on_o earth_n as_o often_o in_o the_o scripture_n though_o it_o be_v not_o against_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o inferior_a saint_n or_o angel_n in_o heaven_n shall_v offer_v their_o prayer_n to_o god_n by_o their_o superior_n there_o but_o hereby_o we_o conclude_v against_o the_o protestant_n that_o it_o derogate_v not_o from_o christ_n that_o angel_n or_o saint_n offer_v our_o prayer_n to_o god_n as_o also_o it_o be_v plain_a of_o raphael_n tob._n 12_o 12._o most_o understand_v all_o this_o of_o heretic_n heretic_n the_o fall_n of_o a_o arch_a heretic_n as_o arius_n luther_n caluin_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o have_v the_o key_n of_o hell_n to_o open_v &_o bring_v forth_o all_o the_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n bury_v before_o in_o the_o depth_n depth_n innumerable_a peây_a heretic_n follow_v their_o master_n after_o the_o open_n &_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n apoc._n 6_o 16._o the_o chief_a master_n of_o heretic_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o english_a destroyer_n destroyer_n pagan_n infidel_n and_o sinful_a impenitent_a catholic_n must_v be_v condemn_v also_o also_o this_o phrase_n be_v the_o like_a both_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a signify_v such_o sorrowful_a &_o penal_a repentance_n as_o cause_v a_o man_n to_o forsake_v his_o former_a sin_n and_o depart_v from_o they_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d see_v the_o same_o phrase_n c._n 2_o 21_o 22._o &_o act._n â_o v._o 22._o who_o be_v seduce_v by_o heretic_n the_o manifold_a hypocrisy_n of_o heretic_n herât_fw-la translation_n christ_n the_o valiant_a angel_n be_v here_o describe_v describe_v pillar_n pillar_n many_o great_a mystery_n and_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n which_o for_o cause_n know_v to_o god_n providence_n be_v not_o to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n dan._n 12_o 7._o 7._o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o take_v a_o oath_n by_o the_o true_a god_n as_o ãâã_d 32._o ezec._n 3_o 1_o 1_o by_o earnest_a study_n and_o meditation_n meditation_n sweet_a in_o the_o read_n but_o in_o fulfil_n somewhat_o bitter_a because_o it_o command_v work_n of_o penance_n and_o suffering_n of_o tribulation_n tribulation_n three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a which_o be_v the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v and_o persecution_n persecution_n the_o great_a antichrist_n antichrist_n he_o mean_v jerusalem_n name_v sodom_n and_o egypt_n for_o the_o imitation_n of_o they_o in_o wickedness_n so_o that_o we_o see_v his_o chief_a reign_n shall_v be_v there_o though_o his_o tyranny_n may_v extend_v to_o all_o place_n of_o the_o world_n world_n the_o wicked_a rejoice_n when_o holy_a man_n be_v execute_v by_o the_o tyrant_n of_o the_o world_n because_o their_o life_n and_o doctrine_n be_v hurdenous_a unto_o they_o they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n usurp_v before_o by_o satan_n &_o antichrist_n shall_v afterward_o be_v christ_n for_n ever_o ever_o to_o repay_v the_o hire_n or_o wage_n for_o so_o both_o the_o greek_a word_n and_o the_o latin_a signify_v due_a to_o holy_a man_n prove_v against_o the_o protestant_n that_o they_o do_v true_o merit_v the_o same_o in_o this_o life_n enoch_n &_o elias_n yet_o alive_a shall_v preach_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n the_o 3_o part_n part_n this_o be_v proper_o &_o principal_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o allusion_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n also_o the_o dragon_n incredulous_a &_o persecute_v multitude_n and_o antichrist_n the_o chief_a head_n thereof_o thereof_o the_o great_a devil_n lucifer_n lucifer_n the_o spirit_n that_o fall_v from_o their_o first_o state_n into_o apostasy_n with_o he_o and_o by_o his_o mean_n mean_n the_o devil_n endeavour_n against_o the_o church_n child_n and_o special_o our_o b._n lady_n only_a son_n the_o head_n of_o the_o rest_n ps_n 2_o 9_o apoc._n 2_o 27._o 27._o when_o the_o angel_n or_o we_o have_v the_o victory_n we_o must_v know_v it_o be_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o all_o be_v refer_v always_o to_o he_o he_o this_o often_o insinuation_n that_o antichrist_n reign_n shall_v be_v but_o three_o year_n &_o a_o half_a dan._n 7_o 25._o apoc._n 12_o 2._o 3._o &_o in_o this_o chap._n v._n 6._o c._n 13_o 5._o prove_v that_o the_o heretic_n be_v exceed_o blind_v with_o malice_n that_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n who_o have_v rule_v so_o many_o age_n the_o church_n shall_v flee_v as_o to_o a_o desert_n in_o antichrist_n time_n but_o not_o decay_v or_o be_v unknowen_a no_o not_o for_o so_o short_a a_o time_n s._n michael_n fight_v with_o the_o dragon_n antichrist_n attempt_n to_o draw_v from_o the_o true_a faith_n faith_n they_o that_o now_o follow_v the_o simple_a &_o gross_a heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v without_o see_v miracle_n will_v then_o much_o more_o follow_v this_o great_a seducer_n work_v miracle_n miracle_n no_o heretic_n ever_o like_a antichrist_n they_o these_o in_o our_o day_n special_o in_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n church_n sacrament_n saint_n minister_n and_o all_o sacred_a thing_n apoc._n 3._o 5_o gen._n 9_o 6_o mt._n 26_o 52._o 52._o an_o other_o false_a prophet_n inferior_a to_o antichrist_n shall_v work_v wonder_v also_o but_o all_o refer_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o master_n antichrist_n so_o do_v caluin_n &_o other_o arch-heretike_n pervert_v the_o world_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o antichrist_n and_o so_o do_v their_o scholar_n also_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o they_o many_o mystery_n expound_v great_a persecution_n by_o antichrist_n and_o his_o minister_n their_o blessedness_n that_o continue_v constant_a the_o honour_n of_o christ_n image_n be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n antichrist_n triple_a honour_n against_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o protestant_n by_o abolish_n of_o christ_n image_n &_o cross_v and_o irreverence_n to_o the_o name_n jesus_n make_v a_o ready_a way_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o antichrist_n io._n 14_o 29._o antichrist_n name_v secret_a antichrist_n shall_v be_v one_o special_a man_n and_o of_o a_o peculiar_a name_n the_o pope_n can_v not_o be_v antichrist_n all_o scame_n of_o letter_n to_o express_v antichrist_n name_n be_v uncertain_a irem_fw-la li._n 5_o in_o fine_a the_o epistle_n upon_o s._n innocent_n day_n in_o christmas_n christmas_n christ_n and_o the_o same_o number_n of_o elect_v that_o be_v sign_v chap._n 7._o 7._o learn_v ãâã_d ãâã_d one_o state_n of_o life_n more_o excellent_a than_o a_o other_o and_o virgin_n for_o their_o purity_n pass_v the_o rest_n &_o always_o accompany_v christ_n according_a to_o the_o church_n hymn_n out_o of_o this_o place_n quecunque_fw-la pergis_fw-la virgin_n sequuntur_fw-la etc._n etc._n etc._n this_o the_o church_n apply_v to_o the_o holy_a innocent_n that_o die_v first_o for_o christ_n ps_n 145._o act._n 14._o esa_n 21._o 21._o the_o city_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v the_o universal_a society_n of_o the_o wicked_a misbelever_n &_o ill_a liver_n in_o the_o world_n jer._n 51._o apo._n 18._o 18._o the_o great_a damnation_n that_o shall_v follow_v they_o that_o forsake_v christ_n &_o the_o church_n &_o worship_n antichrist_n or_o his_o image_n image_n faith_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o salvation_n without_o fulfil_v of_o god_n commandment_n commandment_n the_o epistle_n in_o a_o daily_a mass_n for_o the_o dead_a joel_n 3_o mat._n 13._o 13._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d lacum_fw-la fat_a trough_n lake_n beza_n pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o unto_o saint_n at_o the_o altar_n the_o place_n abuse_v against_o purgatory_n answer_v answer_v á_fw-fr modo_fw-la modo_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d photius_n in_o lexico_fw-la the_o 4_o part_n of_o the_o 7_o last_o plague_n &_o final_a damnation_n of_o the_o wicked_a the_o tribulation_n about_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n judgement_n baptism_n baptism_n the_o song_n of_o moses_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o old_a old_a saint_n the_o ei_v vision_n linen_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d
the_o great_a revenge_n that_o god_n will_v do_v at_o the_o late_a day_n upon_o the_o persecutor_n of_o his_o saint_n saint_n the_o desperate_a and_o damn_a person_n shall_v blaspheme_v god_n perpetual_o which_o shall_v be_v such_o only_a as_o do_v not_o repent_v in_o this_o life_n life_n see_v chap._n 9_o v._n 20_o in_o the_o margin_n margin_n the_o dragon_n be_v the_o devil_n the_o beast_n antichrist_n or_o the_o society_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n the_o false-prophet_n either_o antichrist_n himself_o or_o the_o company_n of_o heretic_n and_o seducer_n that_o follow_v he_o he_o issue_n forth_o three_o apoc._n 3_o 2_o cor._n 5_o 3._o 3._o the_o hill_n of_o theave_n by_o s._n hieroms_n interpretation_n interpretation_n the_o city_n or_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o wicked_a divide_v into_o three_o part_n into_o infidel_n heretic_n and_o evil_a catholic_n this_o city_n be_v here_o call_v babylon_n whereof_o see_v the_o annorat_n upon_o the_o next_o chapter_n v._n 5._o jer._n 25_o 15._o 15._o the_o final_a damnation_n of_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o the_o reprobate_n call_v here_o the_o great_a whore_n whore_n these_o many_o water_n be_v many_o people_n v._o 15._o 15._o it_o signify_v the_o short_a reign_n of_o antichrist_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a horn_n or_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n beast_n some_o expound_v it_o of_o ten_o small_a kingdom_n into_o which_o the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v be_v divide_v which_o shall_v all_o serve_v antichrist_n both_o in_o his_o life_n and_o a_o little_a after_o after_o do_v 1_o tim._n 6_o 15._o apo._n 19_o 16._o 16._o not_o force_v or_o move_v any_o to_o follow_v antichrist_n but_o by_o his_o just_a judgement_n &_o for_o punishment_n of_o their_o sin_n permit_v they_o to_o believe_v and_o consent_v to_o he_o the_o protestant_n here_o will_v needs_o have_v babylon_n to_o be_v rome_n but_o not_o in_o s._n peter_n epistle_n by_o babylon_n according_a to_o all_o the_o father_n be_v signify_v partly_o the_o whole_a society_n of_o the_o wicked_a partly_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o terrene_a &_o heathenish_a state_n of_o they_o that_o persecute_v the_o church_n li._n advers_a judan_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v never_o call_v babylon_n ro._n 1._o mystery_n this_o woman_n signify_v all_o persecutor_n of_o saint_n put_v heretic_n to_o death_n be_v not_o to_o shede_v the_o blood_n of_o saint_n the_o protestant_n madness_n in_o expound_v the_o 7_o hill_n of_o rome_n the_o angel_n himself_o expound_v it_o otherwise_o what_o be_v the_o eight_o beast_n the_o double_a interpretation_n of_o babylon_n apo._n 14_o 8._o 8._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o measure_n of_o pain_n &_o damnation_n according_a to_o the_o wicked_a pleasure_n or_o unlawful_a delight_n of_o this_o life_n which_o be_v a_o fore_a sentence_n for_o such_o people_n as_o turn_v their_o whole_a life_n to_o ââst_n and_o riot_n es_fw-ge 47_o 8_o 8_o king_n and_o merchant_n be_v most_o encomber_v danger_v and_o drown_v in_o the_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n who_o whole_a life_n &_o traffic_n be_v if_o they_o be_v not_o exceed_v virtuous_a to_o find_v variety_n of_o earthly_a pleasure_n who_o see_v once_o the_o extreme_a end_n of_o their_o joy_n and_o of_o all_o that_o make_v their_o heaven_n here_o to_o be_v turn_v into_o pain_n &_o damnation_n eternal_a then_o shall_v howl_v &_o weep_v to_o late_a late_a the_o angel_n and_o all_o saint_n shall_v rejoice_v and_o laud_v âod_a to_o see_v the_o wicked_a confound_v and_o god_n justice_n execute_v upon_o their_o oppressor_n &_o persecutor_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o martyr_n pray_v for_o chap._n 6._o jer._n 51._o 63._o 63._o by_o this_o it_o seem_v clear_a that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v not_o any_o one_o city_n but_o the_o universal_a company_n of_o the_o reprobate_n which_o shall_v perish_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o old_a prophet_n also_o name_v the_o whole_a number_n of_o god_n enemy_n mystical_o babylon_n as_o jerem._n â_o 52._o the_o epistle_n for_o many_o martyr_n allelvia_n allelvia_n this_o often_o repeat_v of_o allelu-ia_a in_o time_n of_o rejoice_v the_o church_n do_v follow_v in_o her_o service_n service_n at_o this_o day_n shall_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o elect_v be_v final_o &_o perfect_o for_o ever_o join_v unto_o christ_n in_o marriage_n inseparable_a mat._n 22_o lu._n 14_o 14_o that_o be_v the_o feast_n of_o eternal_a life_n prepare_v for_o his_o spouse_n the_o church_n apoc._n 22._o 9_o es_fw-ge 63_o 1._o 1._o the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n the_o son_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v make_v flesh_n io._n 1._o apoc._n 2_o 27._o apo._n 17_o 14._o 14._o even_o according_a to_o his_o humanity_n also_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d amen_o alleluia_n not_o translate_v alleluia_n often_o use_v in_o the_o church_n special_o in_o easter_n time_n epist_n ad_fw-la jan._n c._n 17._o etc._n etc._n 15._o it_o signify_v more_o than_o as_o the_o protestant_n translate_v it_o praise_v you_o the_o lord_n âpalse_a translation_n amen_n and_o alleluia_n shall_v not_o be_v translate_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n all_o nation_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n sing_v amen_o and_o alleluia_n the_o protestant_n profane_v this_o word_n by_o translate_n it_o and_o diminish_v the_o signification_n thereof_o psal_n 136._o justification_n be_v good_a work_n not_o as_o the_o effect_n of_o say_v justify_v but_o because_o themselves_o also_o with_o faith_n justify_v a_o man_n beza_n s._n johns_n adore_v of_o the_o angel_n explicate_v against_o the_o protestant_n abuse_v the_o same_o the_o protestant_n be_v reâelled_v by_o their_o own_o reason_n s._n john_n err_v only_o in_o the_o person_n mistake_v the_o angel_n to_o be_v christ_n himself_o and_o so_o adore_v he_o as_o god_n apoc._n c._n 1._o esa_n 9_o in_o graco_n malac._n 3_o s._n john_n sin_v not_o in_o this_o adoration_n an_o other_o explication_n of_o this_o place_n the_o protestant_n by_o conference_n of_o scripture_n may_v find_v religious_a adoration_n of_o creature_n aug._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la relig_n c._n 55._o three_o point_n herein_o examine_v and_o prove_v by_o scripture_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ps_n 5._o 137._o 1_o religious_a worship_n of_o creature_n dan._n 6._o 3_o reg._n 8._o jos_n 7._o ps_n 98._o 131._o 2_o the_o same_o be_v call_v adoration_n 3_o fall_v prostrate_a before_o the_o person_n or_o thing_n adore_v gen._n 18._o exod._n 3._o josue_n 5._o adore_v of_o angel_n adore_v of_o prophet_n and_o holy_a person_n dan._n 2._o 2._o or_o jaddus_n 4_o reg._n 4._o judith_n 13._o see_v in_o s._n augustine_n li._n 20._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 7._o 8._o &_o seq_n the_o exposition_n of_o this_o chapter_n chapter_n quid_fw-la in_o millenariâ_n numero_fw-la nisi_fw-la ad_fw-la proferandam_n novam_fw-la sobolem_fw-la perfecta_fw-la universitas_fw-la praesâita_fw-la generationis_fw-la exprimââ_n ãâã_d hinc_fw-la per_fw-la ãâã_d dicitur_fw-la it_o regnabunt_fw-la cum_fw-la ãâã_d âillâ_n aânis_fw-la ãâã_d regnum_fw-la sancta_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la universitatis_fw-la perfâcâione_fw-la soâiidatur_fw-la d._n gregor_n li._n 9_o moral_a c._n 1._o 1._o s._n augustine_n think_v that_o these_o do_v not_o signify_v any_o certain_a nation_n but_o all_o that_o shall_v then_o be_v join_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o antichrist_n against_o the_o church_n li._n 20._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 11._o see_v s._n hierom_n in_o exech_n li._n 11._o ezec._n 38_o 14._o 39_o 2._o see_v s._n hierom_n in_o exech_n li._n 11._o the_o 6_o vision_z vision_z they_o shall_v then_o be_v new_a not_o the_o substance_n but_o the_o shape_n change_v 2_o pet._n 3._o see_v s._n augustine_n li._n 20._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 14._o 14._o the_o book_n of_o man_n conscience_n where_o it_o shall_v plain_o be_v read_v what_o every_o man_n life_n have_v be_v apoc._n 3_o 5._o 21_o 27._o 27._o such_o as_o do_v no_o good_a work_n if_o they_o have_v age_n and_o time_n to_o do_v they_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n bishop_n consistory_n &_o judicial_a power_n 1._o cor._n 5._o during_o a_o thousand_o year_n that_o be_v the_o time_n ofthi_v militant_a church_n saint_n reign_v with_o christ_n in_o soul_n only_o the_o rest_n be_v dead_a and_o damn_a in_o soul_n during_o the_o same_o time_n the_o first_o resurrection_n of_o the_o soul_n only_o priest_n some_o propre_o so_o call_v some_o unpropre_o 1._o pet._n â_o the_o bind_v and_o lose_v of_o satan_n explicate_v by_o s._n augustine_n the_o short_a reign_n of_o antichrist_n millenarij_fw-la or_o chiliast_n the_o scripture_n hard_o by_o s._n augustine_n foresay_a explication_n be_v eurdent_o deduce_v against_o the_o protestant_n that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v and_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o possible_o be_v antichrist_n a_o invincible_a demonstration_n mat._n 24._o lu._n 18_o 8._o the_o campâ_n of_o saint_n be_v the_o catho_n church_n through_o the_o world_n as_o now_o heretic_n in_o particular_a country_n so_o antichrist_n shall_v persecute_v the_o church_n of_o all_o nation_n what_o be_v meanâ_n by_o fire_n from_o heaven_n the_o book_n of_o every_o man_n work_n open_v in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o 5_o part_n the_o final_a glorification_n of_o the_o church_n esa_n 63_o 17._o 66_o 21._o the_o epistle_n upon_o the_o dedication_n of_o a_o church_n 2_o pet._n 3_o 13._o 13._o the_o church_n triumphant_a triumphant_a this_o tabernacle_n be_v christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n es_fw-ge 25._o 8._o apoc._n 7_o 17._o 17._o this_o happy_a day_n shall_v make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o the_o misery_n of_o this_o mortality_n mortality_n because_o the_o esa_n 43_o 19_o apoc._n 1_o 8._o 22_o 13._o 13._o he_o that_o have_v the_o victory_n against_o sin_n in_o the_o church_n militant_a shall_v have_v his_o reward_n in_o the_o triumphant_a triumphant_a all_o that_o commit_v mortal_a sin_n and_o repent_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v the_o 7_o and_o last_o vision_n vision_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a triumphant_a the_o name_n of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o apostle_n honourable_a and_o glorious_a in_o the_o triumphant_a church_n church_n see_v s._n hierom_n ep_v 17._o touch_v this_o description_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n which_o be_v the_o church_n triumphant_a teach_v that_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v take_v spiritual_o not_o carââally_o carââally_o all_o external_a sacrifice_n which_o now_o be_v necessarieâdutie_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v then_o cease_v and_o therefore_o there_o shall_v need_v no_o material_a temple_n esa_n 60_o 19_o es_fw-ge 60_o 3._o esa_n 60_o 11._o 11._o none_o not_o perfect_o cleanse_v of_o their_o sun_n can_v enter_v into_o this_o heavenly_a hieruselem_n apo._n 20_o 12._o the_o state_n of_o glorify_a body_n â_o â_o water_n of_o life_n life_n christ_n be_v our_o tree_n of_o life_n in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o b._n sacramé_fw-fr &_o in_o heaven_n by_o his_o visible_a presence_n and_o influence_n of_o life_n ever_o last_v both_o to_o our_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o wâon_n solomon_n say_v the_o tree_n of_o life_n to_o all_o that_o apprehend_v he_o prou._n 3._o apo._n 21._o esa_n 60_o the_o conclusion_n apo._n 19_o 10._o 10._o you_o see_v it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o adore_v before_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o angel_n &_o to_o adore_v the_o angel_n though_o to_o adore_v he_o âe_v not_o express_v as_o in_o the_o 19_o chap._n see_v the_o anotation_n there_o v._o 10._o 10._o man_n by_o god_n grace_n &_o do_v good_a work_n do_v increase_v his_o justice_n justice_n heaven_n be_v the_o reward_n hire_n &_o repayment_n for_o good_a work_n in_o all_o the_o scripture_n yet_o the_o adversary_n will_v not_o see_v it_o ro._n 2_o 6._o apo._n 21_o 6._o 1_o 8._o es_fw-ge 55_o 1._o the_o curse_n against_o add_v or_o diminish_v be_v against_o heretic_n not_o catholic_a expositor_n a_o brief_a petition_n unto_o jesus_n christ_n to_o come_v quick_o as_o s._n john_n here_o speak_v and_o to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n protestant_n the_o epistle_n omit_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o â_o
be_v take_v act._n 21_o and_o from_o the_o tribune_n lysias_n deliver_v to_o felix_n the_o governor_n 2_o act._n 23_o 58_o and_o by_o he_o leave_v to_o festus_n 25_o act._n 24._o he_o appeal_v to_o caesar_n act._n 25_o and_o so_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n act._n 27_o where_o he_o arrive_v act._n 28._o neronis_n nativit_fw-la ascen_n  _fw-fr 2_o 58_o 25_o at_o rome_n he_o remain_v in_o free_a prison_n two_o year_n act._n 28._o and_o then_o be_v deliver_v 2_o tim._n 4._o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr after_o his_o delivery_n he_o preach_v in_o sundry_a country_n of_o the_o west_n namely_o in_o spain_n hiero._n in_o cataloge_n epiph._n hare_n 27._o himself_o write_v that_o he_o purpose_v so_o to_o do_v ro._n 15._o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n c._n â_o he_o mind_v to_o visâe_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n which_o also_o he_o do_v genebrard_n in_o chron._n  _fw-fr  _fw-fr  _fw-fr he_n write_v last_o of_o all_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothee_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n 2_o tim._n 4._o be_v now_o the_o second_o time_n apprehend_v and_o in_o band_n at_o rome_n theodoret._n 14_o 70_o 37_o he_o be_v behead_v at_o rome_n 14_o the_o same_o day_n that_o peter_n be_v crucify_v 70_o s._n ambros_n ser_fw-mi ãâã_d 68_o s_o maximus_n 37_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n the_o act_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o twelue_fw-mi apostle_n be_v not_o much_o write_v of_o in_o this_o book_n author_n but_o as_o *_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n do_v testify_v they_o preach_v special_o in_o these_o nation_n as_o follow_v andrew_n in_o aâhaia_n john_n in_o asia_n philip_n in_o pbrygia_n james_n in_o jewrie_n bartholomew_n in_o scythia_n thomas_n in_o india_n matthew_n in_o aethiopia_n simon_n in_o persia_n thaddâus_n in_o mesopotamia_n the_o other_o jame_v in_o spain_n mathias_n in_o palestine_n so_o distribute_v themselves_o through_o out_o the_o world_n to_o gather_v one_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o nation_n according_a as_o christ_n give_v they_o commission_n mat._n 28_o 19_o and_o as_o it_o be_v prophesy_v of_o they_o before_o psal_n 18._o their_o sound_n be_v go_v forth_o into_o every_o country_n and_o their_o word_n into_o the_o end_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o before_o they_o depart_v one_o from_o a_o other_o the_o time_n whereof_o be_v not_o certain_o know_v *_o all_o twelue_fw-mi assemble_v together_o hieros_n &_o full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n each_o lay_v down_o his_o sentence_n agree_v upon_o twelue_v principal_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o appoint_v they_o for_o a_o rule_n to_o all_o believer_n which_o be_v therefore_o call_v and_o be_v the_o apostle_n crede_fw-la not_o write_v in_o paper_n as_o the_o scripture_n but_o from_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n ruff._n &_o hiero._n locis_fw-la citatis_fw-la which_o as_o of_o old_a hiero._n count_n lucifer_n so_o at_o this_o day_n all_o solemn_o profess_v in_o their_o baptism_n either_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o other_o and_o all_o that_o be_v of_o age_n and_o capacity_n be_v bind_v to_o know_v and_o believe_v every_o article_n of_o the_o âame_n which_o be_v these_o that_o follow_n the_o apostle_n crede_fw-la or_o symbolum_fw-la apostolorum_n 1_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 2_o and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n 3_o who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n 4_o suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v descend_v into_o hel._n 5_o the_o three_o day_n be_v rose_n again_o from_o death_n 6_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a 7_o from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 8_o i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 9_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n 10_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n 11_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n 12_o life_n everlasting_a amen_n â§_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o epistle_n in_o general_z after_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v a_o story_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o after_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o story_n of_o christ_n church_n now_o follow_v the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o they_o write_v of_o such_o matter_n as_o they_o have_v then_o occasion_n to_o write_v of_o for_o be_v the_o founder_n and_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v in_o their_o time_n as_o the_o doctor_n that_o succeed_v they_o do_v after_o they_o who_o from_o the_o beginning_n unto_o this_o day_n have_v write_v epistle_n &_o book_n against_o heresy_n ever_o as_o they_o arise_v and_o of_o all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n as_o they_o have_v occasion_n minister_v unto_o they_o of_o which_o their_o do_v the_o apostle_n first_o give_v here_o the_o ensample_n as_o also_o s._n luke_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n lead_v the_o way_n to_o all_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n after_o he_o for_o all_o though_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n between_o they_o for_o authority_n for_o asmuch_o as_o these_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o so_o be_v not_o any_o write_n of_o their_o successor_n yet_o the_o occasion_n and_o matter_n as_o i_o have_v say_v be_v like_a most_o of_o these_o epistle_n be_v s._n paul_n epistle_n 22._o the_o rest_n be_v call_v *_o catholicae_fw-la epistolae_fw-la the_o epistle_n catholic_a for_o s._n paul_n write_v not_o any_o epistle_n to_o all_o howbeit_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v for_o all_o the_o church_n but_o some_o to_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o to_o the_o roman_n to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o the_o galatian_n to_o the_o ephesian_n to_o the_o philippian_n to_o the_o colossian_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o some_o to_o particular_a person_n as_o to_o timothee_n to_o tite_n who_o be_v bishop_n among_o the_o gentile_n to_o wit_n of_o ephesus_n and_o of_o crete_n and_o to_o philémon_a and_o then_o one_o to_o the_o hebrews_n who_o be_v the_o jew_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o jury_n but_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o other_o apostle_n that_o be_v of_o s._n james_n s._n peter_n s._n john_n and_o s._n jude_n be_v not_o so_o entitle_v to_o any_o one_o church_n or_o person_n except_o s._n johns_n two_o late_a short_a epistle_n which_o yet_o may_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o his_o first_o because_o they_o be_v all_o of_o one_o author_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v term_v catholic_a that_o be_v universal_a for_o so_o write_v s._n james_n to_o the_o twelue_fw-mi tribe_n that_o be_v in_o dispersion_n greeting_n and_o s._n peter_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n thus_o to_o the_o elect_a stranger_n of_o the_o dispersion_n of_o pontus_n galatia_n cappadocia_n asia_n &_o bythinia_n in_o his_o second_o thus_o to_o they_o that_o have_v obtain_v equal_a faith_n with_o us._n likewise_o s._n jude_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o god_n the_o father_n belove_v and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n preserve_v and_o call_v s._n johns_n first_o be_v without_o title_n now_o for_o the_o occasion_n of_o their_o writing_n whereby_o we_o shall_v perceive_v the_o matter_n or_o argument_n that_o they_o handle_v it_o must_v be_v remember_v as_o the_o story_n of_o that_o time_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v at_o large_a declare_v that_o the_o church_n than_o beginning_n be_v plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n not_o only_o in_o the_o jew_n but_o also_o in_o the_o gentile_n yea_o and_o special_o in_o the_o gentile_n which_o thing_n offend_v the_o jew_n many_o way_n for_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o see_v so_o much_o as_o their_o own_o country_n to_o receive_v he_o for_o christ_n who_o they_o have_v reject_v and_o crucify_v much_o less_o to_o see_v they_o preach_v he_o to_o the_o gentile_n also_o that_o offend_v even_o those_o jew_n also_o that_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n howbeit_o such_o of_o they_o as_o be_v catholic_n and_o therefore_o not_o obstinate_a be_v satisfy_v when_o they_o understand_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o it_o be_v god_n pleasure_n as_o act._n 11._o we_o read_v but_o other_o of_o the_o become_v heretic_n &_o preach_v to_o the_o christian_a gentile_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o receive_v also_o the_o jew_n religion_n of_o such_o we_o read_v act._n 15._o unless_o you_o be_v circumcise_v you_o can_v not_o be_v save_v and_o as_o these_o do_v so_o preach_v against_o the_o truth_n so_o do_v the_o unchristened_a jew_v not_o only_a themselves_o persecute_v but_o also_o stir_v up_o the_o idolatrous_a gentile_n every_o where_o to_o persecute_v the_o christian_n by_o such_o obstinacy_n provoke_v god_n to_o reprobate_v their_o nation_n which_o yet_o they_o think_v unpossible_a to_o be_v do_v because_o they_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o
be_v circumcise_v and_o have_v receive_v the_o law_n by_o moses_n for_o such_o carnal_a respect_n they_o trust_v in_o themselves_o as_o though_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v unseparable_o bind_v unto_o they_o attribute_v also_o so_o much_o to_o their_o own_o work_n which_o they_o think_v they_o do_v of_o themselves_o be_v holpen_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o la_o that_o they_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v necessary_a for_o their_o salvation_n but_o look_v for_o such_o a_o christ_n as_o shall_v be_v like_o other_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n and_o make_v they_o great_a man_n temporal_o hereupon_o do_v s._n paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o show_v both_o the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o reprobation_n of_o the_o jew_n moreover_o to_o admonish_v both_o the_o christian_a gentile_n not_o to_o receive_v circumcision_n and_o other_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n la_o in_o no_o wise_a and_o the_o jew_v also_o not_o to_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o the_o same_o but_o rather_o to_o understand_v that_o now_o christ_n be_v come_v they_o must_v cease_v again_o to_o show_v the_o necessity_n of_o christ_n come_v and_o of_o his_o death_n that_o without_o it_o neither_o the_o gentile_n can_v be_v save_v no_o nor_o the_o jew_n by_o no_o work_n that_o they_o can_v do_v of_o themselves_o although_o they_o be_v also_o holpen_v by_o the_o law_n tell_v they_o what_o be_v good_a &_o what_o be_v bad_a for_o so_o much_o as_o all_o be_v sinner_n and_o therefore_o also_o impotent_a or_o infirm_a and_o the_o law_n can_v not_o take_v away_o sin_n and_o infirmity_n and_o give_v strength_n to_o fulfil_v that_o which_o it_o give_v knowledge_n of_o but_o this_o be_v god_n only_o able_a to_o do_v and_o for_o christ_n sake_n only_o will_v he_o do_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v make_v his_o member_n be_v incorporat_a into_o his_o body_n which_o be_v his_o catholic_a church_n for_o so_o although_o they_o never_o yet_o do_v good_a work_n but_o all_o ill_a they_o shall_v have_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o new_a strength_n withal_o to_o make_v they_o able_a to_o fulfil_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n la_o yea_o &_o their_o work_n after_o this_o shall_v be_v so_o gracious_a in_o god_n sight_n that_o for_o they_o he_o will_v give_v they_o lift_v everlasting_a this_o be_v the_o necessity_n this_o be_v also_o the_o fruit_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o therefore_o be_v exhort_v all_o both_o gentile_n and_o jew_n as_o to_o receive_v it_o humble_o so_o also_o to_o perseuêre_fw-la in_o it_o constant_o unto_o the_o end_n against_o all_o seduction_n of_o heresy_n and_o against_o all_o terror_n of_o persecution_n and_o to_o walk_v all_o their_o time_n in_o good_a work_n as_o now_o god_n have_v make_v they_o able_a to_o do_v the_o same_o doctrine_n do_v the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v unto_o this_o day_n most_o exact_o work_n to_o wit_n that_o no_o work_n of_o the_o unbelieved_a or_o unbaptise_v whether_o they_o be_v jew_n or_o gentile_n can_v save_v they_o no_o nor_o of_o any_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_a although_o he_o be_v baptize_v because_o he_o be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o christ_n yea_o more_o than_o that_o no_o work_n of_o any_o that_o be_v not_o a_o lively_a member_n of_o christ_n although_o otherwise_o he_o be_v baptize_v and_o continue_v within_o his_o church_n yet_o because_o he_o be_v not_o in_o grace_n but_o in_o mortal_a sin_n no_o work_n that_o he_o do_v be_v meritorious_a or_o able_a to_o save_v he_o this_o very_a same_o be_v s._n paul_n doctrine_n work_n he_o deni_v to_o the_o work_n of_o such_o as_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n all_o virtue_n to_o justify_v or_o to_o save_v neither_o require_v he_o a_o man_n to_o have_v have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n or_o to_o have_v keep_v it_o afortime_n as_o though_o otherwise_o he_o may_v not_o be_v save_v by_o christ_n but_o yet_o when_o he_o be_v christen_v he_o require_v of_o necessity_n that_o he_o keep_v god_n commandment_n by_o avoid_v of_o all_o sin_n and_o do_v good_a work_n and_o to_o such_o a_o man_n good_a work_n he_o attribute_v as_o much_o virtue_n as_o any_o catholic_a of_o this_o time_n nevertheless_o there_o be_v certain_a at_o that_o time_n as_o also_o all_o the_o heretic_n of_o this_o our_o time_n who_o s._n peter_n term_v unlearned_a and_o unstable_a 3._o who_o read_v s._n paul_n epistle_n do_v misconstrue_v his_o meaning_n as_o though_o he_o require_v not_o good_a work_n no_o more_o after_o baptism_n then_o before_o baptism_n but_o hold_v that_o only_a faith_n do_v justify_v and_o save_v a_o man_n thereupon_o the_o other_o apostle_n write_v their_o epistle_n as_o s._n augustine_n note_v in_o these_o word_n 31._o therefore_o because_o this_o opinion_n ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la obtinendam_fw-la sufficere_fw-la solam_fw-la sidem_fw-la that_o only_a faith_n be_v sufficient_a to_o obtain_v salvation_n be_v then_o rise_v the_o other_o apostolical_a epistle_n of_o peter_n john_n james_n jude_n do_v against_o it_o special_o direct_v their_o intention_n to_o avouch_v vehement_o fidem_fw-la sine_fw-la operibus_fw-la nihil_fw-la prodesse_fw-la that_o say_v without_o work_n profit_v nothing_o as_o also_o paul_n himself_o do_v not_o define_v it_o to_o be_v quamlibet_fw-la fidem_fw-la qua_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la creditur_fw-la whatsoever_o manner_n of_o faith_n wherewith_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n but_o that_o wholesome_a &_o express_a euangelical_n faith_n who_o work_n proceed_v from_o love_n 5._o and_o the_o faith_n quoth_v he_o that_o work_v by_o love_n whereupon_o that_o faith_n which_o some_o think_v to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n 1â_n he_o so_o affirm_v to_o profit_v nothing_o that_o he_o say_v if_o i_o shall_v have_v all_o faith_n so_o that_o i_o can_v remove_v mountain_n and_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o he_o therefore_o that_o will_v not_o err_v in_o this_o point_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o read_v either_o s._n paul_n epistle_n or_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n must_v stick_v fast_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 3._o which_o church_n s._n paul_n term_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o truth_n assure_v himself_o that_o if_o any_o thing_n there_o find_v to_o he_o as_o contrary_a hereunto_o he_o fail_v of_o the_o right_a sense_n and_o bear_v always_o in_o his_o mind_n the_o admonition_n of_o s._n peter_n 3._o say_v as_o also_o our_o most_o dear_a brother_n paul_n according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v to_o he_o have_v write_v to_o you_o as_o also_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n speak_v in_o they_o of_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o which_o be_v certain_a thing_n hard_a to_o understand_v which_o the_o unlearned_a and_o unstable_a deprave_v as_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o perdition_n you_o therefore_o brethren_n foreknow_v take_v heed_n lest_o you_o be_v lead_v amiss_o by_o the_o error_n of_o the_o unwise_o and_o fall_v away_o from_o your_o own_o steadfastness_n the_o time_n when_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n be_v write_v and_o the_o argument_n thereof_o the_o history_n of_o s._n paul_n until_o be_v come_v to_o rome_n s._n luke_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n write_v exact_o and_o though_o without_o any_o mention_n of_o his_o epistle_n yet_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o some_o of_o they_o he_o write_v before_o he_o come_v there_o to_o wit_n the_o too_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n and_o this_o to_o the_o roman_n &_o *_o as_o it_o seem_v before_o they_o all_o 2._o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n wherein_o yet_o because_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o fouretenth_fw-mi year_n after_o his_o conversion_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o preach_v so_o long_o without_o any_o writing_n and_o this_o order_n may_v thus_o brief_o be_v gather_v first_o he_o preach_v to_o the_o galatian_n act._n 16_o and_o pass_v through_o phrygia_n and_o the_o country_n of_o galatia_n whereof_o he_o make_v mention_v himself_o also_o gal._n 1_o we_o evangelize_v to_o you_o and_o gal._n 4_o i_o evangelize_v to_o you_o heretofore_o after_o which_o the_o false_a apostle_n come_v and_o persuade_v they_o to_o receive_v circumcision_n whereupon_o he_o say_v gal._n 1_o i_o marvel_v that_o thus_o so_o soon_o you_o be_v transfer_v from_o he_o that_o call_v you_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n unto_o a_o other_o gospel_n and_o wish_v therefore_o gal._n 4._o saying_n and_o i_o will_v i_o be_v with_o you_o now_o and_o according_o he_o come_v unto_o they_o afterward_o as_o we_o read_v act._n 18_o walk_v in_o order_n through_o the_o country_n of_o galatia_n and_o phrygia_fw-la confirm_v all_o the_o disciple_n at_o which_o time_n also_o it_o seem_v that_o he_o take_v order_n with_o they_o about_o those_o contribution_n
that_o be_v in_o dispersion_n greeting_n â_o verse_n 2_o esteem_v it_o martyr_n my_o brethren_n all_o joy_n when_o you_o shall_v fall_v into_o diverse_a tentation_n â_o verse_n 3_o know_v that_o *_o the_n probation_n of_o your_o faith_n work_v patience_n 3._o â_o verse_n 4_o and_o let_v patience_n have_v a_o perfect_a work_n that_o you_o may_v be_v perfect_a &_o entire_a fail_v in_o nothing_o â_o verse_n 5_o but_o if_o any_o of_o you_o lack_v wisdom_n let_v he_o ask_v of_o god_n who_o give_v to_o all_o man_n abundant_o and_o up_o bray_v not_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v he_o â_o verse_n 6_o but_o *_o let_v he_o â_o ask_v in_o faith_n nothing_o doubt_v 22._o for_o he_o that_o doubt_v be_v like_a to_o a_o wave_n of_o the_o sea_n 24._o which_o be_v move_v &_o carry_v about_o by_o the_o wind_n â_o verse_n 7_o therefore_o let_v not_o that_o man_n think_v that_o he_o shall_v receive_v any_o thing_n of_o our_o lord_n â_o verse_n 8_o a_o man_n double_a of_o mind_n be_v inconsant_fw-fr in_o all_o his_o way_n â_o verse_n 9_o but_o let_v the_o humble_a brother_n glory_n 18._o in_o his_o exaltation_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o the_o scotfree_a in_o his_o humility_n because_o *_o as_o the_o flower_n of_o grass_n shall_v he_o pass_v 6_o â_o verse_n 11_o for_o the_o sun_n rise_v with_o heat_n &_o parch_v the_o grass_n 24._o and_o the_o flower_n of_o it_o fall_v away_o and_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o shape_n thereof_o perish_v so_o the_o scotfree_a man_n also_o shall_v wither_v in_o his_o way_n bishop_n â_o verse_n 12_o blessed_n be_v the_o man_n suffer_v tentation_n 17._o for_o when_o he_o have_v be_v prove_v he_o shall_v receive_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o â¢_o â_o verse_n 13_o â³_o let_v no_o man_n when_o he_o be_v tempt_v say_v that_o he_o be_v tempt_v no_o man_n â_o verse_n 14_o but_o god_n every_o one_o be_v tempt_v of_o his_o own_o concupiscence_n abstract_v and_o allure_v â_o verse_n 15_o afterwards_o â³_o concupiscence_n when_o it_o have_v conceive_v bring_v forth_o sin_n but_o â³_o sin_n when_o it_o be_v consummate_v engender_v death_n â_o verse_n 16_o do_v not_o err_v therefore_o my_o dear_a brethren_n easter_n â_o verse_n 17_o every_o best_a gift_n and_o every_o perfect_a gift_n be_v from_o above_o descend_v from_o the_o father_n of_o light_n with_o who_o be_v no_o transmutation_n nor_o shadow_v of_o alteration_n â_o verse_n 18_o voluntary_o have_v he_o beget_v we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n that_o we_o may_v be_v some_o beginning_n of_o his_o creature_n 27._o â¢_o â_o verse_n 19_o you_o know_v my_o dear_a brethren_n and_o *_o let_v every_o man_n be_v swift_a to_o hear_v but_o slow_a to_o speak_v and_o slow_v to_o anger_n â_o verse_n 20_o for_o the_o anger_n of_o man_n work_v not_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 21_o for_o the_o which_o thing_n cast_v away_o all_o uncleanness_n and_o abundance_n of_o malice_n easter_n in_o meekness_n receive_v the_o engraft_a word_n 21._o which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v your_o soul_n â¢_o â_o verse_n 22_o but_o *_o be_v doer_n of_o the_o word_n and_o not_o hearer_n only_o deceive_a yourselves_o â_o verse_n 23_o for_o if_o a_o man_n be_v a_o hearer_n of_o the_o word_n 13._o and_o not_o a_o doer_n he_o shall_v be_v compare_v to_o a_o man_n behold_v the_o countenance_n of_o his_o nativity_n in_o a_o glass_n â_o verse_n 24_o for_o he_o consider_v himself_o and_o go_v his_o way_n and_o by_o and_o by_o forget_v what_o a_o one_o he_o be_v â_o verse_n 25_o but_o he_o that_o have_v look_v in_o â³_o the_o la_o of_o perfect_a liberty_n and_o have_v remain_v in_o it_o not_o make_v a_o forgetful_a hearer_n but_o a_o doer_n of_o the_o work_n this_o man_n shall_v be_v work_v bless_v in_o his_o deed_n â_o verse_n 26_o and_o if_o any_o man_n think_v himself_o to_o be_v religious_a not_o bridle_v his_o tongue_n but_o seduce_v his_o hart_n this_o man_n religion_n be_v vain_a â_o verse_n 27_o â³_o religion_n clean_o and_o unspotted_a with_o god_n and_o the_o father_n be_v this_o to_o visit_v pupille_v and_o widow_n in_o their_o tribulation_n &_o to_o keep_v himself_o unspotted_a from_o this_o world_n â¢_o annotation_n chap._n 1._o 6._o ask_v in_o faith_n nothing_o doubt_v the_o protestant_n will_v prove_v by_o this_o that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o pray_v without_o assurance_n that_o he_o shall_v obtain_v that_o which_o he_o ask_v prayer_n where_o the_o apostle_n mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o asker_n of_o lawful_a thing_n may_v not_o either_o mistrust_n god_n power_n and_o hability_n or_o be_v in_o diffidence_n and_o despair_n of_o his_o mercy_n but_o that_o our_o doubt_n be_v only_o in_o our_o own_o unworthiness_n or_o undue_a ask_n 13._o let_v no_o man_n say_v that_o he_o be_v tempt_v of_o god_n we_o see_v by_o this_o that_o when_o the_o scripture_n as_o in_o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la and_o other_o place_n seem_v to_o say_v evil_a that_o god_n do_v sometime_o tempt_v we_o or_o lead_v we_o into_o tentation_n they_o mean_v not_o that_o god_n be_v any_o way_n the_o author_n causer_n or_o mover_n of_o any_o man_n to_o sin_n but_o only_o by_o permission_n and_o because_o by_o his_o gracious_a power_n he_o keep_v not_o the_o offender_n from_o tentation_n therefore_o the_o blasphemy_n of_o heretic_n make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n be_v intolerable_a see_v s._n august_n ser_fw-mi 9_o the_o diverse_a c._n 9_o 13._o god_n be_v not_o a_o tempter_n of_o evil_n translation_n the_o protestant_n as_o much_o as_o they_o may_v to_o diminish_v the_o force_n of_o the_o apostle_n conclusion_n against_o such_o as_o attribute_v their_o evil_a tentation_n to_o god_n for_o other_o tentation_n god_n do_v send_v to_o try_v man_n patience_n and_o prove_v their_o faith_n take_v and_o translate_v the_o word_n passue_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o god_n be_v not_o tempt_v by_o our_o evil_n where_o more_o consonant_o to_o the_o letter_n and_o circumstance_n of_o the_o word_n before_o &_o after_o &_o as_o agreable_o ãâã_d to_o the_o greek_a it_o shall_v be_v take_v active_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a that_o god_n be_v no_o tempter_n to_o evil_a for_o be_v take_v passive_o there_o be_v no_o coherence_n of_o sense_n to_o the_o other_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 15._o concupiscence_n when_o it_o have_v conceive_v sin_n concupiscence_n we_o see_v here_o of_o itself_o be_v not_o sin_n as_o heretic_n false_o teach_v but_o when_o by_o any_o consent_n of_o the_o mind_n we_o do_v obey_v or_o yield_v to_o it_o then_o be_v sin_n engender_v and_o form_v in_o us._n 15._o sin_n consummate_a engender_v death_n here_o we_o see_v that_o not_o all_o sin_n nor_o all_o consent_n unto_o concupiscence_n be_v mortal_a or_o damnable_a mortal_a but_o when_o it_o be_v consummate_v that_o be_v when_o the_o consent_n of_o man_n mind_n full_o and_o perfect_o yield_v to_o the_o commit_v or_o like_n of_o the_o act_n or_o motion_n whereunto_o concupiscence_n move_v or_o incit_v us._n 25._o the_o la_o of_o perfect_a liberty_n the_o la_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o grace_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o la_o of_o liberty_n testament_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o yoke_n and_o burden_n of_o the_o old_a carnal_a ceremony_n and_o because_o christ_n have_v by_o his_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n deliver_v all_o that_o obey_v he_o from_o the_o servitude_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o devil_n but_o not_o as_o the_o libertine_n and_o other_o heretic_n of_o this_o time_n will_v have_v it_o that_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n every_o man_n may_v follow_v his_o own_o like_n and_o conscience_n &_o may_v choose_v whether_o he_o will_v be_v under_o the_o law_n and_o obedience_n of_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a ruler_n or_o no._n 27._o religion_n clean_a justice_n true_a religion_n stand_v not_o only_o in_o talk_v of_o the_o scripture_n or_o only_a faith_n or_o christ_n justice_n but_o in_o purity_n of_o life_n and_o good_a work_n special_o of_o charity_n and_o mercy_n do_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o far_o from_o the_o heretical_a vanity_n of_o this_o time_n chap._n ii_o against_o acception_n of_o person_n 10_o from_o all_o and_o every_o sin_n we_o must_v abstain_v have_v in_o all_o our_o word_n and_o deed_n the_o judgement_n before_o our_o eye_n wherein_o work_n of_o mercy_n shall_v be_v require_v of_o we_o 14_o and_o only_a faith_n shall_v not_o avail_v us._n 18_o and_o that_o the_o catholic_a by_o his_o work_n show_v that_o he_o have_v faith_n whereas_o the_o heretic_n have_v no_o more_o faith_n than_o the_o devil_n talk_v he_o of_o faith_n never_o so_o much_o and_o of_o justification_n thereby_o only_o by_o the_o
â_o verse_n 18_o and_o a_o other_o angel_n come_v forth_o from_o the_o altar_n which_o have_v power_n over_o the_o fire_n and_o he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o he_o that_o have_v the_o sharp_a sickle_n say_v thrust_v in_o thy_o sharp_a sickle_n and_o gather_v the_o cluster_n of_o the_o vineyard_n of_o the_o earth_n because_o the_o grape_n thereof_o be_v ripe_a â_o verse_n 19_o and_o the_o angel_n thrust_v his_o sharp_a sickle_n into_o the_o earth_n and_o gather_v the_o vineyard_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o great_a lake_n press_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o the_o press_n be_v tread_v without_o the_o city_n and_o blood_n come_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o press_n up_o to_o the_o horse_n bridle_v for_o a_o thousand_o six_o hundred_o furlong_n annotation_n chap._n xiiii_o 13._o from_o hence_o forth_o now_o this_o be_v special_o speak_v of_o martyr_n as_o not_o only_a s._n augustine_n seem_v to_o take_v it_o beza_n but_o the_o caluinist_n themselves_o translate_n in_o domino_fw-la for_o our_o lord_n cause_n the_o protestant_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o use_v the_o place_n against_o purgatory_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o depart_v see_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o all_o her_o child_n confess_v altar_n that_o all_o martyr_n be_v straight_o after_o their_o death_n in_o bliss_n and_o need_v no_o prayer_n whereof_o this_o be_v s._n augustine_n know_v sentence_n he_o do_v injury_n to_o the_o martyr_n that_o pray_v for_o the_o martyr_n ser._n 17_o de_fw-fr verb._n apost_n c._n 1._o and_o again_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o write_v thus_o most_o excellent_o tract_n 84_o in_o joan._n we_o keep_v not_o a_o memory_n of_o martyr_n at_o our_o lord_n table_n as_o we_o do_v of_o other_o that_o rest_n in_o peace_n that_o be_v for_o the_o intent_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o but_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v pray_v for_o we_o etc._n etc._n but_o if_o we_o take_v the_o word_n general_o for_o all_o decease_a in_o state_n of_o grace_n as_o it_o may_v be_v also_o than_o we_o say_v that_o even_o such_o though_o they_o be_v in_o purgatory_n and_o god_n chastisement_n in_o the_o next_o life_n and_o need_v our_o prayer_n answer_v yet_o according_a to_o the_o foresay_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n do_v rest_n in_o peace_n be_v discharge_v from_o the_o labour_n affliction_n and_o persecution_n of_o this_o world_n and_o which_o be_v more_o from_o the_o daily_a danger_n of_o sin_n and_o damnation_n and_o put_v into_o infallible_a security_n of_o eternal_a joy_n with_o unspeakable_a comfort_n of_o conscience_n and_o such_o in_o deed_n be_v more_o happy_a and_o bless_a then_o any_o live_n who_o yet_o be_v usual_o in_o the_o scripture_n call_v bless_v even_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o tribulation_n of_o this_o life_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o these_o word_n from_o hence_o forth_o they_o shall_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n may_v true_o agree_v to_o they_o also_o that_o be_v in_o purgatory_n and_o so_o here_o be_v nothing_o prove_v against_o purgatory_n last_o this_o adverbe_n modo_fw-la á_fw-fr modo_fw-la in_o latin_a as_o in_o the_o greek_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v not_o proper_o signify_v from_o this_o present_a time_n forward_o lexico_fw-la as_o though_o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v that_o after_o their_o death_n and_o so_o forward_o they_o be_v happy_a but_o it_o note_v and_o join_v the_o time_n pass_v together_o with_o the_o time_n present_a in_o this_o sense_n that_o such_o as_o have_v die_v since_o christ_n ascension_n when_o he_o first_o enter_v into_o heaven_n open_v it_o for_o other_o go_v not_o to_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la as_o they_o be_v wont_v before_o christ_n time_n but_o be_v in_o case_n to_o go_v straight_o to_o bliss_n except_o the_o impediment_n be_v in_o themselves_o therefore_o they_o be_v here_o call_v bless_v that_o die_v now_o in_o this_o state_n of_o grace_n &_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o old_a faithful_a and_o good_a person_n chap._n xv._o part_n 2_o they_o that_o have_v now_o overcome_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n wicked_a do_v glorify_v god_n 6_o to_o seven_o angel_n have_v the_o seven_o last_o plague_n be_v give_v seven_o cup_n full_a of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n verse_n 1_o and_o i_o see_v a_o other_o sign_n in_o heaven_n great_a and_o marvellous_a judgement_n seven_o angel_n have_v the_o seven_o last_o plague_n because_o in_o they_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v consummate_v â_o verse_n 2_o and_o i_o see_v as_o it_o be_v baptism_n a_o sea_n of_o glass_n mingle_v with_o fire_n and_o they_o that_o overcome_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n stand_v upon_o the_o sea_n of_o glass_n have_v the_o harp_n of_o god_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o sing_v old_a the_o song_n of_o moses_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o the_o song_n of_o the_o lamb_n say_v great_a and_o marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n lord_n god_n omnipotent_a just_a and_o true_a be_v thy_o way_n king_n of_o the_o saint_n world_n '_o â_o verse_n 4_o who_o shall_v not_o fear_v thou_o o_o lord_n and_o magnify_v thy_o name_n because_o thou_o only_o be_v holy_a because_o all_o nation_n shall_v come_v &_o adore_v in_o thy_o sight_n because_o thy_o judgement_n be_v manifest_a â_o verse_n 5_o and_o after_o these_o thing_n i_o look_v vision_n and_o behold_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o testimony_n be_v open_v in_o heaven_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o there_o issue_v forth_o the_o seven_o angel_n have_v the_o seven_o plague_n from_o the_o temple_n reve_v with_o clean_a and_o white_a linen_n stone_n '_o &_o gird_v about_o the_o breast_n with_o girdle_n of_o gold_n ãâã_d â_o verse_n 7_o and_o one_o of_o the_o four_o beast_n ãâã_d give_v to_o the_o seven_o angel_n seven_o vial_n of_o gold_n full_a of_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o god_n that_o live_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o â_o verse_n 8_o and_o the_o temple_n be_v fill_v with_o smoke_n at_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n and_o at_o his_o power_n and_o no_o man_n can_v enter_v into_o the_o temple_n till_o the_o seven_o plague_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n be_v consummate_v chap._n xvi_o upon_o the_o pour_v out_o of_o the_o seven_o cup_n of_o god_n wrath_n on_o the_o land_n the_o sea_n the_o fountain_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n euphrâte_n and_o the_o air_n there_o arise_v sundry_a plague_n in_o the_o world_n verse_n 1_o and_o i_o hear_v a_o great_a voice_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n say_v to_o the_o seven_o angel_n go_v and_o pour_v out_o the_o seven_o vial_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 2_o and_o the_o first_o go_v and_o pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o there_o be_v make_v a_o cruel_a and_o very_a sore_a wound_n upon_o man_n that_o have_v the_o character_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o upon_o they_o that_o adore_v the_o image_n thereof_o â_o verse_n 3_o and_o the_o second_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o sea_n and_o there_o be_v make_v blood_n as_o it_o be_v of_o one_o dead_a and_o every_o live_a soul_n die_v in_o the_o sea_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o the_o three_o pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o river_n &_o the_o fountain_n of_o water_n and_o there_o be_v make_v blood_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o i_o hear_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o water_n say_v thou_o be_v just_a o_o lord_n which_o art_n and_o which_o waste_v the_o holy_a one_o because_o thou_o have_v judge_v these_o thing_n â_o verse_n 6_o saint_n because_o they_o have_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o prophet_n &_o thou_o have_v give_v they_o blood_n to_o drink_v for_o they_o be_v worthy_a â_o verse_n 7_o and_o i_o hear_v a_o other_o say_v yea_o lord_n god_n omnipotent_a true_a and_o just_a be_v thy_o judgement_n â_o verse_n 8_o and_o the_o four_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o sun_n and_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o to_o afflict_v man_n with_o heat_n and_o fire_n â_o verse_n 9_o and_o man_n boil_v with_o great_a heat_n and_o life_n blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o god_n have_v power_n over_o these_o plague_n neither_o do_v they_o penance_n to_o give_v he_o glory_n â_o verse_n 10_o and_o the_o five_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o kingdom_n be_v make_v dark_a and_o they_o together_o do_v eat_v their_o tongue_n for_o pain_n â_o verse_n 11_o &_o they_o blaspheme_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n because_o of_o their_o pain_n and_o wound_n &_o margin_n do_v not_o penance_n from_o their_o work_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o the_o sixth_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o that_o great_a river_n euphrâtes_n and_o dry_v up_o
the_o water_n thereof_o that_o a_o way_n may_v be_v prepare_v to_o the_o king_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n â_o verse_n 13_o and_o i_o see_v from_o the_o mouth_n he_o of_o the_o dragon_n and_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false-prophet_n three_o three_o '_o unclean_a spirit_n in_o manner_n of_o frog_n â_o verse_n 14_o for_o they_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o devil_n work_v sign_n and_o they_o go_v forth_o to_o the_o king_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n to_o gather_v they_o into_o battle_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n â_o verse_n 15_o behold_v *_o i_o come_v as_o a_o thief_n 3_o blessed_n be_v he_o that_o watch_v &_o keep_v his_o garment_n 3._o that_o he_o *_o walk_v not_o naked_a and_o they_o see_v his_o turpitude_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o he_o shall_v gather_v they_o into_o a_o place_n which_o in_o hebrew_n be_v call_v interpretation_n armagedon_n â_o verse_n 17_o and_o the_o seven_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o air_n and_o there_o come_v forth_o a_o loud_a voice_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n from_o the_o throne_n say_v it_o be_v do_v â_o verse_n 18_o and_o there_o be_v make_v lighteninge_n and_o voice_n and_o thunder_n and_o a_o great_a earthquake_n be_v make_v such_o a_o one_o as_o never_n have_v be_v since_o man_n be_v upon_o the_o earth_n such_o a_o earthquake_n so_o great_a â_o verse_n 19_o and_o 5._o the_o great_a city_n be_v make_v into_o three_o part_n and_o the_o city_n of_o the_o gentile_n fel._n and_o babylon_n the_o great_a come_v into_o memory_n before_o god_n 15._o *_o to_o give_v she_o the_o cup_n of_o wine_n of_o the_o indignation_n of_o his_o wrath_n â_o verse_n 20_o and_o every_o island_n flee_v and_o mountain_n be_v not_o find_v â_o verse_n 21_o and_o great_a hail_n like_o a_o talon_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n upon_o man_n and_o man_n blaspheme_v god_n for_o the_o plague_n of_o the_o hail_n because_o it_o be_v make_v exceed_o great_a chap._n xvii_o the_o harlot_n babylon_n clothe_v with_o diverse_a ornament_n 6_o and_o drunken_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n sit_v upon_o a_o beast_n that_o have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n 7_o all_o which_o thing_n the_o angel_n expound_v verse_n 1_o and_o there_o come_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o angel_n which_o have_v the_o seven_o vial_n &_o speak_v with_o i_o say_v come_v i_o will_v show_v thou_o whore_n the_o damnation_n of_o the_o great_a harlot_n which_o sit_v upon_o 15._o many_o water_n â_o verse_n 2_o with_o who_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v fornicate_v and_o they_o which_o inhabit_v the_o earth_n have_v be_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o whoredom_n â_o verse_n 3_o and_o he_o take_v i_o away_o in_o spirit_n in_o to_o the_o desert_n and_o i_o see_v a_o woman_n sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet_a colour_a beast_n full_a of_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n â_o verse_n 4_o and_o the_o woman_n be_v clothe_v round_o about_o with_o purple_a and_o scarlet_a and_o gilt_v with_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o pearl_n have_v a_o golden_a cup_n in_o her_o hand_n full_a of_o the_o abomination_n &_o filthiness_n of_o her_o fornication_n â_o verse_n 5_o and_o in_o her_o forehead_n a_o name_n write_v â³_o mystery_n â³_o babylon_n the_o great_a mother_n of_o the_o fornication_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n â_o verse_n 6_o and_o i_o see_v the_o woman_n â³_o drunken_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n and_o i_o maruel_v when_o i_o have_v see_v she_o with_o great_a admiration_n â_o verse_n 7_o i_o and_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o i_o why_o do_v thou_o marvel_v i_o will_v tell_v thou_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o of_o the_o beast_n that_o carry_v she_o which_o have_v the_o seven_o head_n and_o the_o ten_o horn_n â_o verse_n 8_o the_o beast_n which_o thou_o saw_a beast_n be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o shall_v come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o bottomeles_a depth_n and_o go_v into_o destruction_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n on_o the_o earth_n who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n from_o the_o make_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v marvel_v see_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o â_o verse_n 9_o and_o here_o be_v understanding_n that_o have_v wisdom_n the_o seven_o head_n be_v â³_o seven_o hill_n upon_o which_o the_o woman_n sit_v and_o they_o be_v seven_o king_n â_o verse_n 10_o five_o be_v fall_v one_o be_v and_o a_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v &_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v he_o must_v tarry_v a_o short_a time_n â_o verse_n 11_o and_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v &_o be_v not_o â³_o the_o same_o also_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o be_v of_o the_o seven_o &_o go_v into_o destruction_n â_o verse_n 12_o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v after_o ten_o king_n which_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v kingdom_n but_o do_v shall_v '_o receive_v power_n as_o king_n one_o hour_n after_o the_o beast_n â_o verse_n 13_o these_o have_v one_o counsel_n and_o force_v and_o their_o power_n they_o shall_v deliver_v to_o the_o beast_n â_o verse_n 14_o these_o shall_v fight_v with_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o lamb_n shall_v overcome_v they_o 16._o because_o *_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o king_n &_o they_o that_o be_v with_o he_o called_z and_o elect_v and_o faithful_a â_o verse_n 15_o and_o he_o say_v to_o i_o the_o water_n which_o thou_o saw_a where_o the_o harlot_n sit_v be_v people_n and_o nation_n and_o tongue_n â_o verse_n 16_o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o saw_a in_o the_o beast_n these_o shall_v hate_v the_o harlot_n and_o shall_v make_v her_o desolate_a and_o naked_a and_o shall_v ear_n her_o flesh_n and_o she_o they_o shall_v burn_v with_o fire_n â_o verse_n 17_o for_o he_o god_n have_v give_v into_o their_o heart_n to_o do_v that_o which_o please_v he_o that_o they_o give_v their_o kingdom_n to_o the_o beast_n till_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v consummate_v â_o verse_n 18_o and_o the_o woman_n which_o thou_o saw_a be_v â³_o the_o great_a city_n which_o have_v kingdom_n over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n annotation_n chap._n xvii_o 5._o babylon_n epistle_n in_o the_o end_n of_o s._n peter_n first_o epistle_n where_o the_o apostle_n date_v it_o at_o babylon_n which_o the_o ancient_a writer_n as_o we_o there_o note_v affirm_v to_o be_v mean_v of_o rome_n the_o protestant_n will_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a have_v it_o so_o because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v drive_v to_o confess_v that_o peter_n ever_o be_v at_o rome_n but_o here_o for_o that_o they_o think_v it_o make_v for_o their_o opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o rome_n the_o seat_n and_o city_n of_o antichrist_n they_o will_v needs_o have_v rome_n to_o be_v this_o babylon_n this_o great_a whore_n and_o this_o purple_a harlot_n for_o such_o fellow_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v lead_v only_o by_o their_o prejudicate_a opinion_n and_o heresy_n to_o which_o they_o draw_v all_o thing_n without_o all_o indifferency_n and_o sincerity_n but_o s._n augustine_n aretas_n and_o other_o writer_n most_o common_o expound_v it_o neither_o of_o babylon_n itself_o a_o city_n of_o chaldaea_n or_o egypt_n church_n not_o of_o rome_n or_o any_o one_o city_n which_o may_v be_v so_o call_v spiritual_o as_o jerusalem_n before_o chap._n 11_o be_v name_v spiritual_a sodom_n and_o egypt_n but_o of_o the_o general_a society_n of_o the_o impious_a &_o of_o those_o that_o prefer_v the_o terrene_a kingdom_n and_o commodity_n of_o the_o world_n before_o god_n &_o eternal_a felicity_n the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o apocalypse_n set_v forth_o in_o s._n ambrose_n name_n write_v thus_o this_o great_a whore_n sometime_o signify_v rome_n special_o which_o at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o apostle_n write_v this_o do_v persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o otherwise_o it_o signify_v the_o whole_a city_n of_o the_o diuâl_n judan_n that_o be_v the_o universal_a corpse_n of_o the_o reprobate_n tertullian_n also_o take_v it_o for_o rome_n thus_o babylon_n say_v he_o in_o s._n john_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o great_a so_o proud_a of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o destroyer_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v plain_o speak_v of_o that_o city_n when_o it_o be_v heathen_a the_o head_n of_o the_o terrene_a dominion_n of_o the_o world_n the_o persecutor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n the_o seat_n of_o nero_n bomitian_n and_o the_o like_a christ_n special_a enemy_n the_o sink_n of_o idolatry_n sin_n and_o false_a worship_n
worldly_n friend_n 93._o 94._o 176_o mark_fw-mi z_o zeal_n against_o heretic_n see_v heretic_n in_o god_n cause_n 706._o nu_fw-la 16._o pag._n 741._o nu_fw-la 9_o zeal_n in_o religion_n count_v of_o worldly_a man_n madness_n 93._o see_v neuter_n zeal_n and_o server_z to_o hear_v and_o follow_n christ_n 106._o zeal_n of_o save_v soul_n 150._o 182._o and_o 183_o mark_fw-mi 529_o mark_fw-mi 544_o m._n 651_o mark_fw-mi zeal_n against_o sin_n 433_o mar_v the_o mad_a zeal_n of_o heretic_n 342_o m._n the_o explication_n of_o certain_a word_n in_o this_o translation_n not_o familiar_a to_o the_o vulgar_a reader_n which_o may_v not_o convenient_o be_v utter_v otherwise_o a_o abstract_a draw_v away_o pag._n 642._o acquisition_n get_v purchase_v pag_n 514._o advent_a the_o come_n pag_n 69._o adulterate_v corrupt_v see_v pag._n 475._o 478_o agnition_n knowledge_n or_o acknowledge_v p._n 600._o allegory_n a_o mystical_a speech_n more_o thou_o the_o bare_a letter_n pag._n 505._o see_v the_o annot._n p._n 508._o amen_n expound_v pag._n 244._o anathema_n expound_v p._n 405._o archisynagogue_n expound_v pag._n 99_o assist_n pag._n 135_o signify_v the_o angel_n stand_v and_o attend_v always_o ready_a to_o do_v their_o ministry_n assumption_n p._n 165_o christ_n departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n by_o his_o death_n and_o ascension_n azymâs_n unleavened_a bread_n p._n 75._o c_o calumniate_v by_o this_o word_n be_v signify_v violent_a oppression_n by_o word_n or_o deed_n pag._n 143._o catechize_v and_o catechize_v p._n 510._o he_o catechize_v that_o teach_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o they_o that_o hear_v and_o learn_v be_v catechize_v and_o be_v therefore_o call_v often_o in_o the_o annotation_n catechuman_n character_n a_o mark_n or_o stamp_n pag._n 7â3_n commesssation_n immoderate_a banquet_n and_o belly_n cheer_v with_o wanton_a riotousness_n p._n 509._o condign_a comparable_a p._n 400._o contristate_n this_o word_n signify_v to_o make_v heavy_a and_o sad_a pag_n 519._o cooperate_v signify_v work_v with_o other_o p._n 401._o likewise_o cooperation_n cooperateurs_fw-fr corbana_n expound_v pag._n 80._o d_o depositum_fw-la p._n 582._o see_v the_o annot._n pag._n 584._o it_o may_v signify_v also_o god_n grace_n give_v we_o to_o keep_v pa._n 587._o v._n 14._o also_o v._n 12_o ibid._n see_v the_o annot._n didrael_n i_o expound_v pag._n 49._o dominical_a day_n sunday_n see_v annot_n p._n 701._o 702._o donary_n gift_n offer_v to_o god_n for_o his_o temple_n etc._n etc._n 199._o e_o evacuate_v from_o christ_n that_o be_v make_v void_a and_o have_v no_o part_n with_o he_o p._n 508._o the_o ãâã_d of_o the_o cross_n evacuate_v that_o be_v make_v void_a clean_o take_v away_o ibidem_fw-la euangelize_n signify_v such_o preach_n of_o good_a tiding_n as_o concern_v the_o gospel_n see_v the_o preface_n eunuch_n geld_a man_n euro-aquilo_a a_o north-eastwinde_a p._n 368._o exinanited_a abase_v exceed_o p._n 528._o g_o gratis_o a_o usual_a word_n to_o signify_v for_o nothing_o free_o for_o godamercy_o without_o desert_n h_o holocauste_n a_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n where_o all_o be_v burn_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n p._n 625._o host_n sacrifice_n p._n 445._o i_o invocate_v call_v upon_o pray_v unto_o p._n 316._o hereof_o we_o say_v invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o to_o invocate_v issue_n good_a event_n pag._n 445._o justice_n take_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o wrong_n or_o injury_n but_o for_o that_o quality_n where_o of_o a_o man_n be_v just_a and_o justify_v p._n 391._o n_o noophyte_n expound_v p._n 569._o p_o paraclete_n expound_v pag._n 260._o parasceve_fw-la the_o jew_v sabboth-eve_a good_a friday_n p._n 130._o v._n 43._o see_v the_o preface_n pasche_n easter_n and_o the_o paschal_n jambe_n p._n 201._o pentecost_n whitsuntide_n &_o the_o space_n of_o fifte_a day_n prefinition_n a_o determination_n before_o p._n 517._o prepuce_fw-la expound_v pag._n 387._o prescience_n foreknowledge_n p._n 294._o prevaricatour_n transgressor_n and_o prevarication_n transgression_n p._n 386._o 387._o loaf_n of_o proposition_n so_o call_v because_o they_o be_v propose_v and_o for_o upon_o the_o table_n in_o the_o temple_n before_o god_n pag._n 31._o r_z repropitiate_v the_o sin_n pag._n 605._o that_o be_v make_v a_o roconcillation_n for_o they_o resolution_n the_o separation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o soul_n the_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n p._n 592._o resuscitate_a the_o grace_n that_o be_v raise_v quicken_v renew_v and_o revive_v the_o grace_n which_o otherwise_o languish_v and_o decay_v pag._n 586._o s_o sabbatismt_v a_o time_n of_o rest_v and_o cease_v from_o labour_n pag._n 607._o sacrament_n for_o mystery_n p._n 513._o sancta_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la the_o holies_n of_o holies_n that_o be_v the_o inmost_a and_o holy_a place_n of_o the_o jew_n temple_n as_o it_o be_v the_o chancel_n pag._n 621._o superedify_v build_v upon_o christ_n the_o principal_a stone_n pag._n 657._o t_o tetrarch_n governor_n or_o prince_n of_o the_o 4_o part_n of_o a_o country_n p._n 33._o throne_n a_o high_a order_n of_o angles_n p._n 537._o five_o victim_n sacrifice_n p._n 308._o the_o fault_n correct_v thus_o pag._n 8._o 1_o cor._n 7._o 2_o cor._n 7._o 38_o tetrarch_n tetrarch_n 42_o five_o week_n first_o week_n 78_o if_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o sacrament_n 148_o matth._n 9_o matth._n 19_o 188_o scandal_n scandal_n 204_o ignat._n ep_v 5._o ep_v 7._o ibid._n in_o 3_o copy_n the_o greek_a set_v amiss_o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr reade_n 213_o li._n 39_o de_fw-la consens_fw-la li._n 3._o 215_o eight_v year_n eighth_n 238_o transubstantion_n transubstantiation_n 409_o cathee_n 17._o catech._n 18._o 440_o continency_n incontinency_n 446_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 449_o be_v it_o not_o now_o it_o be_v not_o now_o 552_o beguile_v five_o beguile_v us._n 576_o eusebius_n li._n 5._o c._n 2._o theodorete_n laus_fw-la deo_fw-la translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n not_o absolute_o necessary_a or_o profitable_a but_o according_a to_o the_o time_n the_o church_n wisdom_n and_o moderation_n concering_n vulgar_a translation_n translation_n mat._n 24_o 45_o 1_o cor._n 4_o 1._o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a language_n of_o diverse_a nation_n bib._n sanct_n li._n 4._o hiero_n ep_v 134._o bib._n sanct_n lib._n 4._o ancient_a catholic_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n into_o the_o italian_a french_a &_o english_a tongue_n li._n 1_o hist_o angl._n c._n 1._o a_o ancient_a provincial_a constitution_n in_o england_n concern_v english_a translation_n see_v linwod_n li._n 5_o tit_n de_fw-fr magistris_fw-la the_o like_a catholic_a and_o vulgar_a translation_n in_o many_o country_n since_o luther_n time_n the_o church_n order_n &_o determination_n concern_v the_o read_n of_o catholic_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n in_o vulgar_a tongue_n ind._n lib._n prohibit_v regula_fw-la 4._o the_o holy_a scripture_n never_o read_v of_o all_o person_n indifferent_o at_o their_o pleasure_n where_o and_o in_o who_o hand_n the_o scripture_n be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n how_o the_o ãâã_d of_o those_o day_n do_v read_v they_o with_o what_o humility_n and_o religion_n and_o enformation_n of_o life_n and_o manner_n the_o father_n sharp_o reprehend_v as_o a_o abuse_n that_o all_o indifferent_o shall_v read_v expound_v and_o talk_v of_o the_o scripture_n hiero._n ep_v 103â_n 6._o in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr moderatio_fw-la in_o disputa_fw-la seruanda_fw-la the_o scripture_n must_v be_v deliver_v in_o measure_n and_o discretion_n according_a to_o each_o man_n need_n and_o capacity_n de_fw-fr ââgone_o christ_n c._n 33._o de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi persevere_v c._n 16._o 1_o cor._n 3._o io._n 16._o ja_n orat_fw-la de_fw-fr modera_fw-la in_o disp_n serua_fw-mi in_o fine_a hiero._n in_o prooem_n con_fw-mi mentar_n in_o ezachi_n the_o jew_n la_o for_o not_o read_v certain_a book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n until_o a_o time_n eph._n 4._o ro._n 10_o 17._o the_o popular_a objection_n of_o withhold_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o people_n answer_v gen._n 3._o why_o the_o church_n permit_v not_o every_o one_o at_o their_o pleasure_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n 1_o tim._n 6_o 20._o ro._n 12_o 3._o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o carnal_a man_n &_o heretic_n be_v as_o pearl_n to_o swine_v mat._n 7_o 6._o li._n de_fw-fr prescriptionibus_fw-la orig._n in_o 2_o ad_fw-la ro._n ro._n luca_n 24._o s._n chrysostoms_n exhortation_n to_o the_o read_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o when_o the_o people_n be_v so_o to_o be_v exhort_v in_o vita_fw-la athanasij_fw-la athanasij_fw-la ho._n 2_o in_o mat._n &_o ho._n 3_o de_fw-fr lazaro_n et_fw-fr ho._n 3_o in_o 2_o ad_fw-la thess_n &_o alibi_fw-la sapè_fw-la s._n chrysostom_n make_v nothing_o for_o the_o popular_a and_o licentious_a read_n of_o scripture_n use_v among_o the_o protestant_n now_o a_o day_n every_o simple_a artificer_n among_o they_o read_v much_o more_o the_o deep_a &_o hard_a questionn_n of_o holy_a
and_o synod_n or_o public_a prayer_n be_v of_o more_o force_n than_o of_o any_o particular_a man_n lu._n 17_o 4_o luc._n 17_o 4._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 21_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n c._n 17._o v._n 27_o protection_n of_o angel_n disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n excommunication_n mat._n â_o 18_o 19_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v li._n 1._o de_fw-fr ãâã_d c._n 2._o catholic_a assembly_n the_o four_o part_n of_o this_o gospel_n christ_n come_v into_o jury_n towards_o his_o passion_n mr._n 10_o 1._o the_o gospel_n for_o marriage_n and_o for_o s._n agatha_n febr._n 5._o make_v man_n gen._n 1_o 27._o gen._n 2_o 24._o deut._n 24_o 1._o mt._n 5_o 32_o mr._n 10_o 11._o luc._n 16_o 18._o 1._o cor._n 7_o 11._o 11._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d caplunt_fw-la mr._n 10_o 13._o luc._n 18_o 15._o mr._n 10_o 17._o luc._n 18_o 18._o 18._o i_o see_v not_o say_v s._n augustine_n why_o christ_n shall_v say_v if_o thou_o will_v have_v life_n everlasting_a keep_v the_o commandment_n if_o without_o observe_v of_o they_o by_o only_a faith_n one_o may_v be_v save_v aug._n the_o âid_n &_o open_a c._n 15._o exo._n 20_o 13._o 13._o leu._n 19_o 18._o 18._o s._n mark_n expound_v it_o thus_o scotfree_a man_n trust_v in_o their_o riches_n ca._n 10_o 24._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o conversion_n of_o s._n paul_n jan._n 25._o and_o in_o a_o uâtive_a mass_n of_o ss_z peter_n and_o paul_n and_o for_o holy_a abbot_n abbot_n hereof_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o apostle_n among_o other_o thing_n leave_v their_o wife_n also_o to_o follow_v christ_n hiero._n li._n 1._o advers_a jovin_n mr._n 10_o 31._o lu._n 13_o 30._o marriage_n after_o divorce_n unlawful_a in_o epitaph_n fabiola_n orig._n tract_n 7._o in_o mat._n vow_v of_o chastity_n counsel_n not_o precept_n aug._n ser_n 6._o the_o temp_n bishop_n and_o religious_a man_n blessing_n the_o religious_a state_n of_o perfection_n vow_v of_o poverty_n in_o respect_n of_o reward_n aug._n in_o ps_n 121._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o sunday_n of_o septuagesme_fw-fr septuagesme_fw-fr the_o jew_n be_v note_v for_o envy_v the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o their_o reward_n equal_a with_o themselves_o mr._n 10_o 32._o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o âotive_a mass_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n luc._n 18_o 31._o mr._n 10_o 35._o the_o gospel_n upon_o s._n jamâs_n day_n jul._n 25._o and_o s._n johns_n ante_fw-la portam_fw-la latinam_fw-la maââ_n 6._o mr._n 10_o 41._o 41._o superiority_n be_v not_o here_o forbid_v among_o christian_n neither_o ecclesiastical_a nor_o temporal_a but_o heathenish_a tyranny_n be_v forbid_v and_o humility_n commend_v lu._n 22_o 25._o mr._n 10_o 46._o diversity_n of_o glory_n in_o heaven_n 1._o cor._n 15._o mt._n 16_o ãâã_d ro._n 2._o 6._o mt._n 25_o 34_o difference_n of_o merit_n and_o reward_n chrys_n ho._n 66_o in_o mt._n io._n 13_o 1â_n the_o five_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a week_n of_o his_o passion_n in_o jerusalem_n the_o gospel_n on_o palm_n sunday_n before_o the_o benediction_n of_o the_o palm_n mr._n 11_o 1._o lu._n 19_o 20._o io._n 12_o 15_o palm_n sunday_n esa_n 62_o 11._o zach._n 9_o 9_o ps_n 117_o 26._o the_o gospel_n upon_o tuesday_n the_o first_o week_n in_o lent_n mr._n 11_o 15._o 15._o how_o much_o the_o abuse_n of_o church_n by_o merchandise_v walk_v or_o other_o profane_a occupy_v of_o they_o displease_v god_n here_o we_o may_v see_v lu._n 19_o 45._o esa_n 56_o 7._o jer._n 7_o 11_o ps_n 8_o 3._o monday_n mr._n 11_o 13._o 13._o the_o jew_n have_v the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o the_o deed_n be_v the_o figtree_n full_a of_o leaf_n and_o void_a of_o fruit_n aug._n de_fw-fr verb._n do._n serm._n 44._o mt._n 17_o 20._o tvesday_n mr._n 11_o 28._o lu._n 20_o 2_o the_o gospal_a upon_o friday_n the_o second_o week_n in_o lent_n es_fw-ge 5_o 1._o mr._n 12_o 1._o lu._n 20_o 9_o ps_n 117_o 22._o es_fw-ge 8_o 14_o hiero._n in_o mat._n aug._n li._n 12_o count_n faust_n c._n 42._o procession_n on_o palme-sunday_n with_o the_o b._n sacrament_n all_o devout_a office_n in_o that_o kind_n exceed_o grateful_a hosann_n prayer_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o party_n be_v acceptable_a marâ_n 11_o 22._o haeretikeâ_n run_v not_o send_v jer._n 33._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 19_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n pentecost_n not_o only_o good_a man_n be_v within_o the_o church_n but_o also_o evil_a man_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o these_o day_n mr._n 12_o 13._o lu._n 20_o 20._o *_o mr._n 12_o 19_o lu._n 20_o 27._o act._n 23_o 6._o deu._n 25_o 5._o exo._n 3_o 6._o mar._n 12_o 28._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o 17_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n deut._n 6_o 5._o leu._n 19_o 18._o mr._n 12_o 35._o lu._n 20_o 41._o ps_n 109._o 1._o worldly_a excuse_n against_o reconciliation_n the_o church_n consist_v of_o good_a and_o bad_a neither_o must_n temporal_a prince_n exact_v nor_o their_o subject_n give_v unto_o they_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n the_o saint_n hear_v our_o prayer_n religious_a single_a life_n angelical_a not_o only_o faith_n the_o gospel_n upon_o tuesday_n the_o second_o week_n in_o lent_n luc._n 11_o 46._o act._n 15_o 10._o 10._o these_o phylactery_n be_v piece_n of_o parchment_n wherein_o they_o write_v the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o fold_v it_o and_o carry_v it_o on_o their_o forehead_n before_o their_o eye_n imagine_v gross_o and_o superstitious_o that_o so_o they_o fulfil_v that_o which_o be_v say_v deu._n 6_o they_o shall_v be_v immovable_a before_o thy_o eye_n hiero._n in_o 23_o mat._n deu._n 22_o 12._o nu._n 15_o 38._o mr._n 12_o 38._o ja._n 3_o 1._o lu._n 20_o 47._o â_o they_o be_v full_a the_o gospel_n upon_o s._n steven_n day_n decemb._n 26._o gen._n 4_o 8_o 2._o par._n 24_o 22._o luc._n 13_o 34._o 34._o free_a wil._n the_o see_v of_o rome_n preserve_v in_o truth_n contra_fw-la lit_fw-fr petil._n li._n 2._o c._n 51._o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n notwithstanding_o some_o evil_a bishop_n thereof_o contra_fw-la lit_fw-fr petil._n li._n 2._o c._n 61._o many_o master_n be_v many_o arch-heretike_n doctor_n master_n and_o spiritual_a father_n 1._o tim._n 2._o 2._o tim._n 1._o 1._o eph._n 4._o 1._o cor._n 4_o 15_o the_o honour_n of_o priesthood_n the_o intention_n not_o only_o faith_n the_o altar_n be_v sanctify_v by_o our_o lord_n body_n thereupon_o theophyl_n mat._n 23._o mr._n 13_o 1_o lu._n 21_o 5_o the_o gospel_n for_o a_o votive_a mass_n in_o time_n of_o war_n and_o for_o many_o martyr_n tvesday_n night_n mat._n 10_o 17_o 17_o there_o be_v in_o the_o people_n false_a prophet_n as_o among_o you_o also_o shall_v be_v lie_v master_n which_o shall_v bring_v in_o sect_n of_o perdition_n 2._o pet._n 2._o the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o last_o sunday_n after_o pentecost_n dan._n 9_o 27._o 27._o whosoever_o draw_v christ_n or_o his_o church_n from_o the_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n of_o all_o nation_n christen_v to_o one_o corner_n town_n or_o country_n believe_v he_o not_o aug._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ec._n c._n 1._o ezech._n 32_o 7._o joel_n 3_o 15_o dan._n 7_o 15._o 15._o this_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v the_o holy_a cross_n which_o they_o shall_v appear_v to_o the_o jew_n to_o their_o confusion_n chrys_n in_o mat._n ho._n 77._o it_o shall_v be_v no_o less_o confusion_n to_o heretic_n that_o can_v not_o abide_v the_o sign_n thereof_o gen._n 7_o 5._o the_o gospel_n for_o a_o confessor_n that_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o for_o s._n clement_n martyr_n novemb._n 23._o 1._o thes_n 5_o 1._o the_o church_n can_v never_o fail_v mt._n 16._o li._n adu_fw-la gentes_fw-la ãâã_d christus_fw-la sit_fw-la deus_fw-la propè_fw-la finen_n heretic_n seduce_v under_o fair_a title_n the_o gospel_n now_o preach_v to_o infidel_n the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n the_o abolish_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n by_o antichrist_n and_o his_o minister_n antichrist_n 1._o thes_n 2._o the_o secret_a conventicle_n of_o heretic_n catholic_a christian_n secret_o assemble_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n act._n 1_o 12._o antichrist_n the_o gospel_n for_o holy_a virgin_n virgin_n if_o we_o be_v not_o in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o have_v not_o our_o own_o merit_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v holpen_v by_o other_o man_n desert_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o gospel_n for_o a_o confessor_n that_o be_v a_o bishop_n luc._n 19_o 12._o 12._o free_a will_n with_o god_n grace_n do_v merit_n merit_n a_o terrible_a example_n for_o all_o such_o as_o do_v not_o employ_v the_o very_a lest_o gift_n of_o god_n to_o his_o glory_n mr._n 13_o 12._o lu._n 8_o 18_o the_o gospel_n upon_o monday_n the_o first_o week_n of_o lent_n lent_n this_o kingdom_n than_o be_v prepare_v for_o those_o only_a that_o do_v good_a work_n as_o christ_n also_o signify_v else_o where_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o his_o
power_n to_o give_v it_o otherwise_o see_v the_o annot_v â_o 20_o 23._o good_a work_n necessary_a right_o intention_n we_o must_v use_v god_n gift_n good_a and_o bad_a in_o the_o church_n heaven_n be_v the_o reward_n of_o good_a work_n and_o hell_n of_o the_o contrary_n the_o passion_n according_a to_o s._n matthew_n in_o these_o two_o chapter_n be_v the_o gospel_n at_o mass_n upon_o palm_n sunday_n mr._n 14_o 1_o lu._n 22_o 1_o tenedre_n wenesday_n mr._n 14_o 3._o io._n 12_o 3._o 3._o hereby_o ãâã_d learn_v that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v record_v and_o set_v forth_o to_o their_o honour_n in_o the_o church_n after_o their_o death_n whereof_o rise_v their_o holy_a day_n and_o commemoration_n mr._n 14_o 10._o lu._n 22_o 3_o mr._n 14_o 12._o maundy_n thursday_n lu._n 22_o 7_o ps_n 40_o 10._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 24._o 24._o see_v the_o margin_n note_n mar._n 14_o 23._o thursday_n night_n the_o nocturne_n of_o matin_n in_o the_o church_n service_n answer_v to_o this_o night_n part_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n and_o so_o consequent_o the_o other_o canonical_a hour_n to_o the_o rest_n zach._n 13_o 7._o io._n 13_o 38._o 10._o 18_o 3._o io._n 2_o 19_o dan._n 7_o 13._o to_o this_o time_n the_o laude_n do_v answer_n in_o the_o church_n service_n cost_v upon_o church_n altar_n etc._n etc._n relief_n of_o the_o poor_a ambros_n li._n 2_o off._n c._n 2d_o christ_n always_o with_o we_o in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n a_o wonderful_a mystery_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v both_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o a_o sacrament_n mat._n 2d_o 2d_o the_o blessing_n of_o christ_n refer_v to_o the_o creature_n and_o work_v a_o effect_n in_o they_o consecration_n â_o cor._n 10._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d transubstantiation_n no_o figurative_a but_o a_o real_a presence_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o element_n after_o consecration_n call_v bread_n and_o wine_n gen._n 2._o exo._n 7._o io._n â_o de_fw-fr ârat_fw-la vigil_n and_o nocturne_n do._n nu_fw-la â5_n â5_n adu_fw-la vigilant_a ep_v â3_n the_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n man_n infirmity_n peter_n tear_n and_o repentance_n prime_a or_o hora_n prima_fw-la in_o the_o church_n service_n mr._n 15_o 1_o lu._n 23_o 1._o io._n 18_o 28._o good_a friday_n friday_n this_o corbana_n be_v a_o place_n about_o the_o temple_n which_o receive_v the_o people_n gift_n or_o offering_n see_v mar._n 12_o v._o 42._o zach._n 11_o 12._o hora_n tertia._n in_o the_o church_n service_n io._n 19_o 2._o hora_n sexta_fw-la in_o the_o church_n service_n ps_n 21_o 19_o ps_n 21_o 9_o sap._n 2_o 18._o hora_n nona_fw-la in_o the_o church_n service_n hora_n vesperarum_fw-la or_o evensong_n hora_n completorii_n or_o complin_n saturday_o call_v sabbatum_fw-la saââctum_fw-la horror_n of_o conscience_n desperation_n they_o that_o execute_v law_n against_o their_o conscience_n be_v like_a to_o pilate_n christ_n deride_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n even_o as_o upon_o the_o cross_n catechis_n calu._n &_o instit_fw-la li._n 2._o 16._o caluins_n blasphemy_n reverent_a use_v of_o our_o l._n body_n s._n hiero._n in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la locum_fw-la to_o 1_o council_n corporal_n the_o gospel_n for_o the_o night_n mass_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n which_o be_v now_o use_v to_o be_v say_v on_o easter_n eve_o in_o the_o morning_n mr._n 16_o 1._o luc._n 24_o 1._o io._n 20_o 1._o easter_n day_n mt._n 29_o 32._o the_o gospel_n upon_o friday_n in_o easter_n week_n the_o gospel_n in_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n in_o ep._n 17_o paulae_n &_o eustoch_n ad_fw-la marcel_n to_o 1._o the_o holy_a sepulchre_n and_o pilgrimage_n thereunto_o esa_n 11._o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v gather_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o christ_n continual_a protection_n of_o the_o same_o church_n in_o catal._n script_n ecclesiast_fw-la philo_z de_fw-fr supplicibus_fw-la in_o catalogo_fw-la catalogo_fw-la naucler_n generate_fw-la 28._o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o gospel_n of_o the_o preparation_n to_o christ_n manifestation_n mal._n 3_o 1._o esa_n 40_o 3._o the_o prophet_n mt._n 3_o 1._o 1._o johns_n baptism_n put_v they_o in_o hope_n only_o of_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o a_o preparative_n to_o christ_n sacrament_n by_o which_o sin_n be_v indeed_o to_o be_v remit_v aug._n li._n 5_o the_o bapt_a c._n 10._o lu._n 3_o 4._o io._n 1_o 15._o mt._n 4_o 1._o lu._n 4_o 1._o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o gospel_n of_o christ_n manifestation_n mat._n 4_o 12._o luc._n 4_o 14._o 14._o he_o do_v not_o preach_v belief_n or_o faith_n only_o but_o penance_n also_o mat._n 4_o 18._o lu._n 5_o 2._o mat._n 4_o 13._o lu._n 4_o 31_o luc._n 4_o 32._o mat._n 8_o 14._o luc._n 4._o 42._o mt._n 8_o 2._o lu._n 5_o 12._o 12._o our_o saviour_n even_o when_o he_o heal_v the_o leper_n by_o extraordinary_a miraculous_a power_n will_v not_o yet_o break_v order_n but_o send_v the_o party_n to_o the_o priest_n leu._n 14_o 3._o confession_n particular_a confession_n johns_n example_n of_o penance_n baptism_n in_o water_n calu._n 4._o inst_z c._n 16._o the_o b._n trinity_n christ_n example_n of_o penance_n solitary_n contemplation_n mt._n 9_o 1._o lu._n 5_o 18_o 18_o our_o lord_n be_v move_v to_o be_v merciful_a to_o sinner_n by_o other_o man_n faith_n and_o desire_n and_o not_o only_o by_o the_o party_n own_o mean_n always_o job._n 14_o 4._o esa_n 43_o 25._o mt._n 9_o 9_o lu._n 5_o 27_o mt._n 9_o 13_o lu._n 5_o 32_o 32_o he_o foretell_v that_o fast_a shall_v be_v use_v in_o his_o church_n no_o less_o then_o in_o the_o old_a law_n or_o in_o the_o time_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n see_v mat._n c._n 9_o 15._o mt._n 12_o 1_o lu._n 6_o 1._o 1._o re._n 21_o 6._o leu._n 24_o 9_o 9_o the_o maker_n of_o the_o law_n may_v abrogate_v or_o dispense_v when_o and_o where_o for_o just_a cause_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o he_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v call_v for_o in_o sickness_n man_n have_v power_n to_o remit_v sin_n christ_n remit_v sin_n by_o the_o priest_n ministry_n mt._n 18_o 19_o mt._n 18_o 18._o ad_fw-la heliod_n ep_v 1._o amb._n li._n â_o off_o c._n 28._o mt._n 12_o 9_o lu._n 6_o 6._o 6._o the_o only_a touch_v of_o christ_n holy_a person_n or_o any_o part_n of_o his_o clothes_n or_o whatsoever_o belong_v to_o he_o do_v heal_v all_o disease_n mt._n 5_o 1._o 10_o 1._o lu._n 6_o 12_o 9_o 1._o 1._o see_v here_o the_o conceit_n of_o worldly_a friend_n who_o think_v the_o zeal_n of_o religion_n madness_n and_o therefore_o count_v they_o mad_a that_o be_v zealous_a in_o god_n cause_n and_o for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o the_o more_o zealous_a the_o more_o mad_a mat._n 12_o 24._o luc._n 11_o 15._o mt._n 12_o 46._o lu._n 8_o 19_o sermon_n service_n and_o prayer_n of_o heretic_n the_o number_n of_o twelve_o mystical_a act._n 1â_n peter_n preeminence_n mt._n 1â_n dissension_n of_o heretic_n greg._n li._n â_o ep_v 3._o venial_a sin_n forgive_v after_o death_n mt._n 12_o 32._o spiritual_a kindred_n and_o business_n prefer_v before_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a the_o b._n virgin_n without_o sin_n mt._n 13_o 1._o lu._n 8_o 4._o 4._o such_o as_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n though_o they_o hear_v and_o read_v never_o so_o much_o they_o can_v understand_v esa_n 6_o 9_o bed_n in_o 4_o marc._n lu._n 8_o 16_o 16_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o teach_v his_o doctrine_n in_o corner_n and_o huck_a mucker_n as_o heretic_n do_v but_o to_o lighten_v the_o whole_a world_n therewith_o lu._n 8_o 18_o 18_o to_o you_o that_o hear_v mat._n 13_o 31._o luc._n 13_o 19_o mt._n 8_o 23_o lu._n 8_o 22_o god_n be_v not_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o man_n own_o will_n mt._n 13._o act._n ãâã_d 1._o cor._n 3._o the_o church_n visible_o increase_v christian_n religion_n wonderful_o spread_v mat._n 8_o 28._o luc._n 8_o 26._o 26._o it_o be_v not_o with_o out_o mystery_n that_o the_o devil_n desire_v and_o christ_n suffer_v they_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o swine_n signify_v that_o filthy_a liver_n be_v meet_v dwell_v place_n for_o devil_n aug._n tract_n 6_o in_o ep_n io._n mat._n 9_o 18._o archsynagogue_n chief_a governor_n of_o a_o synagogue_n luc._n 8_o 42._o 42._o from_o from_o to_o christ_n that_o can_v more_o easy_o raise_v a_o dead_a man_n than_o we_o can_v do_v one_o that_o be_v but_o a_o sleep_n death_n be_v but_o sleep_n aug._n de_fw-fr verb._n do._n sâr._n 44._o profane_a and_o natural_a man_n the_o touch_n of_o relic_n basil_n in_o ps_n 115._o scripture_n fond_o apply_v to_o prove_v only_a faith_n v._o 5._o by_o three_o dead_a be_v signify_v three_o kind_n of_o sinner_n aug._n de_fw-fr verb._n do._n ser_n 44._o mt._n 13_o 54._o lu._n 4_o 16_o mt._n 10_o 1_o lu._n 9_o